Chapter 1: Breaking the Cycle
Chapter Text
Harry Potter breathed out a long sigh and painfully shifted back to his base form. He needed a minute, just a minute to stand at the sink in his kitchen with his hands on the counter to breathe. Then heād find the Essence of Murtlap and new bandages. He just needed to breathe for a minute. He wasnāt sure how heād gotten through the day, but heād held it together, and no one needed to know. Everything was fine.
Ā
Harryās metamorphmagus abilities were initially pretty limited, nothing like Teddyās. He seemed to have only gotten a little of the innate ability from his slight relation to the Black family. Heād really only realized he even had the ability when he, Hermione, and Ron had been on the run during the war and Hermione had offered to try to cut his and Ronās hair for them. With a laugh, Harry had just shown her what he always did and made his hair the length he wanted it. Heād never had a haircut in his life besides the awful ones his aunt had subjected him to as a child, which heād promptly fixed with his magic even before heād known it was magic.
Ā
Hermione and Ron both had stared at him in shock before Ron just shook his head and chuckled explaining that, no, that was absolutely not a normal ability for a wizard to have. Heād played around with the ability since then, but kept it secret from everyone except his best friends in case he ever needed to go on the run again. Yeah, he was paranoid, but hey, heād been hunted by a psychopath for basically his entire life, so you couldnāt really blame him.
Ā
Unfortunately, now his abilities were getting more use than heād ever intended, and an unexpected upside to that was that they were growing and developing some with use. Just another minute to block out the world is all he needed before he could deal with it all. Harry felt the cool countertop under his hands, grounding himself, and tried to hold back the tears that were threatening just behind his eyes.
Ā
A sharp intake of breath knocked Harry from his almost meditative state and had him spinning around, his wand raised, and ready to fight for his life. āOh, Harryā¦what happened?ā Hermione put a hand to her mouth now that she could see his black eye and split lip too.
Ā
āThe hellā¦you looked fine an hour ago at work!ā Ron stepped around Hermione and Harry winced while lowering his wand. āDid this happen on your way home? Did you get mugged or something?ā
Ā
Harry had forgotten they were coming over for dinner. Actuallyā¦heād cancelled that dinner. Why were they at his home? They were both keyed into his wards, so they could clearly enter his flat just off Diagon Alley whenever they wanted, but they werenāt supposed to be there that evening.
Ā
āHarryā¦ā Hermione trailed off, finally catching the other thing heād been hiding with his abilities. āWhyā¦how longā¦?ā
Ā
He felt liked a cornered animal. He wanted to lash out or run or curl up in a ball in a cupboard somewhere. Ronās eyes were taking on that understanding look he always got when heād figured out some case they came across as aurors and it was so much worse than theyād imagined.
Ā
āItās the hallows, isnāt it?ā Ron concluded correctly. They both knew him too well, he didnāt keep secrets from his best friendsā¦well, up until recently anyway. āBut not the injuriesā¦some of those look old. Why are you using your abilities to cover them? Why not see a healer?ā
Ā
āI was twenty-sevenā¦ā Harry trailed off, knowing they would remember what he was referring to. It was the main reason why he was no longer the media darling heād been after the war. People looked at him in suspicion now, not hero worship. It was fear not admiration in everyoneās eyes.
Ā
Heād been very visibly hit with a dark curse on the job. Thankfully, it wasnāt a killing curse, but it should have killed him all the same. What no one knew was that he had actually died. Heād caught a glimpse of the empty Kingās Cross Station and everything before he was gasping air back into his lungs. He hadnāt aged a day since that death. He really should be almost mid-thirties by now, and his looks wouldnāt be much different, but heād intentionally added some lines around his eyes and some stray silver in his hair since Ron had started developing those things, and Harry figured he should use his best friend as a template for what he should be looking like at his age.
Ā
Hermione stepped forward again to study his face. āSoā¦are you sayingā¦are you immortal?ā
Ā
Harry just shrugged. He had no bloody clue, but he was pretty sure he should have died another time or two after that curse at 27 since he hadnāt been even slightly concerned for his own life in a long time now. He hadnāt even gotten a glimpse of Kingās Cross those times though. So, maybeā¦probably.
Ā
He had a strong suspicion that he could actually die when he really wanted to. It was the Tale of the Three Brothers and how each had met his end that led to this suspicion. Harryās ancestor met Death as an old friend when he eventually chose to leave his life. Harry might not be too concerned about his life currently, but he wasnāt quite at choosing to meet Death and move on at the present moment at least. His mental health was slightly better than that.
Ā
āMate,ā Ron sighed and sank into a chair at the kitchen table. āThis is bloody shite that I have to say this, but you being immortal and looking younger than Hermione and meā¦well, thatās not actually what Iām concerned about in this particular moment. What in Merlinās name happened to you? This didnāt happen on the job. We havenāt had any raids for weeks now.ā
Ā
āHarry,ā Hermione reached out to hold onto his arm, and Harry had to force himself not to flinch. Even so, he thought Hermione had caught the flinch regardless. āThis isnātā¦this isnāt him is it? Are youā¦safe?ā
Ā
āWhat?! Of course not!ā Harry lied through his teeth, probably overdoing it on being offended there. āKings loves me! Why would you even think that?!ā
Ā
Ron lowered his head to the table, and Hermioneās eyes just went soft. Damn, his friends could read him way too well. āWhen did this start?ā Hermione asked, not even acknowledging his lie in the slightest. āWas it from the beginning?ā
Ā
āWhy are you even here?!ā Harry angrily shrugged off her arm and turned to busy himself with finding the Essence of Murtlap and bandages heād been heading to find to begin with. He wished he was better with healing spells, but his magic seemed to singularly hate healing spells for some reasonā¦Harry was leaning towards blaming the hallows for that one as well as his non-aging. Hermione could definitely help him, but he was so very far from asking for her help in that moment that it was laughable.
Ā
āWeāre here because weāre worried about you,ā Ron finally lifted his head with a huff. āYouāve been cancelling things and avoiding everyone in your life for a long time now, mate. We havenāt seen you outside of work in ages. Teddy is on holiday from Hogwarts right now, have you even seen him?ā
Ā
Harry stilled slightly, hating the reminder of Teddy. āKings saidā¦ā
Ā
āHarry!ā Hermione cut him off, and yeah, he heard it. It just wasnāt what they were implying though. He wasnāt some victim or something. Merlin, he was an auror for fuckās sake!
Ā
He let go when Hermione gently took the ointment from him and steered him to one of the chairs. She opened the jar and began to apply it to his eye. āIām surprised he left visible injuries,ā she said as if it were a foregone conclusion that he was being abused by his partner and not even entertaining his protests in the slightest.
Ā
āNormal people are better with healing spells than me, my best friend is a healer, and I have a dangerous job,ā Harry found himself saying. He hadnāt actually thought about it before, but any injuries he had could easily be healed by Hermione or passed off as part of his job. Even with Kingsley not knowing about his metamorphmagus abilities, being careful about bruising wasnāt an issue. Alsoā¦Harry was so far out of favor with the press currently that no one was going to ask questions about him being a little battered.
Ā
āI donāt know why he still puts up with me,ā Harry found himself saying. He was only a burden at this point. Kingsley didnāt deserve the stress and drama of having Harry in his life. āEveryone loves him. The best minister weāve ever had. Why is he with the freak? The budding dark lord? Or whatever the Prophet is calling me these days.ā
Ā
Hermione winced when she lifted his shirt to see the large bruise on his stomach. āNo one should have to āput up with youā Harry. Whoever youāre with should feel honored to be with you,ā she said sadly as if this were an argument they had frequently, but Harry didnāt think theyād ever had this particular argument before. If they had, heād brush it off just like he was doing then. He was difficult, he was exhausting, he brought too much danger and drama to any relationship; these were all things Harry knew exceptionally well by this point.
Ā
Harry was already shaking his head. That wasnāt right at all. He was only bringing Kingsley down. He was the one who was being done a favor by not being kicked to the curb. There was an election year coming up, and associating with Harry couldnāt help with the campaign in the slightest.
Ā
Ron sighed yet again and scrubbed a hand over his face. āLook, Harryā¦when you and Shacklebolt started dating after your break-up with Ginny, we were a little concerned just because of the age difference and that it seemed a bit like a rebound, but youāre an adult and can make your own decisions. Plus, he seemed like a good bloke.ā
Ā
āHe is,ā Harry protested.
Ā
āNo, he isnāt,ā Ron firmly corrected him.
Ā
āHeās literally the best minister weāve ever had,ā Harry tried again, getting twin glares from his friends.
Ā
āYeah, he is, not that the bar was very high,ā Ron continued with a roll of his eyes. āThat doesnāt make him a good person, and that doesnāt negate the fact that heās a shite boyfriend who is hurting my best friend, my brother.ā
Ā
Harry winced. He wasnāt a victim. Itās justā¦it had started out so good. Yeah, there was an age difference, but theyād been so happy. Harry was at his height of popularity in the media, and they had gotten to talking at a fundraiser where they were both being touted as magical Britainās most eligible bachelors. The Savior of the Magical World and the Minister of Magic who had rebuilt their society after the war. The Prophet almost cooed over them as a power couple when they finally went public with their relationship.
Ā
Things had been great. Then the media started turning on Harry like it always did. He was rising in the ranks of the aurors too fast. He was too good at his job. He was dangerous. Then he should have died. Was he using dark arts like Voldemort had to keep himself alive? Was he unduly influencing the minister? Was Kingsley under an imperius curse?
Ā
Kingsley was just stressed all the time now. It was a lot. Harry was a lot. He knew he woke Kingsley up constantly with his nightmares. It was the main reason his boyfriend hadnāt wanted them to move in together. Kingsley had found Harry this flat since he said Grimmauld was too difficult to keep up and Harry shouldnāt have to deal with that, and the flat was so much closer to Kingsleyās own and to the ministry. Kreacher was staying at Hogwarts anyway, so it wasnāt a big deal to let it go.
Ā
Then, well, they were busy. Kingsley liked to stay in when they had time together, especially now that being out in public would probably get them negative press. So, Harry had to cancel plans with his friends, but that was fine because he got to see his boyfriend. It hurt a little more to cancel time with Teddy, but Kingsley wasnāt a fan of kids. They caused him stress, and he was already too stressed. Butā¦Teddy wasnāt even a kid anymore. He was 15 for Merlinās sake.
Ā
āHarry,ā Hermione finished with a healing spell that almost erased the bruise to his side. She put her hand on his knee. āHeās isolating you from your friends and family. Heās hurting you. Pleaseā¦if it was me who was in this relationship, how would that make you feel?ā
Ā
āRon would never,ā Harry scoffed.
Ā
āNo, I wouldnāt,ā Ron grabbed onto his hand, his eyes trying to convey something to Harry, but he just didnāt understand what. āWhat makes you think you deserve this when Hermione would not? What makes you think Kingsley has any right to do this to you, when I bloody well donāt and wouldnāt even think of it?!ā
Ā
Harry couldnāt find the answer. But⦠āIām me,ā was all that came out.
Ā
And yeah, now he heard it, and it hit him like a trollās club to the chest. Heād always been someoneās punching bag whether that was his aunt and uncle or Dudley or everyone who tried to kill him over his years at school. Had he really just been repeating a cycle? But he heard it now. If it was anyone else whoād walked into the auror office saying the exact same things heād just been saying, he would have tried to get them help, to get them out of the situation, heād never tell them they deserved it or to go back to their abuser. Merlin, it was happening againā¦how hadnāt he seen it?!
Ā
Hermione pulled him into her arms when they saw the realization finally hit him. āWeāre in this together, Harry. You donāt have to stay with him.ā
Ā
Then it sank in just how precarious his situation actually was. āI canāt leave,ā he breathed out in realization. āHeās the Minister of Magic.ā
Ā
He felt Hermione still and could see Ronās face pale when the implications sank in for them too. āHe could have stopped the press dragging me through the mud, couldnāt he?ā He finally asked as everything hit him.
Ā
āYou were more popular than him,ā Hermione let him go and leaned back in thought. āYou were the youngest head auror everā¦and people were starting to whisper that you should be the next ministerā¦ā
Ā
āDid he do this on purpose? Was he behind it, or did he just not stop it?ā Harryās eyes widened as he asked them both. Was he just the worst auror ever if he hadnāt seen his own boyfriend systematically ruining his life over the past several years?!
Ā
āHey, stop spiraling, this isnāt your fault,ā Ron snapped his fingers in front of Harryās face. āYou were never going to see this. Youāve never had the chance to heal from anything. Itās justā¦itās not your fault. And hey, we can get you out of this. We can tell the press that youāve broken up, then you donāt even have to tell him. Heāll just read about it. You donāt even have to be in the same room.ā
Ā
Harry felt his stomach sink as a conversation heād had with Kingsley months ago came to mind. āI thought he was telling me he wouldnāt leave me with everything that was going on. Thatās what I wanted to hear,ā he said in just over a whisper. āBut he was telling me I couldnāt leave himā¦ā
Ā
āWhat do you mean, Harry?ā Ron asked with worry in his tone.
Ā
āHe was assuring me that Robards couldnāt fire me even though Kingsley isnāt technically my bossā¦heās the head of the DMLEās boss,ā Harry explained. āWhat he said though was that Robards had to listen to him if he valued his job, that he could overrule any decision the head of the DMLE madeā¦that he could have anyone fired that he wanted to.ā
Ā
Ron and Hermione shared a scared look. Harry just chuckled dryly when everything Kingsley had been implying shifted in his brain from assurances to threats. āMerlin, he could have me arrested. With all this dark lord nonsense in the press, if I ever broke up with him, he could just say that heād learned I was lost to the dark arts and thatās why he had to dump me or something. Itās not even the first time a minister has tried that with me.ā
Ā
āYou canāt stay with him, Harry,ā Hermione finally said after a long moment of silence. āHeāll eventually kill you, or have you arrested anyway.ā
Ā
āImmortal, remember,ā Harry raised an eyebrow and pointed at his chest.
Ā
āWaitā¦didnāt you get rid of the wand?ā Ron frowned. āHow are you still Master of Death then?ā
Ā
Harry shrugged because he could be a wizard for a thousand years and still not understand everything about magic. āIt just showed up about a week after the battle, the stone did too,ā he said, laying out his last secret for his friends. āNow, anytime I think about needing a wand, itās just in my hand. I can leave it wherever, but it just reappears. The stone is pretty much always in my pocket whether I put it there or not.ā
Ā
āWhy didnāt you tell us any of this?!ā Ron growled in frustration.
Ā
Harry just shrugged. āWell, everyone was grieving, then you had your wedding to focus on, then Ginny and I broke up and I was dealing with that, then there was always a case with the aurors, then Kingsleyā¦it justā¦I donāt know. I didnāt deal with it; I didnāt want to.ā
Ā
Hermione crossed her arms and pursed her lips. āI donāt care if youāre immortal. You canāt stay with him and just let him hurt you,ā she said firmly with a glare out to wherever the minister might be right then in the world.
Ā
Harry really didnāt see a way out of this. āI meanā¦heāll most likely die firstā¦ā
Ā
Clearly not the right thing to say judging by his friendsā expressions. āLook,ā he tiredly rubbed his eyes. He hadnāt been sleeping well recentlyā¦or really, he hadnāt slept well in his entire life, but still. āI can take the occasional slap, or even losing my job, but I canāt go to Azkabanā¦Iāve put almost half the prisoners in there myself by this point. Nothing Kingsley does to me will be anywhere near what they will if Iām thrown in with them. At this point, Iād really rather die than face whatever they would do to me.ā
Ā
āSo what? Youāre just going to play happy family with your abuser?ā Ron glared. āCut us out of your life completely? You know thatās his next step, right?ā
Ā
Harry opened his mouth and just closed it again. He couldnāt lose Ron and Hermione. He couldnāt lose his only family, but they were right. Kingsley had already been pushing them out.
Ā
āI donāt know,ā he finally gave up. He didnāt have a solution for this.
Ā
Hermione stood and began to make tea. Harry thought this was more a firewhiskey conversation, but heād take what he could get if she was making. āHarryā¦I think you might need to leave Britain for a little while,ā she said with her back to him as if she couldnāt meet his eyes. āThe ministerās reach doesnāt extend to other countries. You could just go to France for a few months or even a year until things die down some. Youād have to give up your job, but maybe you could get a job as an auror in France or Spain or somewhere.ā
Ā
āMate, I think sheās right,ā Ron looked at him sadly. āJust until there arenāt any rumors about you becoming the next dark lord, and maybe Kingsley gets a new boyfriend.ā
Ā
āWho he might hurt too,ā Harry sighed, not liking that thought either.
Ā
āBut he wouldnāt have as much leverage over them, hopefully,ā Ron just shrugged. āLookā¦do you, would you want us to come with you?ā
Ā
Hermione finally turned around with tears in her eyes. āOh, Harry, we could come with and start over together.ā
Ā
Harry was already shaking his head. āNo, Ron has his family, and Hermione, youāre already so respected as a healer. If Iām only gone for a year or two, you shouldnāt give up all that to follow me around. Youāre right, I should leave, but I think I need to do this on my own.ā
Ā
None of them were saying it, but it was clear, they didnāt really believe it would only be for a year. Harry had been called the next dark lord off and on since he was 12 and the Chamber of Secrets had been opened. This time, it seemed to be sticking unlike it had all the other times. Maybe he could figure out why this kept happening to him if he finally had some time away from it allā¦and maybe figure out why heād walked right into an abusive situation yet again without even realizing it. He couldnāt keep doing this.
Ā
āThe ministry monitors the floo. You need to buy a new owl to keep in touch,ā Ron remarked, and Harry just frowned more deeply at the paranoia from his friend who was usually more a voice of reason to Harryās ingrained paranoia.
Ā
āYou really think Kings would go to all that trouble?ā He asked, really not knowing the answer to that question.
Ā
āTo get you back?ā Ron asked with a raise of his eyebrow saying very clearly that, yes, he really did think the minister would do that.
Ā
Hermione just shook her head. āNo, cell phones. Weāll all get cell phones to keep in touch,ā she said firmly. āWeāll just have to be careful about the amount of magic we use around them, but no one in the magical world understands them, let alone knows how to monitor them.ā
Ā
This was all too much. Harry needed to pack now. He needed to see Teddy. He needed to quit his job. How did he do all this without Kingsley noticing?
Ā
Ā
The answer Harry found was that there wasnāt a way for him to do all that without Kingsley noticing. Harry thought he might should have died yet again during that confrontation. Heād never been more thankful for the Elder Wand in his life until he was finally left, broken and bleeding, in a magically warded closet in Kingsleyās flat.
Ā
He shouldnāt have stopped by to get his Firebolt. Heād left it at Kingsleyās when they had flown together the week before, and he just couldnāt leave it behind since it was the only thing he had left from Sirius. Now, it was broken anyway.
Ā
Harry thought of his wand, and it appeared in his hand. He could have used it to fight back, but then another of his secrets would be known. He was willing to take the pain over Kingsley having any knowledge of the hallows or what it meant for Harry to possess them.
Ā
Honestly, he was surprised he didnāt splinch himself, but at least he knew that Kingsleyās wards were nothing against the power of the Elder Wand. He stayed in his flat for all of five minutes to pick up his small bag, and then he was gone, for good this time with absolutely no clue what he was going to do or where he was going to go.
Ā
Ā
Harry bounced around Europe for a while. He was wealthy enough that he didnāt actually need a job at the moment, so he planned to do some sightseeing while he healed and took some time for himself. He had been staying in the magical areas since he was most comfortable there now at this point in his life, that was until he got to Portugal.
Ā
Heād just walked into the magical section of Lisbon and was met with a dĆ©jĆ vu moment of seeing a wanted posted with his picture on it staring right back at him. At least this time it was a better picture. It seemed Ron was right though in the end. Kingsley really would do anything to get him back and punish him for leaving. Based on the poster, it seemed that this time he was wanted for sedition and suspicion of being a dark arts practitioner. Ā
Ā
Harry turned right around and booked himself into a muggle hotel instead of magical. It seemed he needed to get farther away and maybe stay in the muggle world now. Also, he needed to look significantly different because he was much too recognizable.
Ā
Harry looked in the mirror of his small hotel room and took in his long dark hair, green eyes, and plethora of scars. Well, the hair was easy. Itād always been easyā¦well, changing the length, but he never could get rid of the crazy curls which must be some strong genetics from the Potter line or something. With a thought, he turned it blond and made it shorter until it was just a small mess of curls on top of his head with the sides close cropped.
Ā
The eyes were harder, not that he couldnāt do it, but that heād always been told how much they looked like his motherās. He had to let go though as much as it hurt. He couldnāt go to Azkaban, and that was starting to look like much more of a possibility. He closed his eyes and opened them again to see eyes that were the cool blue, almost grey, that he remembered of Siriusās. If he couldnāt keep his motherās eyes, maybe he could keep Siriusās.
Ā
It was the Merlin-be-damned scar that was the biggest headache of everything. His metamorphmagus abilities had never been able to do anything about curse scars. Most of his curse scars were easily coverable though with long sleeves like the basilisk scar and the gash from Voldemortās rebirth ritual. Even the new lightning bolt scar from the war was on his chest, so pretty much always covered. The writing on his hand was more visible, but someone would have to be really close to him to see that, and he didnāt plan on anyone getting that close to him ever again in the state of mind he was currently in.
Ā
The scar on his forehead though. That one was way too distinctive. No matter what he looked like, a lightning bolt scar on his forehead would make any magical person look at him twice. It took a hell of a lot of effort, but he was able to expand the scar some. He grunted as he used all his power to pull and try to move it. It did move slightly and kind of split until it was just a couple red splotches around his eyebrow. At that point he had to give up. It refused to do literally anything else.
Ā
Harry glared at the red marks. Wellā¦at least they werenāt a lightning bolt scar. He supposed it actually looked like a birthmark now instead of a scar. It was still distinctive, but not something that anyone would associate with Harry Potter. Really, it didnāt look that bad.
Ā
He had to stare at himself a long time, but the new look was growing on him. His body was still his own. He still had his hard-won muscles from auror training and his gangly limbs from finally having a growth spurt in his late teens. Even his face was the same just with different features to keep any magical person he may encounter from associating him with the British Savior. Actuallyā¦maybe he should work on a new accent and backstory tooā¦
Ā
Ā
Evan āBuckā Buckley stood in front of the 118 fire station in Los Angeles, California with a stupid grin on his face. It was his first day as a probationary firefighter with the LAFD. Heād never thought he would be a firefighter beforeā¦why would he? The magical world didnāt need firefighters with their liberal use of fire suppression wards on all their buildings because of the candles and torches and all.
Ā
Harry Potter had never considered being a firefighter or even taking a fulltime job in the muggle world. Also, heād never even considered going to California, but here he was. His new identity was rock solid. Unfortunately, it was more than a little illegal and maybe immoral too though. Without the help of MACUSA, who didnāt even know he was in the U.S., the only way to get a solid new identity was to get one from a deceased child on the black market. Thankfully, after all his time as an auror, he knew how to find the people who could get him just that.
Ā
Evan Buckley was a child from Hershey, Pennsylvania who had died from leukemia as a baby. Harry felt really bad about taking the kidās identity, but his wanted posters had spread much further than Europe by now. Heād even seen one during his short time in Peru, so a new identity was a must.
Ā
California was as far from Pennsylvania as he could get within the same country, so Harry decided to start over there. Unfortunately, he wasnāt actually qualified for much in the muggle world. It hadnāt taken Harry long to realize that his primary school muggle education didnāt get him super far. He was pretty much stuck with unskilled labor or doing nothing and living off his vault. He knew heād go batty within a year without a job though. Honestly, even having been travelling for the last six months left him feeling like he needed to do something to be useful and contribute to the world.
Ā
Harry had coincidentally been getting coffee in North Hollywood when a building a block away caught fire. He watched with the rest of the crowd while the firefighters rushed in and got everyone out to safety and then put out the fire. Something in him had lit up in that moment. He was used to running into danger, and heād never been afraid of heights or small spaces. It would be a struggle to not use his magic and to keep it secret that he was immortal, but it was something he could do to actually make a difference and help others.
Ā
The very next day, Evan Buckley stepped into the LAFD headquarters and asked for an application. And really, the fire academy was easy compared to a lot of the things heād had to do in his life. The most difficult part of everything were the tests and memorizing new information. He didnāt have anything else going on in his life currently though, so he just put everything he had into it.
Ā
Now, with three Evans in his class, his name was officially Buck, and he was ready to start over yet again. Even Ron and Hermione were excited for him when he told them during their weekly chat. They all agreed, this was perfect. Now, he just had to survive his year as a probationary firefighter.
Ā
Ā
āUhā¦hi,ā he smiled at the group of firefighters all sitting together and eating lunch. Merlin, heād missed having people to eat lunch with! Not that he planned on making friends with this lot. Co-workers and acquaintances only is what he was looking for, not any strong emotional connections in the slightest.
Ā
āIām looking for Captain Nash?ā He asked the group tentatively.
Ā
Buck was still getting used to the American accent heād worked so hard to fake, but he thought it was solid by now. If he slipped, heād come up with some kind of lie. Everyone seemed to buy it, exceptā¦
Ā
āAnyone here know a Captain Nash?ā An older man asked the table.
Ā
āWhatā¦?ā Buck floundered. Did he somehow come to the wrong station?
Ā
āSit down, kid,ā the man smiled and pushed out a chair with a chuckle.
Ā
After a breath of relief when he realized they were just messing with him, Buck sat down, grinning at everyone at the table. It may not be the aurors, it might be exceptionally muggle, but it was a new start. He swore again, he wasnāt going to get close to these people. That was the issue heād decided. He got close to people and then they hurt him. Either they actually, literally hurt him, they died, or they turned on him. If he kept everyone at armās length and just did the job and tried to be useful, then maybe heād break out of whatever this cycle was he found himself in.
Ā
He was Firefighter Buckley, not Auror Potter. He wasnāt the Boy-Who-Lived or the Man-Who-Conquered. He was just a normal 34-year-old pretending to be a 26-year-old, wizard pretending to be a muggle, British man pretending to be American, immortal pretending to be mortalā¦yeah, what could go wrong?
Ā
āHey, Iām Evan Buckley, but everyone calls me Buck,ā he said hopefully. āIām your new probationary firefighter.ā
Ā
āGood to meet you, Buck,ā an Asian man across the table smiled at him. āIām Howard Han, but everyone calls me Chimney.ā
Ā
āThere has to be a story there,ā Buck reached across and shook his hand.
Ā
āWouldnāt you like to know,ā Chimney smirked and passed a bowl of pasta to him.
Ā
Captain Nash clapped him on the shoulder just as the bell rang for them to rush to an emergency. āWelcome to the 118, Buck.ā
Chapter 2: Starting Over
Notes:
I switch between 'Harry' and 'Buck' as names our main character calls himself internally. There is a reason for when he would think of himself as 'Harry' and when he thinks of himself as 'Buck' just based on what's going on, so I do switch between the two frequently.
(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)
Chapter Text
Buck was absolutely not here to make new friends or create a new family. He already had Ron and Hermione; he didnāt need anyone else. Unfortunately, the 118 didnāt seem to get that memo. It started with Hen inviting him over for a home-cooked meal at her house with her wife Karen and their son Denny, and itād been so long since heād had a home-cooked meal that he couldnāt say no. Then Bobby had an extra ticket to a Bruce Springsteen concert, and Buck had never actually been to a concert before, so he couldnāt say no. Then Chimney invited him out for drinks and karaoke, and again, heād never tried karaoke before, so he couldnāt say no.
Ā
It was freaking impossible for him to turn away these people who were offering him everything that he desperately wanted and asking for nothing in return. How did he shut that down? He couldnāt let himself fall into that again though, especially since all these people were first responders in a dangerous job. It would be so easy to lose them.
Ā
So, Buckās go-to was to just make himself as annoying and irritating as he possibly could. They all seemed pretty settled, even Chimney had a serious girlfriend, and Bobby didnāt talk about his family, but they all assumed he had one. Because of this, Buck thought that seeming a bit wild and immature would get them to back off and stop inviting him to things and wanting to hang out.
Ā
Step one had Buck creating a lie about where he lived. Heād bought a nice, loft condo when he decided to stay in LA, but he told everyone he had a lot of roommates so they wouldnāt think to drop by or expect to go to his place for any reason. This didnāt actually work because Hen just invited him and Chimney to her place more often for dinner and game nights.
Ā
Step two had Buck spinning wild stories about sleeping around with random women heād met on dating apps or out at clubs. Now, heād definitely slept around more than his fair share after his breakup with Ginny and before Kingsley, but he couldnāt do that now. For one, he'd kind of grown out of wanting to do that, and for another, it didnāt feel safe. Any time he even tried to talk to someone at a bar, he flashed back to being locked in Kingsleyās closet and bleeding out wondering just how many times he probably should have died if he wasnāt immortal. And even walking into a club would send him into a panic attack. There were too many people all around him, and he couldnāt get the fact that he was a wanted fugitive out of his head even if it was almost certain he wouldnāt be recognized.
Ā
Somehow, even with all that, heād landed in a fire station with what seemed to be the least judgmental group of people on the planet though. Yeah, they teased him and gave him concerned looks, but they didnāt shun him. They didnāt stop inviting him to things. He was used to everyone turning on him from the slightest step out of line. He was in the wrong hallway at the wrong time, and (bam!) he was the Heir of Slytherin. Someone was trying to get him killed, and (bam!) he was a cheat aiming for glory in a stupid, dangerous tournament. He was slightly more popular than the Minister of Magic, and (bam!) Fudge, Scrimgeour, and Kingsley all vilified him in the press.
Ā
How the hell did these people still want him around and put up with him? If there was anything Harry knew, it was that he was just too much for people to want to deal with. There had to be something he could do to push them over the edge to just leave him be and stop tempting him to connect once more.
Ā
And ok, yeah, stealing the firetruck for a hook-up was probably the worst idea heād had since he left England. Especially since he really didnāt want to actually have sex with this woman. He liked sex, and he definitely missed it, but it was way too tied into the trauma of his last relationship. Kingsley had almost weaponized sex as both a punishment and as a reward for Harry doing things he wanted him to do or stepping out of line. There was too much trauma and too may negative associations for him to work through to take that step right in this moment.
Ā
When the woman flirted with him on the call out to rescue her from her own snake, it had presented itself as an opportunity. Now, he really did feel bad that heād killed her snake. It was very necessary though, mainly because his Parseltongue ability had lingered after the horcrux was removed, and this ladyās snake was hell-bent on her death judging by its threatening hisses. It had a lot of opinions, and the woman wasnāt going to survive keeping it around. So, yeah, theyād saved her life, and sheād found him on the social media platform Hermione had made him set up to look more like a normal muggle who understood technology.
Ā
He had left more than enough clues for Bobby to find him quickly, but it was taking too long for his captain to track him down, and the woman was getting a little insistent where they were hanging out on the roof of a building together. He was going to have to shut this down very quickly if Bobby didnāt show in the next minute or two.
Ā
āYouāre fired,ā was the first thing Buckās captain greeted him with on the roof of the building once the snake lady made her exit.
Ā
Buck felt it like a kick to his gut. āI thought I had three strikes,ā he breathed out. Heād miscalculated. Nothing else had seemed to work to get everyone to back off, but apparently, heād gone too far. He knew he would eventually, but heād hoped to keep being a firefighter at least a little longer. Hell, he hadn't even made it out of his probationary year!
Ā
āThis is literally all I have,ā he said, probably the most honest thing heād said since he arrived in LA, let alone started at the 118.
Ā
āThis isnāt the 1950s,ā Bobby began with the most disappointed look imaginable on his face. āYou have to work with women, you canāt disrespect them and do this job.ā
Ā
Buck felt that strongly. He had basically been raised by Hermione even if they were the same age, so heād always been exceptionally cognizant of how he treated woman and magical creatures. It was the absolute last thing he ever wanted to do. Granted, heād spread his own rumors of his fake exploits intentionally, but it still hurt to be dressed down for something from his man, even if it was something he didnāt do. Heād literally made up every single woman heād mentioned before, and this one in particular had made every single move. The only thing heād done was take the firetruck to meet her. Even then, he was two seconds away from the āletās be friendsā talk when Bobby had finally shown up.
Ā
With a sinking feeling, he realized he was already too attached. He was starting to see Bobby as some kind of parental figure. And damn, he just couldnāt break out of any of the cycles he found himself in. He kept trying to make himself these parental figures and then theyād turn away from him or die. While he knew he wasnāt like cursed or something for this to inevitably happen (curses just didnāt work that way), he still believed it was actually inevitable by this point in his life.
Ā
Bobby would hurt him. Bobby would leave him. And it was too late, Buck had somehow let him past his barriers in only the few months heād been at the 118, somewhere between lunch that first day and probably even before the Springsteen concert. Why did he keep doing this?!
Ā
āClean out your locker,ā Bobby turned away from him, washing his hands of anything else to do with Buck.
Ā
Ā
Fate apparently wasnāt done with him yet because it was only chance that had Buck as the only person in the fire station and able to help Sargent Athena Grant save a little girl from a home invasion. It was only chance that he was able to keep this job he was coming to love more than heād ever loved being an auror. Buck promised to back off some and stop trying to scare everyone away if only he could keep doing this thing that gave him some purpose and fulfillment.
Ā
āI know how lucky I am to be here,ā Buck assured Bobby vehemently. āI need this job. I want this job if youāll only give me another chance.ā
Ā
Harry wasnāt used to people giving him a second chance. They may realize they were wrong or change their tune once he literally saved the world, but they didnāt just willingly give him a second chance. Bobbyās stern look softened slightly. āWell, donāt blow it this time then,ā he said before turning away.
Ā
What the hell?! He was actually getting a second chance?! Harry almost collapsed even while he was already pulling his cellphone out of his pocket to call Ron. Ron would tell him he was being a dumbass, but he would also understand. He could stop pushing everyone away, but he still wasnāt letting them in. He only needed Ron and Hermione, and Ron would understand. Hermione would try to convince him to let people in and make a new family, but that just wasnāt something he could do.
Ā
Ā
It wasnāt even a couple weeks later before Buck made his second miscalculation. Heād lost a victim on a call. It was horrible, and it affected him strongly, but heād learned to cope with this a very long time ago. Harry had fought in a war as a literal child which took so many people from him, and he had been an auror for fifteen years and had plenty of bad calls. Yeah, it was rough, but Harry knew how to handle this. However, Buck was new on the job, so he figured he would need to show a front of this hitting him exceptionally hard or people may start asking uncomfortable questions.
Ā
Bobby sat beside him in their ridiculous, glass locker room and handed him the card to a therapist. āYou donāt have to talk to me, but you do need to talk to someone,ā Bobby gave him a look that had Buckās heart hurt. Either Buck had miscalculated and gone too far with how hurt he was acting, or Bobby just really did care. He hoped it was the first option, because he didnāt think he could recover from the second if Bobby turned away from him again.
Ā
Buck looked at the card and nodded with a small smile for his captain. Actually, it was probably a really good idea. St. Mungoās had never been very good with patient privacy where he was concerned, so Harry had never felt safe enough to get a mind-healer after the war. While he couldnāt talk about anything having to do with magic or the war with a muggle therapist, he could maybe talk about what happened with Kingsley, the Dursleys, and losing so many people close to him.
Ā
He would feel out this therapist and see if they were someone he could trust by talking about the man he lost on the rollercoaster. If they seemed like someone he could talk toā¦maybe he could actually get some help. Maybe he could figure out how to break out of his self-destructive cycles. Hermione would be so proud of him for trying at least.
Ā
Ā
Harry had never been to therapy before, but it seemed less scary than he thought itād be. He was just sitting on a couch talking about his feelings, which was difficult, but it was just the rollercoaster accident they were discussing, not what had happened with Kingsley or anything.
Ā
āWhat makes it so difficult to discuss your feelings, do you think?ā The woman asked. She seemed nice, not overly pushy. Maybe this could actually work.
Ā
āItās not,ā Buck said honestly for this discussion anyway. She didn't know he had processed losing the victim already, so she didn't know he was really there to talk about all the rest of the crap in his life. āIām fine.ā
Ā
Buck decided he would push a little. He needed to know if she could take him being stubborn, because he would shut down as soon as his past relationships were brought up, and if this was going to work, then she needed to be a little pushier in those instances. He was going to need it to keep talking when he'd want to shut down.
Ā
āLook, Iām only here because my captain insisted,ā he said, waiting to see how she would handle that. Would she rubber-stamp his form for the department, or would she dig deeper and really try to help him?
Ā
She checked her notes from his intake form and, without looking up, said, āI see you froze up at a scene the other day.ā
Ā
Actually he hadnāt, his team had just been used to him jumping first into any rescue at this point. Heās taken a step back on this last one since he was trying to look like he was hurting, but heād done his job and hadnāt frozen or anything. It was the main reason Bobby had said he wanted Buck to talk to someone though, so he'd put it on the form.
Ā
āYeahā¦I hesitated,ā he tried just as the therapist looked up again. He almost jumped out of his skin when he felt a slight push at his occlumency shield. The fuck?!!
Ā
āWhy?ā She asked while Harry was internally panicking. Harry felt another slight push and looked completely away from her, trying to process what the hell was happening.
Ā
Merlin! Muggles couldnāt use mind magic. The therapist was definitely trying to use legilimency on him though! This woman must be a witch and using mind magic on muggles to get ahead in her career!! That was so unethical and illegal on so many levels that any prosecutor in a magical court would be salivating to get this case and make their career on it! How many people had she done this to?!
Ā
He saw her put on a sympathetic face. āYou lost someone. That must be hard. Was this your first time?ā
Ā
He accidentally met her eyes when she moved her head down. The slight push was now a shove, and he saw exactly when she finally figured it out. The therapistās eyes widened, and Harry felt the Elder Wand appear in his sleeve, waiting to be used. Magical people just didnāt work as first responders in the muggle world, let alone as firefighters. Clearly, sheād never thought she would find herself sitting across from another magical person, especially one who had decently strong occlumency shields.
Ā
āStupify!ā She cast, her wand appearing almost faster than Harry could process, but he wasnāt the master of the Elder Wand for no reason.
Ā
āProtego!ā He cast well before the spell hit him.
Ā
The woman jumped up angrily, and Harry wasnāt sure what her move was here. She had to immobilize him to wipe his memory, and she was fast, but not as fast as Britain's top auror. She could try to run, but he knew her face, and she must have left a trail because this clearly couldn't be her first offense. Would she try to kill him?
Ā
Her wand came up, and Harry wondered how far this was going to go. āImperio!ā She cast, knowing it would cut through his shield.
Ā
Harry felt the spell slam into him, but honestly, he just rolled his eyes. It was probably the best idea to get herself out of this if a person had no morals, but better magical people than this woman had cast that spell on him, and frankly, it was laughable how easy to cast it off these days. There was very little joy in his world, and the siren song of the imperius curse that promised peace and joy had nothing against the pain he carried with him everywhere.
Ā
āSit down and shut up,ā she ordered, clearly thinking the spell had worked.
Ā
Petrificus totalis, Harry lazily cast nonverbally, groaning in frustration at the whole situation when she collapsed on the floor.
Ā
He could have her sent to prison for life for what sheād done. However, Harry was a wanted fugitive for whatever shite Kingsley was spreading around these days. Probably terrorism at this point. He couldnāt turn the therapist in and interact with the magical world. He needed as little attention as possible turned his way.
Ā
With another tired sigh, he raised the Elder Wand. āObliviate,ā he cast, wiping himself from her memory. He didnāt know how to keep her from doing what she was doing to others, but he would think about it. There had to be something he could say or do that would get someone to look into her practices. If she was willing to go this far, he'd bet his halligan that there were other criminal acts she'd taken part in. He would think about it once he was far away from this office.
Ā
Ā
Buck leaned back on the couch in the loft of the fire station just a few days after his epically failed therapy session. As much as he thought therapy would be so very good for him, he was officially turned off of giving it another go at this point. It would take a lot for him to make a second attempt. He looked over at where Bobby was approaching with an idea for how he could maybe at least get someone to open an investigation into the woman whoād tried to violate his mind.
Ā
āHow was your session with the therapist?ā Bobby asked with a smile, knowing that Buck had mentioned to everyone ahead of time he was going to go, so it wasnāt a secret from the rest of their co-workers. Hen and Chimney stopped where they were flipping through magazines like they were actually interested in what he had to say.
Ā
Buck put on a neutral expression because he wanted to make it look like he didnāt realize what he was about to say was as serious as it actually was. He needed Bobby to make that leap on his own. āI donāt think therapy is for me,ā he shrugged in fake unconcern. āWe ended up having sex in the session, so Iām thinking my sex addict self-diagnosis holds some weight, you know.ā
Ā
Chimney laughed but with that look where heād only laughed because he didnāt know how to respond and was trying to cover his horror. Hen looked like she had stopped breathing. And Bobbyā¦Bobby looked livid. Buck was suddenly afraid heād gone too far once again. Bobby had just given him that speech on respecting women, but Harry was pretty clear on the laws as former law enforcement, and he wouldnāt legally be at fault in this situation. In the magical world, what the woman had tried to do to him would be investigated the same as the allegations he was making here in front of Bobby. And, if it got out sheād hit him with an unforgiveableā¦well, she was lucky there werenāt dementors in America.
Ā
āBuckā¦ā Bobby turned his gaze on him, and ohā¦he wasnāt mad at Buck. Suddenly, all heād done to keep Bobby at armās length just wasnāt good enough. Bobby did actually care.
Ā
His captain opened his mouth, but the bell rang before he was able to say whatever he was about to say. Buck felt saved by whatever this emergency was going to be. He couldnāt let Bobby finish whatever his thought was, or Harry might just start crying. Bobby would handle this though; he had every belief in that. Someone would look into the therapist, and hopefully, his name would be kept out of everything.
Ā
Ā
Buck had sworn he would never use magic during the course of his job. It was too dangerous, and if he was caught, then MACUSA would get involved, and his identity wouldnāt hold up to magical scrutiny. It was his main rule, that and not getting too attached to his coworkers.
Ā
Harry had never been good at following rules.
Ā
He sat on the hood of Chimneyās destroyed car in the middle of the pile-up on the interstate and shared a look with Hen and Bobby. None of them knew how their coworkerā¦their friend, was still alive. āHow bad is it?ā Chimney asked from where he couldnāt move his head since a bloody piece of rebar was sticking straight through it.
Ā
āWell, itās not good,ā Buck offered as lightly as possible to keep his friend from panicking.
Ā
Yeah, Buck really wasnāt good at following rules, and it was time he gave up and admitted it to himself. Chimney was a friend, Hen was like a big sister, and Bobbyā¦Bobby had taken over that missing hole of a parental figure and wouldnāt let go.
Ā
The Elder Wand was already in his sleeve while Bobby filmed Chimney to show him what it looked like. Tranquillitas, Harry was nonverbally casting before heād even made the conscious decision to use magic. It was only a mild calming spell to keep Chimney from panicking and making the situation worse. He absolutely could not move if he was going to survive this. Ā
Ā
Buck, Chimney, and a group of other firefighters from their shift were going to trivia night on Friday. Harryās primary school education wasnāt going to win them any prizes, and even though heād discovered the wonders of Wikipedia, they needed Chimney and his pop culture knowledge that Buck was severely lacking. Suddenly, all desire to hold back with the people in his life was gone, and Buck was going to do everything within his considerable power to get Chimney out of this. He might not be able to make this trivia night, but Merlin dammit, he was going to make the next!Ā
Ā
āBuck, secure him so we can tow the car to the hospital,ā Bobby ordered as they all moved very carefully. Ā
Ā
āOn it!ā Buck hurried around to the backseat of the car.
Ā
Chimney still wasnāt panicking, but Buck wasnāt going to take any chances. Ā A quick sticking spell was followed by one to secure Chimney to the seat and one to stabilize the rebar all while Buck was tying the ropes around his friend that Bobby had asked him to do. Harry cursed the fact that his healing magic was crap because Chimney could really use Hermione instead of him in that moment. Honestly, he couldnāt cast any healing spells with the rebar still through the manās head though, or it would only make it worse.Ā
Ā
āIāll ride with him, and make sure he stays secured,ā Buck offered quickly, knowing that Bobby would do it himself if Buck didnāt speak up.Ā
Ā
Bobby gave him a searching look and seemed to see that he really did need to do this. The trust his captain put into the nod he gave Buck gave him that familiar pain to his heart once again. āYou got this, Buck. Keep him safe,ā he clapped a hand to Buckās back before heading to the front of the tow truck. Ā
Ā
āWe got this Chim,ā he said to his friend firmly. Ā
Ā
āTatiana is going to hate this. She's going to kill me if this rebar doesn't,ā Chimney remarked, and Buck had honestly forgotten about Chimās girlfriend. Ā
Ā
Buck pulled his wand out of his sleeve. āYouāre going to be fine,ā he said as more of an order than an assurance. Ā
Ā
āStupify,ā he cast. Chimney didnāt need to remember the ride to the hospital, and this way, any internal bleeding would be paused for the drive, and he would be in stasis until they could get him to professionals. It was buying them time, and time was definitely what Chimney needed right now. Ā
Ā
Ā
Buck answered the phone and found himself smiling at the voice on the other end. āHowās Chimney?ā Abby asked in her very soothing voice.
Ā
āHeās going to ok,ā Buck breathed out as a thank you to the universe. āEveryoneās calling him a medical miracle now. Unfortunately, his girlfriend just left him while he was still in the hospital, but hey, if she canāt stick by his side after a piece of rebar went through his brain, then good riddance.ā
Ā
Abby chuckled. āIām sorry about his girlfriend, but Iām so glad heās going to be ok. How are you doing?ā
Ā
"I'm good, Abby...better after hearing your voice," he said sincerely.
Ā
Buck sat down on the couch in his loft and leaned back. Abby was safe. It was the first time heād felt safe with someone since Kingsley. They only ever talked on the phone, which she didnāt mind since she was used to it as a 9-1-1 dispatcher, and Buck felt that even when they did meet finally that she would feel safe then too. She was giving him time, and Buck didn't know how she could be so patient, but he was so very grateful she was.
Ā
Granted, Harry was pretty certain he was a terrible judge of character by this point, but Abby just seemed so good, and stable, and like there wasnāt anything she needed from him. She was a little older than his actual age, but not overly much. She was taking care of her sick mother, which just added more to that feeling of safety. And Buck thought he could actually see building something with her maybe.
Ā
It would take a lot for him to move what they had from the phone to in person, but Buck was thinking that he might actually be ready to try it. He couldnāt let her in completely, but he could try to make something work. Didnāt he owe it to himself to allow himself to heal, to let someone in even if it wasnāt much? He had already given up on keeping the 118 out, so his heart was already lost there. Maybe it was time to give romance just a little more of a try.
Ā
And then he almost died on their first date. Wellā¦he wasnāt really going to die. He wasnāt quite ready yet to meet Death as an old friend, so he would have come back to life, but stillā¦it was embarrassing.
Ā
Abby had expertly performed an emergency tracheotomy on him when heād choked at the restaurant. He vowed to never eat the free bread again, no matter how good it was! Sheād saved him though, or she would have if he were mortal. Sheād saved him, and yeah, maybe he had actually found someone safe. Someone who wasnāt just another self-destructive cycle he could subject himself to.
Ā
Ā
And then there was Bobby who just kept digging deeper into Buck's heart.
Ā
Theyād been called to a tragic plane crash with so much death and destruction. Harry hadnāt been involved in such devastation since the war. It was triggering for him in the worst ways, but it broke Bobby.
Ā
Harry had tried to keep Bobby from becoming everything heād ever hoped for in a father figure, and he had thought he was at least partially succeeding until he realized that Bobby was just a person, and a flawed and broken one at that. It pushed Harry right over the edge. He loved Bobby now, maybe even more than Remus who he'd spent so very little time with before his death.
Ā
āHelp,ā Bobby asked, his voice breaking and tears in his eyes. He looked between Buck and Hen who had found him in his empty apartment having fallen off the wagon and broken his sobriety. That family theyād always assumed he had, they were all dead. Bobby was all alone in the world, and he was hurting so much.
Ā
Harry held onto him and suddenly knew heād never recover from this after its inevitable bad ending. Bobby was his now, and he took care of his family whether they liked it or not. āWe got you,ā he assured the man. And he did. Bobby was going to get through this, and heād never be alone again.
Ā
Buck went to every single AA meeting with his captain for a week before Bobby told him to find his own crappy coffee and stale cookies somewhere else. Bobbyās eyes flashed with so much care and gratefulness though, that Buck just grinned back.
Ā
āWell, I suppose youāre going to have to teach me to make bisā¦cookies then since Iām shit at everything cooking or baking. I mainly just order out,ā Buck said, narrowly catching the British name for cookies and slipping.
Ā
Even so, some cooking classes would get him more time with his new parental figure. Yeah, this was a wonderful thing and oh so very bad. Hermione was happy for him in their conversations about it, and Ron was too but also warned him about proceeding with caution.
Ā
Bobby just hummed and looked at him assessingly. āNo, I think we should start with breakfast. If this thing with Abby works for you, you need to be able to make her an actual meal, and breakfast is one of the easier ones.ā
Ā
Buck just grinned at him broadly, so excited that his plan worked. Honestly, he was a pretty good cook after all his years of servitude with the Dursleys. He just didn't want to cook after everything they'd put him through. Maybe cooking with Bobby would make the whole experience less traumatic and give him better associations with it.
Ā
Harry grinned at the man once again when he showed up right beside his hospital bed after the date from hell and tracheotomy. āYou came,ā he was barely able to whisper after having been stabbed in the throat.
Ā
āWell, you made me your emergency contact,ā Bobby raised an eyebrow at him but sat right down, looking surprised but not like he was upset.
Ā
āDonāt have anyone else,ā Buck whispered with a smaller smile at the sad truth in that statement.
Ā
āAbby just went to get some coffee. She'll be back soon,ā Bobby motioned to the door. āI think sheās surprisingly willing to give a second date a go even after all this,ā he chuckled.
Ā
āI know,ā he said. āVery surprisedā¦kind of really like herā¦ā
Ā
āGet some rest,ā Bobby patted his knee under the blankets. āAbby or I will be here when you wake up.ā
Ā
Ā
Buck really couldnāt believe how good everything was going with Abby after they moved past that terrible first date. Even after her mother died, she let him stay and help. Honestly, heād pretty much moved in, and it had been a long time since heād been back to his loft. Buck liked to help and be useful, and there was so much to do when someone passed, and he could be there for Abby and help her through everything.
Ā
At the very least, Harry understood grief, and he could just lay in bed and hold his girlfriend when everything hit her. He knew how to be there for someone after everything that had happened to those around him in his life. Anything she needed, and Harry could be there, be her support.
Ā
Then she was gone. He understood, probably more than anyone else. Buck waved at Abby while she walked through the glass doors into the airport. āIāll be here when you get back,ā he told her vehemently.
Ā
āBe safe, Buck,ā She smiled sadly, her red hair catching in the wind and a small smile on her lips.
Ā
āYou too.ā
Ā
Buck sighed when the doors closed. He could have gone with her. He could have shown her all around Europe and gone with her on this adventure, but she hadnāt asked him to. She needed to do this on her own, and Buck got that. He was doing that himself right then. Plus, he couldnāt exactly tell her he was English, had gone to school in Scotland, and had knocked about Europe as a fugitive because yeahā¦that was too much for any relationship to weather.
Ā
What he could do was be supportive, make sure everything was ready for her return, and wait for her. So, he did just that. He went back to Abbyās condo and cleaned out the fridge. He turned off the water and made sure her mail was routed to his loft so he could take care of anything pressing. He then grabbed all this belongings, and made his way back to his cold and empty loft.
Ā
He really liked his loft with its huge windows, open floor plan, and the fact that he could sleep high up. It gave him a feeling of safety, of being in the clouds. After having stayed with Abby so long though, it just felt lonely and impersonal. Theyād only been together a few months, so he knew he was being a bit ridiculous. He would be fine. It was all fine, and heād be there waiting, just as soon as she flew back into town.
Ā
Ā
Abby had been gone for seven weeks and three days. He was starting to lose a little hope. Everyone was giving him these sad looks, but Buck didnāt know what to do with them. This was fine. Abby was going to come back, and everything would go back to normal. So, he checked on her condo, watered her plants, made sure she didnāt have any outstanding mail that needed taking care of, and headed back to his place once again. It was a ritual of sorts, making sure everything was tidy and ready, just as soon as she returned.
Ā
Buck opened the door to his loft again and let himself shift back into his base form as soon as the door closed behind him. He could maintain his āBuckā form for up to 72-ish hours heād learned through trial and error, but then he had to shift back into āHarryā for at least an hour or heād develop a migraine. So, heād started shifting back to his base form every night to rest so he wouldnāt be straining on his longer shifts.
Ā
āHey you,ā a voice startled him, and Harry had a shield spell around him before he could even blink.
Ā
The voice chuckled, and Hermione stepped into the loft from where sheād been out on his balcony. āHey, Harry. I missed you,ā she smiled at him, love in her eyes.
Ā
āHermione!ā Harry dropped the shield, wand and all, to run right into his best friendās arms. āYouāre here! Merlin, I missed you so much! When did you get here?ā
Ā
āAbout an hour ago. You look good,ā she remarked, pulling back to look him over, and yeah, no new scars or injuries. Frankly, he probably looked worlds better than the last time sheād seen him in person in his flatās kitchen back in England.
Ā
āI am. What about you though? Is anything wrong? Kingsley isnāt going after you and Ron, is he? Is Ron here?ā Harry looked around the loft as if expecting his friend to suddenly appear by the sofa or something.
Ā
āEverything is perfectly fine,ā Hermione put her hands on his arms and told him firmly with a small smile. āShacklebolt hasnāt bothered us besides some initial questioning, which was laughable after what all weād been through with the war, so donāt even start blaming yourself for that."
Ā
Too late, Harry already was. āIām so sorryā¦ā he started.
Ā
āSeriously,ā she glared at him, and Harry just gave her a sheepish smile. āIām fine, everyoneās fine, Teddy is fine, and no one who knows what happened is mad at you.ā
Ā
Harry just breathed out a sigh of relief at her answering basically every question he had in the order they had occurred to him. His friends really did know him too well. He finally chuckled. āOk, so youāre just here for a visit? Where is Ron then?ā
Ā
āErā¦wellā¦about that,ā Hermione stepped back and looked away. This didnāt look good. Harry was starting to be very concerned.
Ā
āHermioneā¦?ā
Ā
Hermione flushed and gave him a smile. āSo, wellā¦I kind of got you in the divorceā¦surprise...ā
Ā
Harry blinked. Oh, hell no!! He sputtered in his mind. No, absolutely not! Whatā¦? No! When had this happened? Why hadnāt anyone said anything? Justā¦what?
Ā
Actually⦠āOh, hell no!!ā He said out loud for good measure.
Notes:
Up Next: A new day for the 118 and Buck...
Chapter Text
āOh, hell no!ā Harry glared at his best friend, his sister in all but bloodā¦who he really wanted to throttle in that moment. āWe are not doing this again, Hermione. We already had this talk back when you two first got together. I told you both, that Iām never picking sides ever again, and if you were to break up, then you just had to figure out some way to still be friends. We had a dealā¦ā
Ā
āHarry!ā She cut off his rant with a hand to his arm and a smile. āItās all good. I was only joking. Ron and I, weāre good. Actually, we decided that weāre better friends than a couple and just decided to go back to that, so itās not like weāre avoiding each other or anything.ā
Ā
āOh,ā he deflated at that news. Ok, so he wasnāt losing one of themā¦but he was still bummed they werenāt together anymore. āWhat happened? You two seemed so good together?ā
Ā
Hermione pulled him over to his couch and sat down, turning to face him with a serious expression on her face. āI feel like my mum is about to break bad news to me,ā he joked, but yeah, if heād had a mother, he was sure this is exactly what it would have felt like.
Ā
Hermione chuckled and ran a hand over her face. āPlease donāt take this the wrong wayā¦ā
Ā
Harry looked at her because he was clearly going to take this the wrong way. Did she not know him at all?! āItās my fault?ā
Ā
Hermione dramatically smushed her face into the back of the couch. āLiterally the opposite of what I was asking you to do!ā She exclaimed; her voice muffled by the cushion.
Ā
Harry just waited because this definitely sounded like it was going to end up being his fault. āIf youāre getting makeup on my couch, then thatās on you to clean,ā he warned her. āI like this couch.ā
Ā
Hermione finally looked up and rolled her eyes at him, casting a cleaning charm on the sofa for good measure. āThis wasnāt your fault,ā she said firmly. āWhat I was getting at is that we were probably together for so long because of your support and presence. When you started pulling away, we ended up spending quite a lot more time with each other, just the two of usā¦and yeah, we donāt actually have a lot in common besides you and traumaā¦ā
Ā
Harry wasnāt sure how to take that. āOkā¦But everything is fine with you two? Really? Like you arenāt mad?ā
Ā
Hermione nodded and took his hand. āLook, a lot went into this decision. Itās been a long time coming. Not having a lot in common was only one thing, then there were our opposite schedules, then the subject of kids, and Ron just really wanted them, and I just wasnāt getting pregnant no matter how hard we tried, and I didnāt want to do fertility treatments, and then I got to thinkingā¦ā
Ā
She looked off and winced as if she was about to admit something shameful. āI got to thinking that maybe I just donāt want to have kids with Ron.ā
Ā
That was probably what made sense to Harry the most. Honestly, that was something heād seen coming from a mile away. āHermione, family is so important to Ron, and I know itās important to you too, but Molly was always going to be super involved in everything having to do with a kid, and I know that would have been very difficult for you.ā
Ā
Hermione snorted. āAnd Ron would invite it.ā
Ā
āExactly,ā Harry squeezed her hand. āAnd you knowā¦you donāt exactly have the best parents.ā
Ā
āTheyāre good people,ā Hermione quickly defended them automatically like a reflex.
Ā
āBut not the best parents,ā Harry added with a significant raise of his eyebrow. āHow many times have they come to visit from Australia since you recovered their memories after the war?ā
Ā
Hermione looked down, and he knew the exact number. They hadnāt once visited their daughter. āRon and I visited some.ā
Ā
Harry leaned back and put and arm around her shoulders to be there for comfort as much as he could. āLook, Iām not saying it was something you couldnāt have worked through if youād wanted, but you were just raised so very different from Ron, and he was never going to understand that you were basically your parentsā roommate over their daughter.ā
Ā
āYeah, well, I suppose Iād be a terrible mum anyway,ā she sniffed.
Ā
Harry scoffed loudly. āYou can just shut up about that, because Hermione Granger, you basically raised me. When we first met, I was an orphan who grew up in a cupboard with almost no socialization. I might not be very emotionally stable, but Iām much better than I have any right to be because of your influence!ā
Ā
Hermione didnāt look too sure about his reasoning there, but she leaned into his side anyway. āRegardless, you arenāt going to have to choose between us. Ron will come visit sometime soon, but we didnāt want to come at the same time or it might tip off anyone who may think we could lead them to you. Alsoā¦we decided it would be a good idea for us to take a little time and space away from each other to readjust to only being friends again.ā
Ā
āSo how long is this visit for?ā Harry smiled in relief because he was not going to bloody well go through those two and sixth year again! āWhen do you need to be back at work?ā
Ā
āAbout thatā¦ā Hermione trailed off and gave him a sheepish smile. āWhen we were talking about starting over with you when you had to leaveā¦Iāve kind of been thinking about that ever since that day.ā
Ā
āWhat do you mean?ā He asked, not trusting his heart to speculate on the answer and hope too much.
Ā
She looked out the window and took in a breath. āI was thinking that it might be nice to try something new, and maybe do that in the muggle world this time. I donāt want to turn my back on magic or anything, or even give up on healing, but I think I need a little break. Iāve been running full-out since that first day on the Hogwarts Express. I havenāt taken a break since then.ā
Ā
Ok, so maybe she was suggesting what he thought she was, but this was a major life change. āButā¦youāre a very well-respected healer.ā
Ā
āAnd you were the top auror,ā she raised a challenging eyebrow at him. āI work with a lot of sexist, bigoted men who donāt respect me because my specialty is sentient creature health. Iām just tired Harry. Iām tired of fighting.ā
Ā
Harry just wrapped her in his arms because he felt that so very deeply. āThen you can stay here with me for as long as you want to, forever if you want,ā he assured her.
Ā
āJustā¦we may need to get you a new name,ā he winced, hoping this wasnāt a deal breaker. āHermione Granger moving in with a bloke not her husband, and literally everyone is going to know Iām Harry Potter.ā
Ā
Hermione scoffed and pulled back to smile at him. āPlease, Ron and I are better than that. We already have me a backstory worked out, and he pulled some strings to get me identification. You knowā¦if youād asked for helpā¦ā
Ā
Harry rolled his eyes. āItās fine. I have an identity. I didnāt want to get Ron more involved than necessary.ā
Ā
āWhatever,ā Hermione said fondly while she pulled a card out of her pocket and passed it over. āYou are looking at your big sister, Maddie Buckley! So, you better have not told your co-workers youāre an only child because youāre going to have a lot of apologizing to do for that blatant lie if you have.ā
Ā
Harry raised an appreciative look at the well-done driverās license. It looked completely legit. āOk, thatās really cool,ā he said emphatically. āI honestly have avoided saying anything about family at all because itās just so bloody difficult to gauge whatās normal and what isnāt for a family when youāre literally an orphan who grew up with people who hated you.ā
Ā
āFairā¦you do still scandalize us with Dursley stories occasionally,ā she nodded with a sad look at that.
Ā
āHave you thought about the fact that you donāt have any education in the muggle world since you were eleven? Thatās one of the reasons Iām in a field that doesnāt require a college degree,ā he warned her, handing the ID back. āWhat are you planning to do if you aren't going to stay in the magical society?ā
Ā
She opened her mouth and closed it before shrugging. āHonestly, my bank account isnāt hurting, and I was planning on some free lodging from my little brother,ā she winked at him. āSo, I was going to take a little time and figure it out. Thereās a correspondence course I can take with Ilvermorny to get certified here in America as a healer, and until then, Iāll just find something to keep me busy and occupied.ā
Ā
āWell thenā¦I guess Iām going to have to introduce you to the 118 then,ā he grinned. āAbby is going to be so excited to hear about you! I can't wait until you two meet!ā
Ā
Hermione looked off with an odd look in her eyes at his comment. He wasnāt sure what that look was for. But whatever, he had plenty of time to figure it out and reconnect with his sister.
Ā
āRight, so now we need to work on your accent,ā Harry got down to business because that had taken him a bloody long time to figure out. āItās difficult, but I can teach you how to do American.ā
Ā
Hermione smirked at him, and Harry was really dreading whatever it was she was about to say. She tapped her wand against her neck. āDear, little brotherā¦you do realize thereās a spell for that?ā She said with a perfect American accent.
Ā
Harry groaned dramatically and fell out on the couch. āHermione, youāre never allowed to leave me on my own again.ā
Ā
She laughed and patted him on the knee. āOf course not, youāre stuck with me now.ā
Ā
Ā
Eddie fucking Diazā¦!
Ā
Everything had been going so well in Buckās life. Like, this was the happiest heād beenā¦maybe ever. He was finally out of his probationary year and a full-fledged firefighter. Even Sergeant Athena Grant was warming up to him instead of looking at him like she was considering all the ways to kill him and get away with it. Hermione, or rather Maddie, was settling in and was really enjoying her new job at 9-1-1 dispatch since she was keeping busy and could still help people. Actually, she was thriving in a place where she was respected and valued over St. Mungoās which had been a tireless battle every day.
Ā
Then, because Fate hated Harry Potter, a fucking muggle vampire showed up at the 118 as their new probationary firefighter! How was he going to hide that he was a wizard from a literal magical creature?! Why was a vampire even working as a first responder?!
Ā
Normally, Harry couldnāt tell just by looking at a person if they had magic or not. That was a very specialized talent you either had to study for years or something you had to be born with as a very rare gift of genetics. However, as the Master of Death, Harry had been able to tell vampires, vetala, banshees, and (of course) inferi on sight because of their association with death.
Ā
Muggle vampires were a little more difficult to detect since they didnāt have any magic of their own, plus they looked more human, could go out in the sun, and could even eat food though it wouldnāt sustain them. It was a trade-off since magical vampires couldnāt be in the sun or eat human food, but they were basically indestructible otherwise and had magic.
Ā
Muggle vampires could die by most things that could kill a human though they couldnāt catch illnesses and would heal quickly. Which means that this muggle vampire had definitely chosen the wrong profession. Yeah, he was immortal if he wasnāt killed, but most of what they dealt with as first responders that could kill a human would also kill a muggle vampire.
Ā
Buck figured this Eddie guy must be a pretty old vampire too if blood just didnāt bother him anymore, which it clearly didnāt just by what he observed of the man during their first shift together. If Eddie was an old one, then it was extremely likely he knew of the magical world and would be in the perfect position to catch any little slip of Buckās. The muggles of the 118 wouldnāt notice a little magic if Buck slipped because their brains were hardwired to explain it away, but not a vampireās. Plus, it led to the question of why an old one would be in such a dangerous profession. Was it possible this Eddie bloke had a death wish and was tired of his existence? If so, then that was completely unacceptable because it put all the rest of the mortals at the 118 in danger.
Ā
Ok, so granted, Harry might not have handled the vampireās presence in the most mature way. Theyād been joking around about the firefighter calendar which Buck could never appear in as a wanted fugitive, but it was still nice to joke about trying out for it anyway. And, well, Eddie bloody Diaz was probably the most gorgeous man Harry had seen in a long time. So, Harry got a little defensive and a little pissy, but sue himā¦this guy was dangerous and everybody just welcomed him with open arms.
Ā
Right, so yeah, he knew how hypocritical that thought was. He was definitely more dangerous than the vampire, and the 118 welcomed everyone. But still, he was protective of his family, and apparently Eddie had fought in a war before becoming a firefighter. So, yeahā¦vampire with a death wish most definitely! He wasnāt going to let anyone, even a Silver Star earning, veteran, medic, vampire, gorgeous-bodied man put any member of his family in any danger whatsoever.
Ā
Ā
And then there was Charlie who liked to collect war memorabilia.
Ā
Harry was a wizard. Why the hell would he need to know anything about grenades?! Apparently, he actually did need to know about grenades when one was embedded in a guyās freaking leg. Honestly, just how exciting and new each day was at the 118 had become the best part of why Buck liked his job. However, a live grenade in a blokeās leg was way outside of even their most insane normal and decidedly not a perk of the job.
Ā
This Eddie guyās nerves were rock solid! Like he was just calmly explaining to Bobby how heād recognized the grenade was live and the dangers of removing it. Even for a vampire with a death wish, this was impressive. Like, Harry knew this probably couldnāt kill him as the Master of Deathā¦although he really didnāt want to test out if he could stick a severed limb back on himself, but still, he was a little nervous about this regardless.
Ā
With a sigh, Buck just followed Eddie back into the ambulance to try to save the guyās life since the military would take too long to get there. āYou really donāt have to go with me,ā Eddie said with that steady, calm tone while Buck and him were fitted with laughably ineffective vests in the case of an explosion.
Ā
Buck just scoffed at him because if that bomb went off, he was the only one with a chance of surviving it. He would have done it by himself, but it was a two person job. āDude, youāre going to logistically need another pair of hands to pull this off. If youāre going to do something stupid and suicidal, then youāre just going to have to get used to me being right there with you.ā
Ā
He was trying to get it across to the man that if Eddie was suicidal, then he needed to take into account the others around him, but Eddieās eyes softened some and he just lookedā¦grateful. Buck didnāt know what that was about, but whatever. If this guy was an old one and knew about magic, then Harry was going to cast the strongest shield he could around the grenade if there was even the slightest danger of it going off. Heād lie or obliviate the guy or something later. Vampires tended to be immune to mind magic, but Harry was willing to try the Elder Wand against that if need be.
Ā
Against all odds, they pulled it off! And Buck didnāt even have to cast anything. Ok, well, the ambulance did blow up, but they were all safely away from it when it happened, so not his problem anymore. Eddie just smiled at him and Bobby as if explosions happened around him every day...which they probably had in a war zone. āSo, anyone up for breakfast?ā
Ā
Bobby laughed incredulously and walked away, and Buck finally saw Eddieās mask slipped. The man was beyond terrified! Eddie breathed out before his mask slipped back into place. Damn! He didnāt have a death wish just a ridiculous ability to compartmentalize, probably hard won in war. Why the hell was a vampire in this job then?!
Ā
āHey, man, youāre badass,ā Eddie gave him a small smile. āYou can have my back any day.ā
Ā
Buck did not understand this guy in the slightest. What the hell? Butā¦Eddie just volunteered to remove a grenade from a humanās leg to save the man when he was terrified himself. And yeah, Buck was all in with both feet and over his head already. He might still not be happy about a vampire slumming it with them, but this guyā¦yeah, he was the real deal.
Ā
āOr, you can have my back,ā Harry smiled at him because yeah, this guy, he might actually be able to trustā¦as long as Eddie never found out Harry had magic.
Ā
Ā
āReally? A vampire?ā Maddieās voice said incredulously over the phone. They were just starting their shifts and had missed each other the past few days with their odd schedules and hadnāt had the opportunity to talk. āWhy would he work as a firefighter? I mean, I know you are as a wizard, but fire can literally kill a muggle vampire.ā
Ā
āNo, freaking idea,ā Buck breathed out and shook his head, stepping out of his jeep in the station parking lot. āDo you think we should ask Ron to do a background check on him? Like see who his sire was and any interactions with the magical world?ā
Ā
āMaybe?ā Maddie huffed. āThat might draw someoneās attention though, which we really don't need. He has to be an old one, right? The blood would be horrible if he wasnāt.ā
Ā
āMust be,ā Buck shouldered his bag and walked towards the building. āHonestly, he seems like a good dude, but know you me, Iām not the best judge of character these days.ā
Ā
Maddie grumbled something, and it sounded like she was opening a door too. āHar, I donāt think Kingsley should be a gauge for how well you judge people. We all trusted him too.ā
Ā
āWhateverā¦ā Buck paused with a frown. āDrat, I forgot to stop and water Abbyās plantsā¦I guess I can stop by after work.ā
Ā
āBuckā¦ā Maddie breathed out in a pained sigh like she really wanted to tell him something he should already have understood.
Ā
āWhatā¦?ā Buck trailed off and had to hold on when the earth started shaking around them. His phone immediately went dead, and he narrowly cast a shield over himself to stop a falling piece of the roof from hitting him in the head.
Ā
When everything stopped shaking, Harry breathed out and looked around. No one was around to see him. And ohā¦wow, that was the first earthquake heād ever experienced. He really was a resident of Los Angeles now, he supposed.
Ā
Harry desperately hoped Hermione was ok, but his phone was still dead. Right, well, a lot of people were about to be in danger. He shouldered his bag again and sprinted towards the locker room since the bell was about to sound any second for all the emergencies currently happening.
Ā
Ā
āWho are you so worried about?ā Buck asked, nudging Eddieās foot across from his own in the firetruck. The man had been anxiously checking his phone all morning even though none of them had a signal. "I'm sure they're fine."
Ā
āMy son,ā he said distractedly, before turning the phone around and showing Harry a picture of the absolute cutest kid with glasses and blond, curly hair. Actually, he reminded Harry of Teddy a little when he was still a little kid and didnāt have blue or green hair at the time.
Ā
āI love kids!ā Harry cooed before the implications of this vampire having a kid hit him. Vampires couldnāt have childrenā¦how did Eddie have a son?
Ā
āBuck basically is a kid himself,ā Hen chuckled teasingly.
Ā
āWhat the hellā¦ā Chimney cut off Harryās thoughts when they finally approached the hotel that looked like it was leaning almost at a 45-degree angle to the road. āHow is that still standing?!ā
Ā
Harry shook his head, pushing everything down. Maybe Eddie had adopted the kid. That made the most sense. He didnāt want to even entertain the other option that Eddie might not be as old as he had been assuming.
Ā
āBuck and Eddie, harness up, youāre going to start at the top while we work the bottom,ā Bobby ordered as they jumped out of the truck.
Ā
āI got you man,ā Eddie smiled and clapped him on the back, finally putting his phone into a pocket of his turnouts.
Ā
āYeah, yeah, no doing anything stupid,ā Buck warned him, because there was still a possibility the vampire had a death wish.
Ā
āPot/kettle, Buckaroo!ā Hen laughing called back over to them.
Ā
Ā
Merlin, Harry missed having a kid! Andromeda was Teddyās main guardian, but as Teddyās godfather, Harry had helped out a lot when Teddy was little. He was as involved as he could be in everything Teddy was involved in. It was only the past few years with Kingsley when heād been pulling away, and Teddy had been at Hogwarts anyway, so it wasnāt like they could hang out every weekend or anything. Teddy was a surly teenager now, and Harry loved him dearly, all tall, gangly grump of him. But Teddy also wasnāt into hugs anymore and wasnāt tiny and cute.
Ā
Christopher Diaz was still tiny and cute and loved hugs though! And he hugged Buck the second they met after the earthquake, and Buck did actually really need that hug. Eddieās truck had been blocked in by debris, so Buck had driven him to pick up his son as soon as they were cleared to leave the station.
Ā
The earthquake had been a rough shift, but their team had all made it out with only bumps and bruises. It had been a little concerning when theyād lost contact with Hen, but Harry had used just a little covert tracking spell that he wasnāt going to tell Hermione about, and they had found her and the little girl she was trapped with well before the building collapsed any more.
Ā
Hermione said the call center had been crazy busy, but she was fine and even volunteered to water Abbyās plants for him. Frankly, at this point, Buck was really just hoping that his loft in the apartment hadnāt fallen or the windows had broken or anything. Yeah, he could fix it, but that would be a pain since heād have to look up architecture spells. He had a feeling a simple reparo wouldnāt put his loft back together if it had fallen in the quake. Maybe Hermione knew some architecture spells...
Ā
Now though, the only thing that mattered was getting Eddie and Christopher Diaz home. Harry grinned at the kid that didnāt look much like Eddie at all, thank Merlin! The adoption theory was definitely gaining more ground. āSo, Christopher, tell me all about what you like to do for fun. Are Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles still cool, or am I just really old?ā
Ā
Chis chuckled and launched into a full explanation of all things seven-year-olds loved to do while Buck drove them home. āThank you,ā Eddie breathed out beside him with a grateful look in his eyes.
Ā
āHey, man, any time. I said I had your back,ā Buck assured him because, yeah, heād gone and done it again. Heād added yet another member to his family, or really two with Christopher. And frankly Buck didnāt care in the slightest that Eddie was a vampire anymore because he was a great dad to Chris and proved already that he was the furthest from a danger to the team.
Ā
Hell, itād turned out that Bobby had actually hired Eddie to keep Buck from doing stupid things! Wellā¦they were both mostly immortal, so it was fine. They could do stupid things together, and Buck would make sure the stupid muggle vampire came home to his very human son all in one piece.
Ā
Ā
What the ever-loving bloody hell and the horse Merlin rode in on?! Buck thought as his brain almost literally made the sound of a record scratching. He couldnāt believe his eyes, but the proof was right there in front of him.
Ā
Eddieās grandmother, or rather abuela, had been watching Chris and had fallen and broken her hip. And Eddieās abuela was the normal age for a muggle abuela!! And the spell Harry surreptitiously cast when he realized that anomaly showed that Chris was definitely Eddieās biological son!!
Ā
Buck pulled out his phone and didnāt even know what to type. He tried several times before giving up and sending an entirely different message to a different person.
Ā
Buck: Hey, Bobby, is it cool if Eddie brings his son back to the station for a while? He has a small childcare issue.
Ā
Bobby: Of course! Weād love to meet him!
Ā
Buck nodded, well, one thing handled. Now, what to do with thisā¦whatever it was. He needed Hermione's help.
Ā
Buck: Mione
Ā
Buck: I donāt know how to tell you thisā¦
Ā
Buck: Eddieās son is 7
Ā
Maddie: Yes, Buck, youāve been talking nonstop about your new bestest friend, Chris, since you met him
Ā
Buck: No, you donāt understandā¦Chis is Eddieās biological son! Like I just met his normal aged, completely human, abuela too!
Ā
Maddie: What the hell!!!
Ā
Buck: Eddie isnāt an old one! Like baby vampire! Like brand-spanking new, right out of the box vampire!!!!!
Ā
Maddie: Is he a masochist or something? How does he handle the blood?
Ā
Buck scoffed at the phone. Right, that would go over well for him to ask.
Ā
Buck: Yeah, Iāll just get right on with asking that. Come on, Hermione!
Ā
āHey, Buck,ā Eddie came up to him in the hospital waiting room with Chris in tow and a concerned frown on his face. āI think Chris needs to come with us. TĆa Pepa canāt pick him up until she gets off work.ā
Ā
Buck frowned but nodded. This sounded like a deeper issue than just that one afternoon. Who was going to watch Chris now that his grandmother was injured? They worked long shifts and someone had to watch Christopher overnight too. If Eddie's aunt had a job, that would make things difficult when Chris wasn't in school.
Ā
āHey, you two going to be ok with your abuela out of commission?ā He asked once they were back at the firehouse and Chris was occupied playing a video game with Chimney. Because masochist or not, and baby vampire or not, Eddie was his best friend now right after Ron and Hermione (yes, he knew it was fast, but it had only taken a train ride to get Ron as his best friend and troll to get Hermione, so this was actually pretty slow for him in the grand scheme of his friendships).
Ā
Eddie sighed and seemed to age a decade, which Buck now knew was impossible. Damn, was he actually older than Eddie?!
Ā
āI just canāt figure out all the paperwork and bureaucracy,ā he let out as if it were actually a failing and not exceptionally understandable. Harry had been known to give up and cheat a little with magic when he got lost in paperwork tooā¦donāt tell the IRS.
Ā
āItās not like I have a lot of time either between work, taking care of Christopher, and trying to, you know, just liveā¦I really donāt want to admit to Bobby how long itās been since I washed dishes, like Buckā¦ā Eddie turned pink. āItās embarrassing.ā
Ā
Harry just laughed and gave his shoulder a fond punch because that was something he could handle easily. āHey, donāt worry about it, man. Weāll get this figured out. Iāll come over tonight and can occupy Chris with a game or movie, and you can do your dishes, or vice versa,ā he offered. āYou donāt have to do everything alone, you know.ā
Ā
Eddie didnāt look like he really believed him, but he still took Buck up on his offer. As soon as Eddie was talking with Hen though, Buck took out his phone, knowing he needed to call in the big guns for this. He just didn't understand muggle, American stuff enough to be the help Eddie needed.
Ā
Buck: Hey, Abby, whatās Carlaās number?
Ā
Three hours later, and Buck hadnāt heard a word from Abby, but then he luckily remembered that he had Carlaās number saved in case of emergencies from when Abbyās mum was still alive. Carla had been her in-home caregiver and was a beast with bureaucracy. Frankly, Buck wasnāt sure Carla wasnāt using magic herself to take care of everything. As far as he could tell, the woman was pure muggle, but she was impressive enough that heād volunteer her to run the entire British Ministry if he could.
Ā
He pulled up the number he didnāt think heād ever actually used before.
Ā
Buck: Hey, Carla, itās Buck. Sorry to be reaching out to you, but I have a favor to ask. Would you be willing to help a single father whose kid has cerebral palsy navigate the paperwork to get childcare? Heās another firefighter. I can pay for your time
Ā
Buck didnāt have to wait more than ten seconds before a response came in.
Ā
Carla: Buckaroo!! How are you?! I was just thinking about you. Of course, sugar! Just name the time and place. I know how to kick some bureaucratic butt!
Ā
Carla: Whatās this about paying for my time?!
Ā
Carla: Boy! You get your head on straight!
Ā
Buck just laughed, drawing a few eyes his direction. He shook his head and went back to his texts.
Ā
Buck: Thanks Carla! U r a lifesaver
Ā
Carla: Iāll take that coming from the firefighter!
Ā
Buck slipped his phone back into his pocket and rushed over to show Christopher the locker room and maybe get a picture of him wearing one of their helmets. Maddie would love to see that! He grabbed onto Eddie and pulled him along too, getting so caught up in making Chrisās trip to the station the most fun ever that he never even realized he hadnāt heard anything back from Abby.
Notes:
Up next: Eddie's POV...
Chapter Text
Eddie really could use some distractions from all the problems in his life if he wasnāt going to completely lose his mind. Unknowingly and thankfully, his new co-worker, Buck, had stepped into that need exceptionally well. Heād only been working at the 118 for a couple months, and Eddie was starting to find it hard to remember a time before Buck in his life. Like, the guy was always there, and not in a bad way either. They were partners on the job, so they always worked together and looked out for each other. Then, Buck would come over and visit and cook a few nights a week, somehow (correctly) assuming that Eddie couldnāt cook for the life of him.
Ā
Now, Eddie did have an excuse about the whole cooking thing, food justā¦wasnāt as good as it used to be. The flavors were very muted now, so it took a ridiculous amount of hot sauce before he could enjoy most meals these days. However, back in PV times (what he was calling his pre-vampire life), Eddie really couldnāt cook either. His mother had taught his sisters, but never him. Then, his wife Shannon had actually liked to cook, so he was shoved out the kitchen quite often when they lived together. Thenā¦then he really only needed to cook for his son, and Christopher would fake-gag at just the sight of a hot sauce bottle. Thankfully, Abuela was trying to fix that little (major) issue when she babysat.
Ā
Then, like an angel shoving itās 6ā 2ā muscly frame into their lives, Buck had just fixed all his childcare issues by introducing the wonder that was Carla to him. Again, he wasnāt sure what life had been like before Carla now except for bad and stressful. And Chris just loved the man! Like Buck knew exactly how to talk to Chris to get him to listen and make him feel heard. If Eddie didnāt know better, he would swear that Buck must be a father himself with how well he understood kids.
Ā
But, by Dracula! (should he start swearing by Dracula? That seemed like a thing. Was Dracula even a real dude? Oh well, it still sounded like a funny, ironic thing at least. Yeahā¦he was definitely going to do that in his own head).
Ā
Anywayā¦by Dracula!...Buck could really be thick-headed for some reason. And the guy was clearly smart. Like he was always on Wikipedia or looking something up during their downtime to learn more, and he was always sharing those facts with Eddie and his son. So, why couldnāt Buck see that heād been ghosted by his girlfriend months ago?! And why wasnāt anyone telling Buck to just let her go?! What was he missing?
Ā
Pondering on his new friend, Eddie stepped into the blood bank over in Van Nuys which was actually the front for the Los Angeles vampire community. God!...no, Dracula!...he never thought heād be making bi-weekly runs to a blood bank like he would the grocery store back before he even knew vampires existed. Heād have tried to have himself committed if someone had told him that. Honestly, he still really didnāt want to know that vampires existed.
Ā
āEdmundo, here like clockwork, as usual,ā the vampire woman behind the counter smiled flirtatiously at him. Eddie just held in his groan and eyeroll. He was not here to make friends, he did not want to date a vampire, he didnāt want to be a vampire, and there was no way in hell heād take this woman out even if he wasnāt still technically married.
Ā
āRaina,ā he nodded stiffly. āSame as usual.ā
Ā
She wrinkled her nose and huffed but started typing his order into the keyboard of the computer. āYouāre the only one who asks for that O+ crap,ā she grumbled. āEveryone else will only take it if weāre out of everything else.ā
Ā
Eddie just shrugged and waited her out. Heād eventually get his blood and could go back to pretending he wasnāt a creature out of horror films for two more weeks before he had to come back to replenish his stock. āItās the cheapest,ā was his honest answer he gave every time she tried to get him to get one of the rarer blood types.
Ā
Eddie wasnāt looking for exotic blood types or whatever Raina meant by blood being a āgood vintage.ā He didnāt want to think about what he was drinking or why he needed it. He just needed to keep living for Chris and be strong enough to do his job and provide for his son.
Ā
At first the bloodlust had been almost unbearable, but Eddie had been turned into a vampire in the middle of a war zone as a medic. There was blood everywhere! So, out of sheer preservation, heād forced himself to get over that exceptionally quickly. To view it was a weakness and push past it. Now, it was only a necessity. One he only begrudgingly allowed himself.
Ā
Raina hit a few more keys before the price popped up on the card reader. Eddie paused before swiping his card with a frown. āThe price has gone up,ā he remarked, doing the calculations in his head. He couldnāt afford this.
Ā
āSupply and demand,ā the woman shrugged and popped the gum she was loudly chewing. āThe earthquake caused a blood shortage in LA, so more of our stock is actually having to go to hospitals, which means higher prices for the vamps. Also, weāre having to move againā¦donāt know where yet.ā
Ā
Eddie groaned and ran a hand over his face. It made sense. While the entire chain of private blood banks was owned by a vampire corporation, the location for vamps to buy the blood had to rotate through their locations to more easily hide the fact that a significant portion of their supply was going to private hands instead of hospitals and first responders. It was annoying though because heād have to track down their new location if he didnāt catch where it was going to be before the move. Which meant talking to other vampiresā¦something he didnāt want to do.
Ā
Raina grinned toothily, unnecessarily showing off her fangs. āYou know, you can supplement your supply the old-fashioned way. Thatās what most of us do.ā
Ā
Eddie narrowed his eyes at the woman. āOh really.ā
Ā
She flipped her hair and smiled even wider. āI know some good clubs. I could show you around. Just find a hottie, take āem out back into the alley, and free dinner. Win-win for price and pleasure.ā
Ā
Eddie held in his shudder. He couldnāt do that. Something about it just made him queasy on a visceral level, and it wasnāt just because he was still technically married. āI donāt think the club scene is for me.ā
Ā
Raina shrugged. āWell, you have the number for the Custodian if you change your mind, right? I know youāre still a newbie around these parts, so we have to keep you informed. I meanā¦just in case thereās a little oopsie.ā
Ā
Eddie really didnāt want to understand what she was asking right now. āOopsie?ā
Ā
āYou knowā¦take a little too much blood,ā Raina slid a business card to him which he automatically took even though he felt like he was holding a live grenade. āThey come and take care of everything for you, you know.ā
Ā
Eddie slid the card in his pocket knowing he would starve before ever being in a position to need to use that card. So, no absolutely not. He sighed and instead did some creative math in his head. He only ever bought the minimum amount of blood he would need for two weeks, but he supposed he could tighten his belt some. Heād rather be hungry than Christopher be affected in any way whatsoever.
Ā
āCut two pints from my usual,ā he told her and nodded at the updated total.
Ā
āSo, where we going clubbing?ā She grinned while he scanned his credit card and waited on the technician to bring his non-descript white cooler.
Ā
āNowhere, Iāll be fine,ā he pursed his lips, knowing it would be rough, but he was fine.
Ā
Raina raised an eyebrow as she passed over the cooler from the tech. āWellā¦you have the business card. Use it if you need to.ā
Ā
Eddie scoffed and took his cooler, getting the hell out of there. He didnāt ask for this life. He didnāt want this life. And none of the advantages of being stronger and healing faster were worth parasitically living off others.
Ā
Ā
Buck was currently making spaghetti in his kitchen, but Eddie fully believed he was miles away in his own mind. Christopher was doing homework and chatting away at Buck who was listening, but only half-way, checking his cellphone every few minutes with a progressively deeper frown. He wondered if it was something with Buckās sister. He hadnāt met Maddie yet, but Buck was always singing her praisesā¦which turned out to be extremely odd when the rest of the 118 said they hadnāt even known Buck had a sister until she showed up.
Ā
āIs everything ok with Maddie?ā Eddie asked while sipping at the thermos that contained his very carefully rationed portion of blood for the day. He was so very hungry, but it was worth it because Chris was able to get the new shoes he really needed.
Ā
Buck hummed before looking up from the pan and blinking as if he was trying to figure out what Eddie had asked from context clues. āYour sisterā¦Maddie? She alright?ā Eddie asked again with a little smirk at Buckās blank expression.
Ā
āOh, yeah, sheās great!ā Buck got that dopey grin on his face anytime his sister was brought up. It was obvious just how much he loved her, and every time, it made Eddie feel the need to call his own sisters.
Ā
āEverything ok with the ex-husband?ā Eddie asked next. Buck always said things were good with his sisterās ex, but they had both moved across the country and away from any of their family seemingly without notice. It made Eddie a little suspicious. Wellā¦it technically made Chimney suspicious who felt the need to share all his theories with Eddie and Hen, so they were by extension a little suspicious as well that things werenāt as great as the two siblings tried to let on. Also, they never mentioned their parents...that was strange, right?Ā
Ā
āHmm? Heās fine,ā Buck waved him off but checked his phone yet again. Buck sighed and shook his head before putting the phone back in his pocket. āActually, Maddie just found her own place and is moving in a few days. We could really use you and maybe Chim or whoever to help us put together her new furniture if youāre free next weekend. Free pizza and beer on us.ā
Ā
Eddie took a sip from his thermos. āI thought you lived in a house with a bunch of roommates. Has Maddie been staying with you this whole time? Iām surprised it took her this long to move if so.ā
Ā
Buck flushed and seemed to pause to formulate an answer. Damn, was Buck still living at Abbyās condo?! Come on! Someone needed to tell him to move on!
Ā
āCan I help put together furniture?ā Chris asked from where he was very clearly procrastinating his math homework now.
Ā
āOf course, little man!ā Buck grinned at him. āI think we should make you the Minister of Planning, and have you tell everyone else what to do! I'll even get you a clipboard!ā
Ā
And thereā¦sometimes Buck said things like that which seemed a little odd. Who had job titles that were called āministers?ā Likeā¦he thought heād heard that on the BBC once maybe, but Buck sometimes had some strange references.
Ā
āAwesome!ā Chris cheered and then pouted with Eddie pointedly tapped at the worksheet he was supposed to be doing before dinner. Honestly, Eddie felt a little useless since Buck had banned him from even touching a spatula, so at least he could try to keep his son on track.
Ā
āRight, so I guess I forgot to tell everyone that I got my own place when Abby left,ā Buck said, looking into the boiling water of noodles instead of at them. Was Buck lying? Why would he be?
Ā
āWhich reminds me,ā Buck turned off the burner and grabbed a colander to drain the water from the noodles. āAbbyās neighborhood had a power outage yesterday. I really should go check on her place and make sure everything looks good. Iād hate for her to come back and the HVAC wasnāt working.ā
Ā
Eddie snapped the lid shut on his thermos and put it to the side to clean out once Buck was gone, and he could get rid of the evidence of what it contained. It didnāt look like anyone else was going to say anything. Why did this fall to Eddie? Heād only known Buck for a couple months. Yeah, they were like best friends already, but still, shouldnāt this be Bobby who did the whole fatherly-thing with Buck or even his own sister? Why did it seem everyone was leaving this to Eddie who was seriously a mess? Like no one should come to him for advice!
Ā
āDinner!ā Buck proudly proclaimed before plopping a large bowl of spaghetti on the table.
Ā
Eddie winced at it, wondering how likely it was that he could get away with just not eating. With a huge grin, Buck added the hottest bottle of hot sauce Eddie owned to the table beside it. Well, he supposed that answered his question. Maybe it would fool his stomach some into not feeling quite so hungry.
Ā
Ā
The kitchen was cleaned up, Christopher was asleep, and Buck was awkwardly puttering around his living room like he always did when he didnāt seem to be able to tell if he should leave or not. Eddie chuckled at how such a large man could try to make himself invisible in a fairly small house. Buck should know he could stay as long as he wanted to by now. Eddie didn't understand why he always looked like he was ready to run as soon as someone noticed he was there.
Ā
āSit,ā he ordered Buck before taking two beers out of the fridge and joining his friend on the couch. Honestly, for this conversation, they probably needed tequila, but Eddie didnāt exactly have tequila money when he didnāt have blood money, so yeah, beer it was.
Ā
Buck checked his phone again, and it finally sank in what he was looking for. āYou havenāt heard from Abby in a while, have you?ā Eddie asked, trying to seem as non-judgmental as he possibly could when he definitely was judging Abby significantly at the moment. He'd never met the woman, but he knew Buck, and Buck deserved better than this.
Ā
Buck frowned and picked at the label on the beer bottle. āNoā¦I hadnāt realized itād been so longā¦I, uhā¦well, I asked what country she was in this morning, but she hasnāt texted anything back.ā
Ā
Eddie held his hand out and waited. Clearly Buck didnāt want to hand the phone over, but he eventually did with a pink tinge marking his cheeks. Buck knew what Eddie was going to find.
Ā
Two taps of his finger on the screen and Eddie had all the evidence he needed. āBuck,ā he breathed out. āAbby hasnāt called you in over a month and hasnāt texted you in almost three weeks.ā
Ā
Buck winced. āThatā¦I know how it soundsā¦ā
Ā
āDo you really?ā Eddie handed the phone back with a raise of his eyebrow. āLet me tell you a story.ā
Ā
Buckās brow furrowed but he nodded his head. āOk, not where I saw this going, but ok.ā
Ā
āSo, this guy, letās call himā¦Freddie,ā Eddie said with a little smirk at Buck who rolled his eyes. āFreddie married young, his high school sweetheart. His wifeā¦letās call her Tannenā¦ā
Ā
Buck actually snorted at that. āRight, Freddie and Tannenā¦go onā¦ā
Ā
āAnyway,ā he took a sip of his beer to organize his thoughts. Itās not like he could explain the whole vampirism issue with his ex-ish wife, so skirting that issueā¦
Ā
āTannen got pregnant while they were still dating, and they were both so very excited to have a child,ā Eddie continued. āBut they werenāt married at the time and not really financially stable. They werenāt planning on having a baby, and they were just starting out in their careers. Tannen was an event planner and was just building a client base, and Freddie had decided to go to nursing school after having worked in a factory for a while after graduation. He was only one year in though, and it was expensive.ā
Ā
āThat sounds like a lot of stress,ā Buck gave him that understanding smile that always made Eddie feel so seen even when no one else ever seemed to understand him.
Ā
Eddie just nodded. āWell, Freddie couldnāt keep going to nursing school, but he could enlist in the Army to pay for the wedding and the hospital bills and support Tannen and the baby. With his schooling, he was even qualified to train to be a medic, so he was still helping people.ā
Ā
āSounds like a good pivot,ā Buck said supportively.
Ā
āMaybe,ā Eddie looked off into the distance. āIt had Freddie away from home a lot though. He missed a lot when his son was a baby, and Shannonā¦sorry, Tannen felt abandoned. It didnāt help that he came back from his first tourā¦different than when he left.ā
Ā
Eddie left it at that. Buck could assume PTSD over vampirism. That was a very safe assumption. Who in their right mind would ever guess vampirism?
Ā
āBut he did come back,ā Buck actually reached over and squeezed his knee, which Eddie hadnāt realized he really did need. He gave his friend a little smile for the support.
Ā
āWell, after a while, Freddie thought that maybe it would be best for his marriage to re-enlist and serve a second tourā¦to give Tannen some space and because their son it turned out was going to need a few surgeries and physical therapy and a lot of doctorsā appointments. Tannenās event planning business was doing better, but not enough to support them, and Freddie wasnāt doing greatā¦so he went back to what he knewā¦ā
Ā
āWhich Tannen didnāt actually want?ā Buck guessed with no judgement in his look surprisingly.
Ā
Eddie shrugged. Honestly, he didnāt know. Shannon had made a big deal about him enlisting without telling her, but there was also a relieved look in her eyes underneath it all. No matter how many times he assured her that she was safe, there was always still a little fear when she looked at him. Maybe he should have stayed and they try to figure it out, but at the time, he really did think it was what she wanted. When your wife realized she wasnāt just your wife and mother of your son anymore but also dinnerā¦that changed things in a relationship significantly. Eddie honestly didnāt blame her one bit for it either, then at least.
Ā
āWhen Freddie came back from that second tour with an honorable discharge, things wereā¦rocky,ā Eddie sighed. They really had tried to make it work then, but it was actually PTSD this time.
Ā
āTannen left?ā Buck asked, seeming to realize now where the connection was.
Ā
Eddie nodded. āYeah, and Freddie waited. He waited for two years thinking sheād eventually come back home. But it wasnāt healthy. Eventually, you have to move on, and while Freddieā¦while I may have waited, I knew Shannon wasnāt coming back a long time before Chris and I left El Paso for here.ā
Ā
Buck looked into his eyes like he could see Eddieās soul. Eddie thought it would make him squirm or be uncomfortable, but something about Buckās look just made him feel safe. āAbbyās not coming back,ā Buck said for probably the first time since she boarded an airplane, before Eddie and him had even met.
Ā
āNo, Buck, she isnāt,ā Eddie said confidently, reaching over to squeeze Buckās knee like he had done before.
Ā
āDamnā¦I did it again,ā Buck let out a breath that felt like it had roots in trauma.
Ā
āWhat do you mean?ā He frowned. There was a story here, and a significant one at that.
Ā
Buck just shook his head and put his still full beer on the table. āNothing. I need to go. Iām helping Maddie pack, and heyā¦Iāll have you over to my new place once Maddie moves out since apparently you havenāt been there yet.ā
Ā
āIād like that,ā Eddie said, not wanting to let Buck go like this, but also not thinking of anything to stop him besides physically pulling him back to the couch.
Ā
āDrive safe!ā He called out since there wasnāt anything else he could do.
Ā
āTake care of Freddie for me,ā Buck grinned widely before pulling the front door closed behind him.
Ā
Eddie swapped his empty beer out for Buckās full one and just sat there. He needed to get Buck a key to his place. Yes, random thought, but Buck was over all the time anyway, and maybe it would make him feel needed and wanted. Yeah, that was a good idea. Heād have a key cut in the morning and give it to him on their next shift. No big dealā¦like maybe he should hide the blood in the back of the fridge more, but besides that, no big deal at all.
Ā
Ā
āHermione, I did it again! Why do I keep doing this?!ā Harry dramatically crashed down onto his couch beside his best friend who was currently deep into working on her correspondence course with Ilvermorny to be healer certified in the U.S.
Ā
Hermione looked up and just shook her head at his dramatics. āDid what? Kill a dark lord? Weāre not due another one of those for like a year if your luck holds.ā
Ā
āHa, ha,ā he deadpanned and shifted back into his base form.
Ā
Frustratedly, he pulled Hermioneās hair band off her wrist to her protests and forced his long, black hair up into a messy bun. He could make it shorter like he used to do, but in order to rest his abilities, he had to let all his changes go. So, cutting it himself was probably the only real option he had, and frankly, he didnāt trust himself or Hermione with scissors after he saw Ronās haircuts during their year on the run.
Ā
Unfortunately, he hadnāt really known how long his hair had gotten since the last time his Aunt Petunia had tried to cut it pre-Hogwarts. Heād whacked off a good three feet with his kitchen scissors when he finally stopped all the changes he'd been making and was horrified to find it was almost to his knees. It might not be the most stylish, but it also wasnāt his normal and recognizable look if he accidentally got caught out not in his āBuckā form.
Ā
āBuy yourself hairbands and stop stealing mine,ā she smacked his side with her book. āNow what did you do? And do I need to call Ron for damage control?ā
Ā
āWhat? No!ā Harry scoffed. He was able to take care of himselfā¦well, ok, maybe his current situation didnāt really support that.
Ā
āAbby,ā he finally said, leaning against the back of the couch and pulling his long legs up to curl up into himself more.
Ā
If Hermione werenāt there, heād currently be cramming himself into his bedroom closet. While it definitely wasnāt the healthiest coping mechanism, small spaces and cupboards in particular calmed him. His cupboard growing up was his safe space. It was the one place Dudley, Vernon, and Petunia could physically get into, so they had to leave him be there. Even if it was also a prison, it was still protection. He thought heād lose his safe space after Kingsley shoved him in a closet after their last encounter, but noā¦it was still where he went when things were too overwhelming. Actuallyā¦maybe he would go spend some time there after he told Hermione anyway. He really could use some alone time.
Ā
āDid you hear from her?ā Hermione asked, but Harry could see it in her eyes that she didnāt believe that. She pursed her lips and waited.
Ā
āI thought Iād broken out of the cycle of toxic relationships,ā he sniffed. āSheās not coming back though. She justā¦she didnāt even bother to tell me we were done. Like, I didnāt even deserve a text to hear that she was moving on and to stop waiting. I texted her this morning, and yesterday, and the day beforeā¦she could have said anytimeā¦ā
Ā
āOh, love,ā Hermione wrapped her arms around him and pulled him down to where his head was on her shoulder. āWhen you first met her, I didnāt think she would hurt you either. I hoped this would be a healthy relationship for you.ā
Ā
Harry sniffed back the tears that really wanted to fall. āI really know how to pick them. At least this one just left me like a bag of trash on the curb and didnāt try to kill me.ā
Ā
Hermione hugged him tighter. āWell, thatās one step forward at least.ā
Ā
Merlin, it was sad she was right. āWhy didnāt you tell me?ā
Ā
Hermione pulled back some to look at him. Her eyes shown with care and sadness. āWould you have listened to me?ā
Ā
Harry just snuggled right back down into her neck, because that was fair. āMaybe we need to work out some kind of code-word that I have to listen to when you tell me Iām in a toxic relationship. Like, no protests, just get out no matter how healthy I think it is.ā
Ā
āAnd āget outā isnāt enough?ā She chuckled but sounded serious in the question.
Ā
āNah,ā he answered. āSomething that says this isnāt an opinion but definitive fact, and Harry is being self-destructive again. Likeā¦I donāt knowā¦Norberta or something. She was Hagridās self-destructive dream, so maybe thatāll help me see Iām chasing my own.ā
Ā
āI can do that,ā Hermione said seriously. āWhat finally made you realize this tonight?ā
Ā
āEddie,ā Harry pulled back and looked at her with a frown. His new addition to his best friends was a vampire. Was that self-destructive?
Ā
āHey, āMione? Eddie is ok, right? Like this isnāt a Norberta situation, right? I mean, I know weāre not dating, but stillā¦Iām crap at figuring people out these days,ā he admitted, really hoping Eddie was not a toxic relationship.
Ā
He really liked Eddie and Chis, and that vampire couldnāt cook to save his life, and Harry refused to allow Christopher to live on take-away. Plus, it was Eddieās probationary year, Harry knew you didnāt make a lot of money then. Harry was independently wealthy, but Eddie wasnāt and had a son with special needs. Any time Harry could bring over some groceries and cook for them, he definitely was going to. Thankfully, Eddie hadnāt really realized Harry was funding a lot of the grocery trips yet, probably because he always handed Harry cash, and then Harry magically returned it to his wallet when he wasnāt looking.
Ā
āYou do better than you think you do,ā Hermione smiled at him. āI think Eddie is fine. Iād like to meet him, but he seems to be doing the best he can. Plus, you said heās a great dad, which says a lot. I donāt think this is a Norberta situation, not yet anyway.ā
Ā
āEven though heās a vampire?ā Harry checked just to be sure.
Ā
Hermione shrugged and picked up her textbook again. āHonestly, if anyone was going to be your partner at work, itās probably best itās a vampire. Someone needs to keep up with you and a man whoās faster, stronger, and heals more quickly than a mortal is probably best for that job. You're kind of a handful, little bro.ā
Ā
Harry just nodded and rested, thankful that one relationship was Hermione approved now. Maybe he needed her to check over all of them. āI wonder where heās getting blood?ā
Ā
Hermione looked up and squinted. āClubbing? One-night stands?ā
Ā
Harry frowned, he didnāt like the sound of that for some reason. He didnāt know why, but he felt that Eddie deserved better. āNo, he was drinking out of a thermos earlier. Plus, with his schedule and the amount of time he spends with Chris, that's pretty much impossible.ā
Ā
āThere are a few vampire corporations out there who own blood banks,ā Hermione shrugged and went back to her textbook as if that was common knowledge. Harry had dealt with a few vampires as an auror, but those were only vampires who had broken some pretty serious laws. He didn't actually know what the law-abiding ones did to survive and thrive.
Ā
āItās actually quite symbiotic. They pay their donors well, still send a lot of their supply to hospitals, and all while keeping the vampires in the area fed. Itās a good system that benefits everyone. We didnāt need blood at St. Mungoās with blood replenishing potions, but I had a few patients who donated to a vampire blood bank for extra galleons. They pay extra for exotic blood-types like what youād get from magical creatures. They really seem to like centaur blood for some reason. Like you could get ten galleons for one donation as a centaur.ā
Ā
Harry whistled at the price. He wondered if his blood would be tasty, or if being Master of Death made him poisonous or something. Probably best to not attempt a donation. He really didnāt need anyone to find something concerning in his blood.
Ā
Ā
āThis looks wonderful Mr. Diaz,ā the school administrator smiled at him and Carla. "I don't see anything to keep Christopher from starting here almost immediately."
Ā
Was this actually working out for them? Eddie couldnāt believe Carla had found this school that was just what Christopher needed and within their price range! It was a miracle, and he didnāt even believe in those.
Ā
āNow, we just need to meet with Mrs. Diaz to finalize the paperwork,ā the woman smiled as if this didnāt just shake the entire foundation of Eddieās world. āAs soon as you can have her come in is best. Have a great day!ā
Ā
Eddie just stood there, dumbfounded. What was he going to do? Why? But� Of course they needed to meet Shannon though. They had to check that Chris wasn't kidnapped or something. But what was he going to do now?
Ā
āEddie,ā Carla snapped her fingers in front of his face, bringing his attention back to her. āYou and Shannon are divorced, right? Just go tell the nice administration lady. They just need to see the custody agreement to make sure you have the authority to make the decisions about his school.ā
Ā
Eddie was already shaking his head though. āNo, we never got divorced, we donāt even have a custody agreement. Iām still married to Shannon.ā
Ā
āWell, fudge,ā Carlaās face fell. Yeah, there was no getting out of this. āOk, well, where does she live? Is she still in Texas?ā
Ā
Eddie just stood there in horrified silence. He hadnāt come to LA because of his wife. Heād frankly moved there because of the vampire-run blood banks and the LAFD. Howeverā¦
Ā
āHere, she lives here,ā he finally told Carla who looked both relieved that it was as simple as that and also worried about him reaching out. Yeah, Eddie was worried too. What if she tried to take Chris? He was still a vampire. Honestly, he wasnāt sure why she left their son with him to begin with. Sheād made it very clear she wasnāt comfortable with what he was. He didnāt think he could win against her if she took him to court.
Ā
No, he was spiraling. He could just reach out and ask if she would talk to the school. She had left Chris with him, why would she take him away now? She hadnāt even attempted to reach out since she left. He could do thisā¦he survived as a new vampire in a war zone, he could call his Dracula-be-damned wife on the phone!
Notes:
Up next: Maddie and Chimney...
Chapter Text
āNo, you have to attach the L looking thing to another L looking thing, not the T thing,ā Christopher insisted with his nose scrunched up super cute while looking at the instructions.
Ā
āUhā¦ā Buck held up the two pieces he was holding, neither of which looked like an L or a T in his opinion.
Ā
āLet me see,ā Eddie put down his screwdriver and took the clipboard from Christopher which had the directions on it. āHmmā¦heās right, Buck. Attach it to this,ā he handed a plastic piece over that still didnāt look like an L.
Ā
āWell, thatās why he has the clipboard,ā Buck shrugged and tried to attach the new piece, trusting them whether he knew what they were talking about or not.
Ā
He didnāt understand why they couldnāt just magic all Maddieās new furniture together. She said it was a bonding experience or something. Honestly, Buck thought it would be better to magic everything together and just invite people over for pasta or a barbeque or something. What did Americans do for flat-warming type situations? This bookshelf was about to have him breaking the Statute of Secrecy just over how frustrated he was at it currently.
Ā
āSeriously, how have you not seen Princess Bride?!ā Chimney was wildly waving his arms around while he followed Maddie into the sitting room of her flat where they were assembling her ridiculous bookshelf for her ridiculous amount of books.
Ā
āIām a little behind on pop culture,ā she chuckled and handed a glass of water to Chris who now had the instructions upside down in his hand for some reason.
Ā
Chimney huffed. āYouāre as bad as your brother! How do you both have no knowledge of any classic cinema?! That movieās from the late 80ās.ā
Ā
āDude, you were trying to call Harold and Kumar Go to White Castle classic cinema the other day,ā Eddie protested with a raise of his eyebrow. āI donāt think youāre an expert in this.ā
Ā
āIt is a classic!ā Chimney threw one of the things that supposedly looked like an L at Eddieās head, but the vampire expertly dodged it. āDid your parents not let you watch TV or something growing up?ā
Ā
āNah.ā
Ā
āNot really,ā Harry and then Hermione both answered. They might not have been raised together, but Hermioneās parents pushed books over telly, and Harryās aunt and uncle locked him in his cupboard while the rest of them watched the television in the evenings, so noā¦neither one had seen many shows or been to the cinema much at all.
Ā
Chimney sputtered as if that was a crime against humanityā¦which it may kind-of be in Harryās case. Whatever⦠Christopher looked scandalized too, which just wasnāt acceptable though.
Ā
āHey, Chris,ā Buck smiled at him. āMaybe you can introduce me to your favorite movies then since I havenāt seen many. I'm always up for a movie night with my favorite person.ā
Ā
Christopher nodded solemnly as if accepting a very serious and important job. āYes, we'll start with Toy Story, that oneās important,ā he said before frowning at his dad. āDaddy, thatās the wrong screw-thing. Itās supposed to be the one thatās flat on top.ā
Ā
Eddie looked at the screw he was forcing into the shelf and sighed dramatically. āHow important are books really?ā He groaned, getting a completely scandalized look from Hermione that matched Chimneyās from only moments before.
Ā
"Bite your tongue, Diaz!" She scolded with a glare.
Ā
āHey, why donāt we all go to the classic movie night on Saturday at the Ritz Theater together and see Princess Bride?ā Chimney asked, not ready to change subjects from what he viewed as exceptionally important just yet. āEven Chris would like that movie.ā
Ā
āCan we?ā Chris turned puppy-dog eyes that had Buck melting already onto his dad who just shook his head and held firm instead of caving.
Ā
āSorry, mijo,ā Eddie said, actually sounding really sorry at the whole situation. āBuck is coming over that night to help you with that history project you have, and I have that meeting for your new school.ā
Ā
Buck nodded firmly and put a hand on Chrisās back. He knew this wasnāt exactly a meeting for Chrisās new school. Eddie had set up a meeting with Shannon to talk about her going to meet with the school administration, and Buck was going to watch Chris while they were doing that. He didnāt know anything at all about American or even muggle history, but he could glue pieces of a diorama together and keep Eddieās kid distracted while he met with his estranged wife if nothing else. He really didnāt know what all went down in the past between Eddie and Shannon, but he had a feeling it was bad and only wished he could help more.
Ā
āWe could go to the movie with them Buck, without Dad,ā Chris tried next, and damn, but his puppy-eyes were good. It was a good thing Harry had a whole lot of practice with Teddyās just as killer puppy-eyes over the years, or he really would cave.
Ā
āSorry, buddy, but you do have to finish that diorama even if you move to the new school. Your dad said they send over your grades,ā he reminded the kid who just huffed and went back to the bookcase instructions.
Ā
āHey, you two can go without us,ā Buck looked up at Chimney and Maddie with a shrug, thinking they would probably make good friends. They might not have exactly the same interests, but they both liked medicine, learning, and having fun, so it couldn't be a terrible idea at least. āTell me if itās any good, and maybe Eddie, Chris, and I can do it as a movie night later.ā
Ā
āItās good, seriously Buck, thatās what Iāve been saying,ā Chimney glared and oddly flushed with a small, hopeful look over at Maddie. Buck didnāt know what that was for, but sometimes he just really didnāt get mugglesā¦or maybe it was just people he didnāt get.
Ā
Buck just grinned at his friend regardless of whatever was going on. āYeah, but I trust Maddieās taste more than yours, rebar-head.ā Chim threw another plastic piece at Buck's head this time that he let hit. Chimney should get one at least.
Ā
āIām up for it if you are,ā Maddie messed up Buckās hair, which was much easier to do when it was short and she wouldnāt lose a hand in all the tangles. He wasnāt very good at brushing it out since he still wasnāt used to having hair well past his shoulders now.
Ā
āCool,ā Chimney shrugged and flushed again just as the doorbell rang.
Ā
Maddie looked over at it. āThatās the pizza, would you get it?ā She asked Chimney since sheād started sorting the screws to make it easier on them. āI already paid online.ā
Ā
āAs you wish,ā Chimney jumped up and got a laugh from Eddie and no one else. āSeriously! We have to make you watch this movie!ā
Ā
āShouldnāt you be better at this, Buck,ā Eddie stole the plastic thingy from Buck he was currently trying to screw onto a shelf. āYou actually worked in construction unlike the rest of us.ā
Ā
Buck blinked at him for a second before his brain caught up. Oh yeahā¦that was one of the fake jobs heās created to explain away the fact he could just reparo things back together when no one was looking. Bollocks! That didnāt really help when people were watching him try to put something together in front of them thoughā¦ok, he could sell thisā¦
Ā
āYeah, but we actually used real materials, not this plastic crap and cardboard masquerading as wood,ā he grumbled. Eddie nodded as if that made perfect sense. Brilliant! Heād bought it.
Ā
āHey! My bookcase isnāt that bad,ā Maddie huffed but gave him a fond eyeroll with just a hint of exasperation at his convoluted backstory he had only passingly attempted to explain to her.
Ā
Hermione had kept her backstory very simple. She was a nurse back in Pennsylvania where they were supposedly from, recently divorced, and had moved here to start over and reconnect with her brother. Harry had taken the opposite strategy and had created a plethora of crazy jobs to explain away all his travels and weird knowledge-base and skillset.
Ā
With all heād done in his life, there wasnāt one job to explain it all away besides auror thoughā¦and yeah, he couldnāt really tell his muggle co-workers heād been a magical cop after fighting in a magical war as a child soldier now, could he? Oh, and also, he was currently a fugitive because his abusive ex was the leader of a country of magical people and wanted him back under his control. Yeah, that wouldnāt go over well in the slightest.
Ā
Harry had a feeling he should probably put together a timeline of all his travels and jobs. Right now, if someone asked if heād worked in construction first or as a ranch hand heād have no bloody clue. Did he try out for the SEALs first or was he a bartenderā¦yeah, no idea. He should probably figure out if it was even possible for him to have had all those jobs and still be the fake-age of 27 he was pretending to be as well. Yeah, that should probably be a priority next time he had a minute and a piece of paper.
Ā
āPizza break!ā Chimney called from where heād set up the pizza with paper plates on Maddieās newly constructed kitchen table.
Ā
Ā
āSee you Saturday!ā Chimney called out behind him excitedly, the last to leave Maddieās apartment.
Ā
āFinally,ā Buck sighed and closed the door behind the man who had lingered long after all the furniture was built.
Ā
Maddie chuckled as she picked up the empty beer bottles and plates to take to the rubbish bin. āYou can head out too, Harry. I got the rest of this. You donāt need to help.ā
Ā
Harry just scoffed and pulled a wooden box out of the expanded satchel he carried with him most places. It was his go-bag heād developed from Hermioneās beaded bag that had saved their arses while on the run. He learned from mistakes, and he didn't want to be caught on the run without supplies ever again in his life. In the bag, he kept several changes of clothes, a magical tent, most of his spellbooks, his holly wand, enough non-perishable food for a month, and basic healing potions. If he wasnāt working, he probably had the bag on him or close by him anyway. Yes, he was paranoid, but this was the third time heād had to go on the run so far (he definitely counted after he blew up his Aunt Marge before third year because he'd probably learned the most of what not to do from that experience).
Ā
Anyway, the wooden box had been added before he left Grimmauld Place for his flat off Diagon Alley because you never could be too careful. If he was going to have to start his life over again, it was best to do it right. With a flick of his wand, the box opened, and he pulled out a hairbrush, a sock, and a toothbrush.
Ā
āHey! Thatās my hairbrush!ā Hermione protested once she re-entered the sitting room from the kitchen. āWhat are you doing? Why do you have that? I lost it years ago.ā
Ā
Harry paused where he was summoning bottles of potion out of the bag next. āErā¦sorry?ā He said, not really sorry at all. āLook, I needed something of yours. I know you are really, very capable, Hermione, but youāre a healer, not an auror, so this is more my thing.ā
Ā
Hermione crossed her arms and leaned against the doorframe. āYouāre about to do something very concerning and exceptionally paranoid, arenāt you?ā
Ā
Ok, so Harry did think about her words and if they had merit, he owed her that much. āNope, this is actually reasonable,ā he concluded. āIām just warding your flat. You might not have as many people who want you dead as I do, but plenty of people would come after you to get to me, and there are a handful of Death Eaters still loose who would want to see you dead in your own right too.ā
Ā
Hermione gave that a considering nod. āI had planned to ward the flat myself, but I see your point. Ron warded our last place and added a few wards I hadnāt heard of.ā
Ā
āExactly,ā Harry unstoppered the first potion. āI just need to put this in every corner, chant a few things, cast some spells, and burn some incense, and Bobās your uncle!ā
Ā
āAnd my hairbrush is to set the wards to meā¦what about the sock and toothbrush,ā Hermione narrowed her eyes. āHarry, did you steal Ronās toothbrush?ā
Ā
āMaybe,ā he shrugged and started dribbling a little potion in each corner of the room. āIām sure he got another one. Last I saw he had all his teeth at least.ā
Ā
Hermione huffed a laugh. āI remember when that happened; he thought Crookshanks stole it!ā
Ā
Harry had to pause with a sad smile. āI miss Crookshanks.ā
Ā
Hermione nodded and watched while he continued the ritual. āHe lived a good, long life for a half-kneazle. I think he was like 150 in cat years. One of these days, maybe I should get another cat.ā
Ā
He just nodded in agreement as he continued to work. āWell, Iām added myself and Ron with you to the wards. Anyone else you want me to add?ā Harry asked, not being able to think of anyone.
Ā
āNo one else,ā she confirmed.
Ā
Harry paused after running through everyone they knew in his head. āErā¦how much do you think Eddie will be over here?ā
Ā
Hermioneās eyes widened, catching the issue. āWere you planning to ward against all vampires?ā
Ā
āAll dark creatures actually,ā Harry winced, knowing her thoughts on how prejudiced it was to ward against an entire group of people. Ā
Ā
āHarryā¦ā
Ā
āLook, if you have a friend who has creature blood, Iāll add them, but warding against people you donāt know is perfectly acceptable. Itās just easier to knock out dark creatures as a whole with one ward,ā he cut her off. āIām warding against magical people you donāt know as well, and if it was possible to ward against muggles with evil intent I would. I canāt ward against all muggles, or youād end up yelling at me since you wouldnāt be able to get any of your Amazon packages.ā
Ā
Hermione glared at him, but couldnāt seem to come up with a good argument. āFineā¦ā she grumbled and went back to the kitchen. She re-entered the room a couple seconds later with a beer bottle from the rubbish bin. āHere, itās the one Eddie was drinking from. Just add him to the wards so he doesnāt catch fire or something if I ask him over for tea.ā
Ā
āGreat!ā He grinned widely.
Ā
āErā¦I should probably do that for my own place too,ā his face fell when he realized Eddie probably would catch fire if he tried to get into Harryās place currently. Yeah, not great. Harryās wards weren't exactly legal.
Ā
āCan I keep this?ā He held up the bottle.
Ā
āKnock yourself out,ā Hermione rolled her eyes and picked up a book to settle on the couch and read.
Ā
Harry worked in silence for a while, muttering spells under his breath and burning sage now to ward against ghosts. āHey, Harryā¦ā Hermione cut into his concentration. āIs it weird that Iām going to watch a movie with Chimney alone this weekend, just the two of us?ā
Ā
āWhy would that be weird?ā He frowned, blowing out the smoking sage. āChimās a cool guy. He can be a little annoying, but who isnāt?ā
Ā
Hermione closed her book and pursed her lips though. āWellā¦does it sound kind-of like a date to you?ā She finally asked.
Ā
Harry thought about it while mixing the last two potions together. āIt sounds more like friends hanging out to me. Butā¦if it did end up as a date, would that be a bad thing? I donāt know if heās your type or not since Iāve only known you to date Krum and Ron, and they are wildly different from each other. Ron and you have basically been over for a while though, right? So, getting out there may be a good thing.ā
Ā
Hermione didnāt look too sure about that. āIām not so sure Iām ready.ā
Ā
Harry smiled kindly at her. āWell, just keep it a friends-thing then. Chimneyās a great guy, and Iām not trying to date him, so heās probably perfectly non-violent and unlikely to sell you out to the press.ā
Ā
āYou really do have the worst luck with dating,ā Hermione winced. āYouāre right though. He seems sweet, and heās really funny. I could use more friends outside of my little brother and my ex-husband.ā
Ā
Harry chuckled. āYeah, yeah, Iām only a few months younger than you no matter what I look like, and not biologically your brother if you remember.ā
Ā
Hermione smirked and picked up her book again. āBite your tongue, Evan Buckley,ā she teased. āOur fake parents would be so disappointed in you saying we arenāt really related.ā
Ā
āMaddie Buckley, my dearā¦ā Harry full-on laughed. āIām pretty sure my co-workers are starting to believe those fake parents are pretty shitty people based on how much we deflect whenever theyāre brought up.ā
Ā
Hermione just shrugged. āWell, donāt mention your cupboard anywhere around Athena. She will definitely fly out to Hershey, Pennsylvania and harass those poor people who you stole their kidās identity from if you do.ā
Ā
Harry shuddered, knowing he could never let that happen. He felt very protective of the original Evan Buckleyās parents and had sent them quite a lot of money under the guise of a tax break or something to soothe some of his guilt there. āHermione, you are very scary, and Athena is very scary, and Iām worried that the two of you being friends now may just lead to Armageddon and the end of the world.ā
Ā
Hermione flashed him a brilliant smile. āWell, at least you know our side has tea and biscuits then.ā
Ā
āBloody biscuits that I made,ā Harry just muttered under his breath, not brave enough to say it out loud because Hermione really would start Armageddon with Athena if it was necessary. He wondered how SPEW was doing⦠maybe he should donate some more money just in caseā¦
Ā
Ā
Eddie felt terrible! He needed blood badly, but he couldnāt break out of his carefully rationed schedule, or heād starve later when he needed to start a 48-hour shift. When heād come up with this plan at the blood bank, he hadnāt factored in the entire station being dosed with LSD in their brownies. Why would he?! Who even knew vampires could be affected by LSD anyway?! Wellā¦probably a lot of vampires, but Eddie didnāt really talk to other vampires, so he wouldnāt know.
Ā
At least, the effects seemed to wear off of him much faster than they did Hen, Chimney, and Bobby though, but it left him so very hungry. He knew he was being petty, but he was irritated that Buck had escaped being dosed completely since he refused to ever eat anything dropped off at the station. Actually, now that he thought about it, Buck always seemed suspicious of any food he hadnāt seen cooked in front of him. There had to be some kind of story there. Like, even when they went out or ordered pizza, Buck looked at it really intensely and poked at it some before taking a small testing bite first. He wasnāt sure what that was about, but Eddie was thinking that maybe Buck had a good idea now that theyād all basically been drugged by a little old lady who thought she was helping, but who really wasnāt.
Ā
He supposed it was a good thing that Buck was sober so that he could take care of the rest of them until Athena was able to figure out what was going on. Plus, now Buck was still able to watch Chris while Eddie met with Shannon. He really should have rescheduled this meeting, but Shannon would have thought he was brushing her off or something. He was also absolutely not going to tell his sort-of wife that heād taken drugs, even if it wasnāt intentional. That would go over horribly if they ever did end up in a custody battle.
Ā
At the very least, Eddie really hoped he hadnāt made a fool of himself while under the influence. Buck had looked stressed once the effects started wearing off of Eddie, but his friend had been running around after Chimney and Hen too during that time. Athena thankfully found Bobby. And wasnāt that a shocking and concerning revelation when they'd found him standing on the roof.
Ā
It seemed everyone except for Eddie knew that Bobby was an alcoholic, and that was perfectly fine with Eddie; he hadnāt needed to know. However, Buck already had found an AA meeting for their captain before they were even off the LSD and was planning to go with him first thing in the morning. Eddie didnāt really understand why Buck was stepping in so completely. Bobby was dating Athena, but Buck was the first to jump in and invite himself along to a meeting, even telling Athena he would pick Bobby up for it. Eddie had never met someone so there for everyone else around him. It seemed it wasnāt just Eddie and Chris that Buck took care of but his sister and Bobby too. Honestly, Eddie wondered if Buck had tried to take care of Hen and Chimney at some point and theyād told him to piss off.
Ā
Eddie sipped his coffee while he waited for Shannon, hoping it would take some of the edge off his hunger. It really had been a very weird day, so meeting with his estranged wife was just one more layer on the insanity. Heād initially been very concerned about a reporter following them around, a Taylor Kelley theyād saved from a helicopter accident which definitely brought up some bad PTSD for him after his own helicopter being shot down. The reporter and cameraman showed up at the station afterwards and made themselves at home, following them on calls and asking them all questions for some special they were going to do on the station.
Ā
At the beginning of the day, acting suspicious as a vampire had been Eddieās major concern above all else. That was before the drugs added a whole new level of concern. Buck though⦠Buck had looked at that reporter like she was the devil herself come for his soul. Eddie didnāt know what Buckās problem was with the woman, or maybe reporters in general, but heād clammed up and left the room any time he was able to when she was there. The funny thing was, Eddie was pretty certain the lady liked Buck, like was trying to flirt with him. Buck though wasnāt having any of it. If looks could kill, Taylor Kelley would be a puddle of goo right now. Eddie really did need to hear Buck's story about whatever caused that level of distrust around reporters...or redheads?
Ā
Shannon wandered onto the patio of the coffee shop Eddie was sitting outside of with a paper coffee cup already in her hand. āHey,ā she gave him a tentative wave, looking a little lost and regretful.
Ā
āUh, hiā¦ā he smiled back, motioning to the chair in front of him. āYou look good.ā
Ā
Shannon sat and studied him. āIād say you looked good too, but youāre perpetually 28, so I canāt really compete there.ā
Ā
Eddie glanced around in fear, but they were all alone. It was a little cool for most people to be sitting outside that evening, but he hadnāt wanted to feel trapped inside with his wife when he chose a place to sit. āIām 32 for everyone here,ā he warned her with a significant look. He knew it would get harder to pass for his age as time went on, but he planned to add some gray into his hair and maybe even transfer to a new fire station eventually when it became too difficult to pass.
Ā
Shannon ignored that. āHow is Chris?ā
Ā
Eddie couldnāt help his smile. Just the mention of his son lit up his entire being. āHeās good, Shannon. Heās really good. He misses you.ā
Ā
Shannon might have left them, but Eddie knew it was because of him, not Chris. Christopher didnāt deserve to never see his mother again because Eddie had been a terrible husband and also unfortunate enough to fell prey to an injured vampire in Afghanistan. He just had to make sure Shannon didnāt plan to leave them againā¦and that she wouldnāt try to take Chris away from him. He couldn't have her break their hearts again.
Ā
āI miss him too,ā she smiled sadly. āYou think this new school will be good for him.ā
Ā
āItās really great,ā Eddie passed over all the brochures and materials. āYou should have seen the art room, and everything is so accessible and accepting. They meet every kid where they are. I think Chris will thrive there.ā
Ā
āI saw itā¦I talked to them this morning,ā she said, flipping through the brochure.
Ā
Eddie just stared at her for a moment. Why had she gone over there before talking with him? Did she not trust him? Of course she didnāt trust him.
Ā
āIt really was special,ā she continued as if she hadnāt just made Eddie almost have a panic attack. āThey said he could start as early as next week.ā
Ā
He cleared his throat and sipped his coffee to collect his thoughts. Talking with Shannon had never been this awkward before, even when theyād been fighting. He really didnāt want to start another fight now though, even if he was upset sheād gone to the school first without talking to him about it.
Ā
āThank you,ā he finally said with a nod, resolving to let it go. She'd already done it. It was in the past, and it sounded like it had even gone well.
Ā
āOf course,ā she smiled and reached out to put a hand on his.
Ā
Eddie pulled back sharply. Her pulse had almost pounded against his wrist. He felt her blood flowing through her veins, and the worst part was that he knew how Shannonās blood tasted. It was so much better than anything he could get at the blood bank. Fresh could never be replaced by anything from a bag in a refrigerator. He was much too hungry for her to be this close to him.
Ā
āYouāre hungry,ā her eyes widened in either shock or fear, probably fear. āI know that look.ā
Ā
Eddie grimaced and looked away. āIām fine. There was just something at work today that affected me, and blood has been expensive since the earthquake. Iām fine though, I promise.ā
Ā
Her lips pursed and she seemed to be studying him, maybe looking for a lie, he didnāt know. āI supposeā¦ā she finally said slowly as if coming to some very difficult conclusion. āMy car is in the lot out backā¦ā
Ā
Was she offering� No, what? Eddie shook his head firmly. Why would she be offering that?
Ā
āShannon, no. Iām fine,ā he said, not knowing what the hell was happening here.
Ā
Shannon crossed her arms though and pinned him with a look. āMaybe I donāt like the idea of my son being around a hungry vampire.ā
Ā
āWhat?ā Now Eddie was terrified. āShannon, you know Iād never! Iād never hurt Chris! Iād die first!ā
Ā
āI know! I know!ā She cut him off quickly, her hands reaching out to his. āIām sorry. That didnāt come out right! I promise.ā
Ā
āThen what the hell did you mean?!ā He asked, his mind still reeling because that was his absolute worst fear, that sheād take Chris away because she saw him as dangerous.
Ā
Shannon held his hands, Eddie's hunger crushed down under his panic now. She closed her eyes before opening them again with a deep breath in. āI know you would never hurt Chris, Eddie,ā she said firmly. āI may not have been ready to be a mother, and your parents got into my head, and my mom was sick, and it all just compiled, and I ran. But I would never have left Chris with you if I thought you were a danger to him. I know heās safe with you.ā
Ā
Thatā¦made some sense. āBut, you didnāt feel safe?ā He asked because thatās what he firmly believed. It was why he signed on for his second tour.
Ā
She let go of his hands and crossed her arms over her chest again defensively. āMaybeā¦kind of. I mean at first it was exciting, after all the shock and disbelief and all. Like, you read the romance novels, and itās like getting to be a part of them,ā she said to his utter confusion.
Ā
āBut then the reality sets in. We were fighting, and you were struggling and couldnāt find a job, and then I started to see myself as less of your wife and more asā¦well, dinner,ā she ended with a wince.
Ā
āShannon, I neverā¦ā he started.
Ā
āI know you didnāt mean to,ā she waved off his protests. āBut thatās what we were before I left. Weād even stopped having sex. It was just fighting and feedingā¦no fucking,ā she gave him a little tentative smile at the end.
Ā
He let out a surprised laugh at her language. āRight, I can see that.ā
Ā
āAnd well,ā she shrugged. āIf all I was to you was dinnerā¦maybe one day you would go too farā¦ā
Ā
āNo,ā he said firmly, because never! āShannon, I promise, I would never do that.ā
Ā
āLogically, I know that,ā she gave him a little wet smile. āI got in my own head though. And yeahā¦I got afraid. I got a little afraid of you...ā
Ā
āIām so sorry,ā was all he could think to say. He hadnāt ever intended her to feel that way.
Ā
She shrugged as if to say, it was what it was and in the past. āAnyway, I know how much the school costs, and I know you, and youāre spending everything you can and more on our son. So, if money is tight right now, and youāre hungry, Iāll say it againā¦my car is in the lot out back. Iād prefer my sonās father to be well fed than starving when he runs into a burning building to save people. Itās the least I can do.ā
Ā
Eddie let out a breath, not knowing what to do with this. On the one hand, he really didnāt think he should take her up on this offer. On the other, he was just so damn hungry. And maybeā¦maybe they could work through all this to give Chris his family back in some form or fashionā¦
Ā
He took a breath in. āOut back you say?ā He gave her a small thankful smile. āOnly⦠dinner?ā
Ā
āI think thatās best,ā she nodded and stood, holding out a hand for him.
Ā
He took her hand, tossing his empty coffee cup in the trash. āOkā¦and Iāll show you some pictures of how big Chris has gotten.ā
Ā
āIād like that,ā she said softly.
Ā
Ā
Buck walked right into Maddieās apartment without knocking and with a frown on his face and a cup of shitty AA meeting coffee in one hand and a keychain in the other. āMads? Mione?ā He called out.
Ā
āHey,ā she stuck her head in from where it looked like sheād been putting on her make-up in the bathroom. āAnything wrong?ā
Ā
āHmm, no,ā he walked over to lean in the doorway and watched her do something with eyeliner. āHow was the movie with Chim?ā
Ā
Maddieās face lit up, and Harry was suddenly, absolutely certain she and Ron were not getting back together. Also, he was pretty certain Chimney would be getting a very confusing shovel talk from Hermioneās ex-husband at some point in the near future. āThat good?ā He chuckled.
Ā
āYeah, it was fun,ā she grinned. āChimney really is funny, and nice, and very cuteā¦ā she trailed off. āIt was just a friends thing though, you know. But we got dinner at this Korean place he knew that does Karaoke, and he really can sing, and the movie was hilarious!ā
Ā
āRight,ā he sipped his coffee with an eyebrow raised. That whole friends-situation didnāt look like it would last that long. Maybe he should get Hen to get a betting pool started on them. Heād probably win the pool with how well he knew Hermione by this point.
Ā
āSo, whatās up,ā she pointed to the space between his eyebrows, making his eyes cross. āYou donāt get that little furrow there unless something is bothering you.ā
Ā
Buck huffed and shrugged a little petulantly. āNothing, but I think Eddie might get back with his ex. It seems their meeting went much better than expected. I don't really know what happened, but he looked healthier...like you know...well fed when he returned.ā
Ā
āAnd thatās a bad thing? Shannon, right?ā Maddie asked, putting down the eyeliner and picking up a thing with a lot of different colors, probably eye shadow. āHas your little friend-crush turned into a full-on crush? Pretty sure your bestie is straight, just so you know.ā
Ā
Buck grumbled and rolled his eyes. He stuck the tip of his finger in the blue eye shadow and dabbed a little on his scar-turned-birthmark. āMaybe I can decorate it some if I canāt get rid of it. Make it a fashion statement.ā
Ā
āStop that,ā she reached up and rubbed it off. āIf you want to wear makeup Iām going to put it on you, and youāre going to do it right. Now stop changing the subject. Why are your pants in a bunch this time if you aren't jealous?ā
Ā
He grumbled but tried to find the words to describe how he felt. Maybe...just maybe he was a little jealous. There was no way in Merlin's name he was going to admit that to Hermione though. āYou know me, Hermione. Iām as the Americans say āride or die,ā and Shannon broke up with Eddie. So, I hated her on principle. Now I just have to change how I think about her? That doesnāt seem fair.ā
Ā
āAnd this should matter to Eddie why?ā She started putting lip gloss on him, so he just glared since he couldn't respond.
Ā
āI didnāt say it should matter to Eddie. Itās just inconvenient,ā Buck said as soon as his lips were free again. He looked in the mirror. He didnāt particularly like it, but at least it tasted good.
Ā
āPlus, he gave me a key to his house,ā Buck held up his keychain with only the one key on it. āI donāt know what to do now because I lost all my keys a week after I moved in, probably in a fire somewhere, so I canāt really reciprocate, and thatās just not fair. I already added him into the wards after I cast yours the other day.ā
Ā
Hermione gave him a look he hadnāt gotten since possibly sixth yearā¦no heād probably gotten it a time or two since, but she was clearly wondering how he could be such an idiot. He thought heād grown, maybe heād regressed some though. āWhat?ā
Ā
āYou donāt have any keysā¦ā she said slowly. āSo, youāre just not locking the door to your flatā¦ā
Ā
āIt has really good wards,ā he protested because, yeah, it really didnāt matter if he locked it or not, no one was getting in without his express permission regardless.
Ā
āAnd what about your jeep? Are you starting it with magic if you don't have a key? Youāre going to kill all the electronics,ā she shook her head. āWhat if someone gets in with you? How do you explain that?ā
Ā
āKeyless start?ā He shrugged. āItās apparently a thing now. And the electronics havenāt died yet. Teddy is really into magic and technology's interaction these days, and heās been giving me some pointers in our weekly letters.ā
Ā
āYeah, yeah,ā she waved him off. āYou need to get new keys made. You canāt just keep trying to pass off using magic around a vampire. That may work with the muggles, but his eyes will catch more. You're going to get caught."
Ā
āI hear you, Hermione,ā he said, still thinking it all sounded like way too much work for what it was worth though.
Ā
She frowned at him, but went back to putting something on her eyelashes now. āDonāt make me call Ron on you,ā she warned, and Harry wondered when Ron of all people had become the responsible one who was called on him. It seemed in some tangled web of events they were there though. Huh...Hogwarts era Ron and Harry would never have believed that, either one of them.
Ā
āOnce you get those keys made, how about you come out for dinner with me and my coworker, Josh. I think you should meet him,ā she said, not meeting his eyes, which made Harry very suspicious.
Ā
āMaddie Buckleyā¦Iāve been single for like a second, you will not set me up with your co-workers,ā he glared and stole her lip gloss because it did actually taste really good, and maybe it made his lips soft too, and maybe that wasnāt a bad thing.
Ā
Hermione rolled her eyes at him and made a show of being magnanimous enough to ignore the stealing of her lip gloss. āFirst of all, youāve been single since before I moved here,ā she protested, and yeah, maybe, but he wasn't really ready to concede to that. āSecondly, this isnāt a set upā¦I think Josh might be magical in some wayā¦ā
Ā
āErā¦what?ā Harry stilled with a startled frown at this shocking turn of events. āYou think thereās a wizard working with you at 9-1-1 dispatch? Why?ā
Ā
āLittle thingsā¦but yeah, I think he might be either a wizard or a squib,ā she said musingly. āYouāre better at figuring these things out than I am. Plus, heās really cool, and Iād hate to be surprised and have to obliviate him later after we became friends.ā
Ā
Harry winced and the past auror in him really wanted to explain just how illegal that was, but hey, he was a wanted fugitive, soā¦there was that. āAnd how do you suppose I should meet this Josh, maybe a wizard, friend of yours without giving myself away?ā
Ā
Maddieās smile widened in a look Buck knew he would regret later. āKaraoke,ā she said as if it answered all questions and solved all problems.
Notes:
Up Next: Double date?...
Chapter 6: Double Date
Notes:
We're completely sidestepping the Taylor and Ali story lines if you can tell. There is no way in hell that Harry Potter would date a reporter.
(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)
Chapter Text
Harry closed his eyes and then scooted back to sit on the counter of the sink in Hermioneās bathroom. This was going to be a longer conversation than heād planned. Thankfully, he didnāt really have anything going on for the day besides the AA meeting with Bobby heād already gone to and chores around his flat later since they were off work. He really didnāt like days off work since he was alone and got caught up in his head, hence why he was bothering Hermione before her shift started at dispatch. Maybe he would stop by Eddieās and see if he needed help with anything later too. Ā
Ā
āOk, so before we go into your brilliant karaoke plan, back up and explain what all has led you to think your co-worker may be magical? Does he swear by Merlin or write with a quill or drink potions or something?ā
Ā
āNot really,ā Hermione shrugged and started to brush out her hair. āHeās never sworn by Merlin that Iāve heard, but I did hear him swear by Houdini once, and I think thatās pretty common with American magicals.ā
āReally?ā Harry frowned in surprise. He hadnāt been involved in the magical community since he moved to America since he was laying low, so he didnāt really know much of the history and culture of it. āHoudini was actually a wizard?ā
Ā
Hermione grinned and chuckled. āYeah, by what I hear he gave MACUSA continuous headaches by just going around saying he had magic, using said magic, and then being dramatic enough about it that he passed for a fake-magician. Genius really. I can see why his mythos has lasted even since his death.ā
Ā
āHuhā¦ok, so swearing by the bloke, thatās pretty damning but not definitive. Anything else?ā He asked, still not ready to believe this Josh person was a wizard. Frankly, it was very strange that Hermione worked as a dispatcher herself; that wasnāt a job witches and wizards would gravitate towards. So, odds were this Josh guy was just a weird dude and still a muggle.
Ā
āIām pretty sure the āhome remedyā his aunt makes him for colds is actually Pepper-Up,ā she said next, and yeah, that was bad coming from trained healer. āHe wonāt let anyone else have any, probably since itās toxic to muggles, and has apparently never called off work with a cold once since he started there.ā
Ā
Harry sipped his crappy coffee and thought it over. āCan you give me a percentage? How confident are you that what you saw was Pepper-Up?ā
Ā
Hermione shrugged and leaned against the counter with him now, most likely done with her getting ready. āI donāt knowā¦maybe 75%. I didnāt get a good look.ā That was still a really high percentage coming from someone with Hermioneās level of potion knowledge.
Ā
āOh, and last week someone was talking about having their tarot read at the pier,ā Hermione continued. āHe said his aunt does that, maybe the one who makes the potion, and he called it Divination when talking about the cardsā¦ā
Ā
āYeah, thatās badā¦ā Harry was pretty sure she was right now. Most people were at least a little into spiritual things that crossed over with the magical world in LA, but Divination as a term wouldnāt be the first that popped into anyoneās head who hadnāt been exposed to the school subject.
Ā
āHe could be a squib though,ā Harry offered hopefully since that would still be safer for their anonymity. āHe could still take Pepper-Up then, and he kept mentioning his aunt as the one who made it, right?ā
Ā
Hermione nodded. āThat was my thought too. Plus, heās really not close with his family at all. At first, I was certain they were just homophobes since heās very openly gay, but nowā¦it could be magic bigotry instead. Itās still horrible either way, and heās such a sweet guy.ā
Ā
Yeah, so now Hermioneās face was clearly saying she wouldnāt mind setting them up. Well, Hermione had a much better track record with not dating the scum of the earth than he did. Harry breathed out a long-suffering breath. āFiiiineā¦weāll go to karaoke. But invite Chim or someone else from your work too so it doesnāt look like weāre cornering him.ā
Ā
Hermione blushed and Harry held in his chuckle at whatever weirdness she had going on with Chimney. āWellā¦Howie and I had already planned to get together a group karaoke thing in a few daysā¦ā
Ā
āOh, itās Howie now,ā Buck teased.
Ā
āShut it, youā¦and no telling Ron, not yet,ā she blushed even further. āI should probably be the one who talks to him.ā
Ā
Buck grinned wider but held in the rest of his teasing. She should go as slow as she wanted to, and he could be supportive. He was certain Ron would be tooā¦well, after probably doing an extensive background check on Chimney and probably portkeying over for an unnecessarily scary shovel-talk. That really was just expected though, especially after everything that had happened to Harry.
Ā
Ā
Buck had to admit; Josh was kind of cute in a prickly puppy kind of way. He was a little peeved at Maddie though because she had very blatantly set this whole thing up as a double date, even if she wouldnāt admit it. Chimney was in fine form regaling them all about Buckās made-up, womanizing past which Chim was now referring to as his Buck 1.0 days, whatever that meant. Really, Buck didnāt care since heād done this to himself really, but he was starting to get the concerning impression that he had only mentioned women when he was fake-sleeping around to push away his coworkers. That was probably subconscious since he was (then and now) traumatized over everything with Kingsley.
Ā
Now thoughā¦Buck thought that maybe Chimney didnāt realize he wasnāt straight. Weirdā¦Harry had never had to come out to anyone before. This was a situation he really didnāt know how to handle. The first bloke heād ever slept with had immediately sold his story to the Daily Prophet and added another layer to Harryās trauma and hatred for reporters. So, yeah, he never had to come out before since literally everyone knew he was bi shortly after heād figured it out himself. It was a weird position to be in with everyone not knowing all his business maybe even before he knew it himself. He loved it, donāt get him wrong, but it just wasnāt a situation heād been met with in his life recently at least.
Ā
āAnd thatās why I absolutely never work the night of a full moon,ā Josh finished explaining a crazy night of weird calls and insanity at dispatch. Buck got it, his first full moon as a firefighter heād helped deliver 4 babies. It was brilliant! He loved full moons and the weirdness that came with them.
Ā
This might be another tick in the Josh is magical box though. A lot of muggles believed that the full moon influenced peopleās behavior, but magical people knew it was true. Josh seemed more on the knowing end of things than the superstitious end.
Ā
āIām getting another round. Anyone in?ā Buck stood and offered for the table.
Ā
The bartender filled Buckās drink order but also slid over a glass of what looked like some high-quality bourbon as well. āThe lady over there says heroes donāt drink an IPA,ā the bartender pointed at a redheaded woman who gave him a smile and a nod.
Ā
First of all, rudeā¦he liked what he liked. As Chris would say, ādonāt yuk his yum.ā Second of all, Taylor Kelly was a reporter! There was no way in Slytherin hell that Harry was ever going to trust a reporter with anything more than betraying him, calling him a dark lord, and leaking his personal information to the world.
Ā
āTell her thanks,ā Buck gave her a fake smile and nod across the bar, but carried the bourbon back to the table with his group instead of going over to talk with her. Maybe she would get the hint that he really didnāt want anything at all to do with her. He swore that if that woman somehow led to MACUSA figuring out he was in the country, then he would systematically ruin her career and all chances of advancement.
Ā
āOoo, shifting to the hard stuff this early in the evening,ā Chimney nodded in approval of the glass. "Someone is going to need to uber home."
Ā
āDonāt touch that,ā Buck scooted it forward and away from him with one finger. He didnāt think she would poison it, but heād known reporters to do worse to him. āIt came from Taylor Kelly, no telling what her nefarious purposes are.ā
Ā
āPretty sure those purposes are a date, Buck,ā Josh chuckled with a look back over at the woman who did look a little disappointed.
Ā
Maddie shook her head in exasperation. āThatās the reporter, right?ā
Ā
Buck growled lowly and threw a napkin over the top of the glass. Watch she be a witch and it actually have Veritaserum in it. He wouldnāt put it past her.
Ā
āMy little brother is irrationally paranoid about reporters. I think one of them murdered him in a past life or something since clearly he has no valid reason to hate them so much,ā Maddie rolled her eyes and gave him a dangerous look. Damn, it seemed he was acting weird. Whatever, his paranoia was absolutely not irrational.
Ā
āAt least she didnāt broadcast all of us dosed on LSD,ā Chimney shuddered. āI doubt the department would have let that happen without legal ramifications for the network though.ā
Ā
āI heard about that!ā Josh exclaimed with a huge grin. āWhy would you eat food randomly dropped off at the station?!ā
Ā
āI know, right?!ā Buck vehemently agreed with the man. āI was the only one sober enough to corral their high-asses around dangerous fire equipment until we were able to get them all home!ā
Ā
āThatās us!ā Maddie jumped up and pulled Chimney up behind her. Apparently, their song was announced. Buck had already been coerced to sing with Maddie earlier, but he was frankly terrible and needed more alcohol before he was going to give it another go.
Ā
āSo,ā Josh turned bodily to face Buck more squarely. āWeāre actually just a third and fourth wheel to this date, right? Like those two, get a clue! They are so dating. Are we like your sisterās friend-beards or something to put off them going on a real date until sheās ready?ā
Ā
Buck huffed a laugh and rolled his eyes at where Maddie and Chimney were singing a very sappy duet now. āNah, pretty sure this is a set-up between you and me. They really are dating, just not calling it that yet. But Maddie is trying to be sneaky in meddling with my love-life when she really canāt pull off being sneaky at all.ā
Ā
Josh actually choked on his beer, and Buck looked at him in concern. What had he said? āUh⦠you know we donāt actually have to go on a date, right? Just because my sister is meddling, that doesnāt mean we have to go along with it,ā he frowned, wondering if he just really wasnāt Joshās type or something.
Ā
āWait!ā Josh coughed a few more times before sucking in a huge, dramatic breath. āYouāre not straight?! How did my exceptionally fine-tuned gay-dar not catch that?! Iām slipping!ā
Ā
Buck frowned. Oh yeah, coming out. Something heād never had to do before. āUhā¦no, Iām bi,ā he said slowly. āMaddie thinks Iām sad and lonely or something, but really, Iām fine.ā
Ā
āMerlinās balls,ā Josh breathed out under his breath, and Buck mentally swore. Right, so yeah, Josh was definitely magical. Damn, that was inconvenient. Based on the absolutely nothing feel of magic Harry was getting around him though, at least he was almost positive the man was a squib.
Ā
āRight,ā Josh shook his head and laughed loudly. āWell, what of it? Want to get dinner with me next time we both have an evening off?ā
Ā
Buck frowned at the man not having seen this turn of events coming. āYou actually want to go out with me?ā
Ā
Josh leaned forward and raised his eyebrow suggestively. āHave you looked in a mirror recently?ā
Ā
Ok, so Buck definitely blushed at that. Yeah, this wasnāt exactly his actual base form, so this wasnāt actually how he looked. For instance, a lot of his non-curse scars were converted to some tattoos that he liked since it was easier to change something than completely get rid of it. His eyes were a different color, and hair was too as well as much shorter and tamer. His general features and build though were basically him, so it was still flattering even if maybe it was more the changes Josh liked than the original.
Ā
Buck supposed Josh wasā¦well, he was sweet. He actually seemed safe even if he had some connection to the magical world. Itās not like anyone would recognize Buck as Harry Potter anyway since no one knew Harry was a metamorphmagus. He really hadnāt thought he would be leaving this set-up with a date. The thing was thoughā¦he hadnāt dated a bloke since Kingsleyā¦
Ā
āIād like that, butā¦ā Harry said with a wince at having to actually admit this. āI know Chim was talking up his version of my Buck 1.0 days or whatever, but you have to knowā¦thatās not me anymore. I have some issues, like intimacy issues and trust issues, and the last person I dated, well, we were dating almost two months before we slept together. Iām a little high maintenanceā¦ā
Ā
Josh snorted a laugh and smiled at him kindly, tentatively reaching out and putting a hand on Buckās. It was actually really nice. āBuck, high maintenance is my middle name. Plus, if I was looking for a one-night stand, I would definitely not ask out my co-workerās brother. Thatās just not done.ā
Ā
āYeah?ā He smiled and found himself actually a little excited about it. He wasnāt really sure if he and Josh had anything at all in common or if they were a good fit or anything, but maybe just a low-key dinner with a nice guy was its own form of healing after what Harry had been through with both Kingsley and Abby.
Ā
āYeah,ā Josh smiled even wider. āRight, so calendars, Iām starting a 12-hour shift tomorrow. What are you looking at?ā
Ā
āA 24-hour one,ā Buck sighed and pulled out his cellphone to figure out when they next had a matching night off. He hadn't planned for this at all, but he was tentatively hopeful it wasn't a bad thing at least.
Ā
Ā
Eddie watched Buck get creamed at the firetruck driving video game he was playing with Hen. Buck really was bad at all video games, but at least that meant Chris loved playing against him. It must have something to do with his parents not letting him watch TV and movies growing up. Thank Dracula that Buck was good at driving the real firetruck even if his in the video game crashed constantly.
Ā
At least Buck was starting to look more himself now too. Heād taken the call where they lost the older couple, Thomas and Mitchell really hard. That was a couple days ago though, and the highlight of their current shift was the woman stuck in the window of her dateās apartment after a bathroom mishap that Eddie could still smell. Vampire senses were really a double-edged sword.
Ā
āHow are things going with Shannon?ā Bobby asked while he began setting their dinner on the table and the rest of the shift began gravitating towards it, kind of like Pavlov's dogs but with Bobby's mashed potatoes.
Ā
Eddie sighed, not because things were bad but because he really just didnāt know how to navigate all this. There weren't any self-help books about navigating a failed marriage while a vampire. āGoodā¦I think,ā he eventually concluded. āSheās doing dinner with me and Chris tomorrow night.ā
Ā
āWow, youāre already integrating her back into your lives?ā Buck asked, plopping down in the chair beside him with a concerned look. "Is this a little soon?"
Ā
āSheās Chrisās mom,ā Eddie shrugged in as much of an explanation as he was currently willing to give.
Ā
Really, he just didnāt feel like he could say no to her. He had recently just resupplied his blood supply (with a mostly reasonable amount for two weeks this time), but she was still offering to feed him when they got together. Between her keeping him well fed and that he was terrified she would try to take Chris away from him because he was dangerous, Eddie felt like he really had to agree to anything she asked for. Itās not that sheād asked for anything unreasonable, but he probably would have waited a little longer to let her meet with Chris if he hadnāt felt this way.
Ā
āAnd what about Dad?ā Hen asked from his other side and gave him a concerned look that matched Buckās. āHow are you two? Are you thinking the ex might be less ex these days?ā
Ā
Eddie winced. Maybe? Again, if Shannon wanted that, he wasnāt sure he could say no. So far, they had kept everything strictly non-sexual and as platonic as drinking someoneās blood could be.
Ā
āI donāt know,ā he said honestly. āWeāre getting along at least, which is much better than before.ā
Ā
āPass the potatoes,ā Bobby asked Chimney who handed them over. āMaybe you should do something just the two of you. See where it goes? Like try dating each other again.ā
Ā
āBuck will babysit, heās got nothing going on,ā Chimney grinned at the Buck who scowled right back at him.
Ā
Bobby sent a protective glare towards Chimney before turning to Buck. āYou donāt have to go back to your 1.0 days as Chimney calls it to go on a date again,ā he advised. āYou should get back out there.ā
Ā
Buck huffed and rolled his eyes before stealing the roll off Eddieās plate. Eddie just rolled his eyes fondly and got himself another one. āFor your information,ā Buck began. āI have a date on Thursday night. You were literally there, Chimney, at Maddieās set up attempt. Not very observant, are you?ā
Ā
Chimney frowned, and Eddie was lost too. Buck hadnāt mentioned this. Really, Buck hadnāt dated anyone since theyād met, which sounded like a very strange situation if what all heād heard from Chimney and Hen was anything to go by. But stillā¦he had thought Buck would have told him if his sister had set him up with someone.
Ā
āYeah, I guess I'm not observant because I have no clue what you're talking about,ā Chimney eventually admitted defeat and shook his head.
Ā
Buck looked at the man in disbelief. Whatever the situation was, it must have been pretty obvious. āUhā¦Joshā¦weāre going out on Thursday. We were literally discussing plans when you sat back down after your duet with my sister,ā Buck said. āWhich by the way, just bloody ask her out on a date already. You two are so obviously dating without dating. Itās so cute that itās become annoying.ā
Ā
āBloody?ā Eddie asked. āYou trying to go British on us or something?ā
Ā
āWait, wait, waitā¦back up,ā Hen slammed both her hands down on the table, making everyone jump. āBuckarooā¦you got something to tell us there?ā
Ā
Buck looked very confused. Eddie was confused himself for a split second until Buckās words caught up with him. Joshā¦Buck was going out with a man! Buck wasnāt straight? Huhā¦was Eddie supposed to know that already? Should he pretend like he did? He definitely shouldnāt make a big deal about it; he knew that. Supportive wordsā¦yes, what were some supportive words?
Ā
āLove and supportā¦?ā Eddie spit out around his haze of whatever the hell he was supposed to say.
Ā
Buck turned his confused look onto Eddie then. āUh, yeahā¦love and support for you too man,ā he frowned. āWaitā¦did all of you think Iām straight? Really?ā
Ā
āYes! Yes, we did!ā Hen nodded firmly with big eyes. āYou didnāt say anything.ā
Ā
āActually, you pretty much said the opposite with all the one-night stand stories,ā Chimney added with a nod.
Ā
Bobby cleared his throat before chuckling. āAs Eddie has said already, love and support all the way.ā
Ā
Eddie grumbled. āSorry, Iāll come up with a whole speech next time if Iām expected to be eloquent and all. That wasnāt on the firefighter exam though.ā
Ā
Buck reached over and grabbed the bowl of mashed potatoes with a wide smile. āWell, Iām bi, so there, you know now,ā he said as if they should have known that, but why would they?
Ā
Hen chuckled next. āWell, Iād welcome you to the community, but it sounds like youāve been here longer than I thought.ā
Ā
āSo Joshā¦I donāt see it,ā Chimney had already moved on while dramatically studying Buck as if he could read the future of the relationship in his aura or something. āHeās kind ofā¦ā
Ā
āNice? Kind?ā Buck supplied when Chimney trailed off. āThatās what Iām looking for at the moment at least.ā
Ā
āI was going to say kind of a nerd,ā Chim said before taking a huge bite of the roast chicken Bobby had made.
Ā
Eddie couldnāt help his incredulous laugh at that. āDude, Buck is a huge nerd! Do you know that he geeks out with my kid on new animal facts and weird historical events every single time they get together?ā
Ā
āAm not,ā Buck almost pouted.
Ā
Eddie just shared a look with everyone else. āBuck, which animal lives the longest?ā
Ā
Without even stopping to think about it, Buck opened his mouth. āDid you know that there's a species of jellyfish thatās basically immortal! Its name is the Turritopsis dohrnii. How cool is it that thereās a jellyfish out there that could be around for as long as the planet is?!ā
Ā
Eddie just pointed at his friend, his point proven. Chimney nodded approvingly. āI retract my objection. You and Josh will have very smart babies, little mathletes in the making.ā
Ā
āDo we need to have another talk about how babies are made, Chim?ā Hen smirked at her partner.
Ā
āShould I be concerned that youāre one of our paramedics?ā Bobby added on with a grin. It seemed their captain was doing much better after their bad LSD trip now too. Eddie was thankful Buck had been taking care of him and that Bobby seemed back to normal.
Ā
āI know where babies come from; the storks drop them off,ā Chimney said through a mouthful of food, getting complaints and groans from everyone at the table. And then the bell went off, making them all jump up and abandon their food for the next emergency.
Ā
Ā
It really shouldnāt bother him that Buck was out on a date with a man. Why would it? Eddie didnāt care. He definitely wasnāt homophobic at all. Like, he loved Hen and Karen. Why couldnāt he stop thinking about Buck being out with Maddieās co-worker though?
Ā
Shannon groaned lowly, and Eddie tried to pull his attention back to the task at hand. By Dracula, Shannon tasted good! He could tell she was getting a little turned on too; he could hear it and even taste it in her blood at this point. It probably wasnāt a good sign that his mind kept drifting. This was something he used to be able to get into just as much if not more than Shannon, so he couldnāt understand why the whole situation felt more like picking up a smoothie at the cafĆ© than his wife groaning and almost grinding up against him.
Ā
Theyād had a really nice dinner with Christopher who was beside himself with excitement at seeing his mother again. It really was nice to all be together in the same room, and Eddie just prayed that Shannon wasnāt going to break their hearts again. Now, Christopher was in bed asleep though after a story from his mom, and Shannon had offered to stay for a while to supplement his blood intake so he didnāt have to buy as much. Thankfully, the blood bank had moved to just a few blocks from the fire station this time, which was very convenient, but the prices hadn't dropped much even after the move.
Ā
After one more mouthful of warm, delicious blood (Dios, but he never thought heād ever have that thought in his brain) Eddie licked at the spot on Shannonās neck to close the wound. Shannon almost whimpered at him stopping, so Eddie gratuitously licked her neck once more and pulled her closer, almost flush against his front now.
Ā
Eddie felt his wife gasp with a little smile at how much he was affecting her. Well, if this was what she wantedā¦Eddie could help out. That was kind of his job as her husband anyway, right? If this made her happy. Eddie ran his hands up her sides and under the thin t-shirt she was wearing and toyed at the edges of her lacy bra.
Ā
Shannon groaned again, but this time more in frustration than anything else. She slowly pushed his hands back down and to his side. āNo?ā Eddie asked in confusion. He really had gotten the impression this was what she wanted.
Ā
Shannon just looked at him, still clearly affected by what theyād been doing even as she shook her head. āEddieā¦do you even want to do this?ā She asked, cutting through his confusion and just creating more.
Ā
He blinked because, yeah, it was nice, pleasant even. āYeah?ā He kicked himself at it sounding more like a question than an answer.
Ā
She reached between them and cupped a hand over his jeans, clearly illustrating that he wasnāt hard at all. Really, he could get there though. He just had to focus more and not let his mind drift off to wondering if Buck and Josh were going out for pizza or to a fancy place somewhere. Buck really wasnāt a fancy restaurant person, but Eddie didnāt know Josh at all. Maybe he was. Buck really shouldnāt have to go to a fancy restaurant if he didnāt want to though.
Ā
Right, focusing. Maybe this was actually a problem. No, there were quite a lot of things he could do to get Shannon off even if he couldnāt get himself in the right mindset. āI want to take care of you,ā he answered, kissing her just the way he knew she liked.
Ā
Shannon kissed back for a second before pulling back and putting a hand on his cheek, stopping him once again. āEddie, we donāt need to do anything,ā she smiled at him even as he could still smell and taste how turned on she was. Vampire senses were good for some things after all.
Ā
āYou helped me, let me help you,ā he murmured into her neck. Why was she making this so difficult? She had given him blood; he wanted to take care of her too.
Ā
āEddie, stop,ā she pushed him back some, and he went quickly.
Ā
āOk, yeah,ā he nodded firmly. āIām sorry, I just thoughtā¦ā
Ā
āThis isnāt transactional,ā she frowned at him as if she had just put together some kind of distressing puzzle. āIām not giving you blood because I want something from you in return. I justā¦I knew I could help, and I wanted to help.ā
Ā
He hadnāt really thought this was transactionalā¦or maybe he had. He just knew he needed to keep Shannon happy. āLook, I know itās been a whileā¦or well, Iām not insinuating you havenāt been with anyone since usā¦thatāsā¦thatās ok if you have,ā he knew he was rambling, and yeah, maybe he wasnāt super cool with that, but he wasnāt going to judge either.
Ā
āBut, I mean, I canā¦ā he motioned between them. āI want to take care of you tooā¦ā
Ā
Shannonās brow knit as if she really was trying to figure him out and something wasnāt adding up. Eddie didnāt think there was anything to figure out though. She offered him blood; he was offering her sex or at least to get her off if he couldnāt get his traitorous dick in line with the program here. Heād never had a problem before, and he couldnāt even blame vampirism because they had been good for a while after he'd been turned. But ever since things had started falling apart in their relationship, it was just difficult to get in the mood.
Ā
āEddie,ā she said his name again, but this time sadly while she ran her thumb across his jaw. āAre you afraid of me?ā
Ā
What in Draculaās frilly cloak was she talking about?! Shannon was a fairly tiny human, and he regularly bench-pressed more than her weight even before he was turned into a vampire. He had been in war and ran into burning buildings for a living. He was absolutely not afraid of his wife. His incredulousness must have shown on his face because she was already shaking her head.
Ā
āNo, I think you are,ā she disagreed. āI was afraid of you, and that was one of the reasons I left. But youā¦I didnāt realize. Iām keeping your secret, and Iām helping keep you alive, and Iām Chrisās motherā¦ā He knew he paled at that last one.
Ā
āThatās it, isnāt it,ā she frowned. āYouāre afraid Iām going to take him away from you?ā
Ā
Maybe he was afraid of Shannon.
Ā
āIām notā¦Iām not dangerous to Chris,ā he said, the mantra that had been running in this mind almost continuously since the moment heād learned what heād been turned into out in the hot sand of Afghanistan when an apologetic soldier woke him up in the medical tent, a soldier who heād been treating in the field the last he remembered, a soldier who should have died from his wounds.
Ā
āOh, babe,ā she put a hand over her mouth and gave him a teary look. āIāve never doubted that for even a second.ā
Ā
āIām not, I promise,ā he felt the tears and panic both fighting their way out. He wasnāt going to break down. He held things together. He didnāt fall apart.
Ā
āI know,ā she kissed him. āI knowā¦and I thinkā¦Eddie, I think itāll be best for both of us if we get a divorce. I think you need a solid custody agreement that gives you primary custody, and I think I need closure from our relationship and the space to figure out who I am as a mother before I can even think about who I am as a wife.ā
Ā
The tears couldnāt be held in anymore and leaked out the corners of his eyes. He didnāt know if it was grief at the loss of their relationship or just relief. She was right though. They couldnāt just keep trying to force this to work, not when they really were both afraid of each other for different reasons that werenāt going to go away.
Ā
Ā
āHow do you know absolutely no answers to the pop culture questions but knew every single one for botany, animals, and serial killers?ā Josh held up their trivia scorecard with an eyebrow raised in question.
Ā
āHey, you knew the pop culture and music ones, we even out,ā Buck grabbed the card to check over their answers before turning it in. āAnd I like to go to the zoo with Eddieās son, Chris, and I like plants, and you knowā¦those serial killer podcasts.ā
Ā
They were called podcasts, right? Explaining that heād studied serial killers, magical and muggle in auror training sounded like a sure way to get his (probably) squib date to suggest they never have a second date. Herbology and Potions class probably wasnāt a good idea to explain to cover botany either.
Ā
āUh huhā¦ā Josh didnāt look too convinced. āIf your sister hadnāt assured me you were relatively normal and non-murdery, then I might be a little more concerned.ā
Ā
āShe said relatively normal?ā Buck asked in offended shock at that. The non-murdery thing might be a bit debatable. He had fought in a war and been an auror for like 15 years...but that wasn't technically murder even if there was some death at his hand in there, so yeah, non-murdery...
Ā
Josh pointed at the trivia card. āYou knew that Alexander the Great and Ptolemy XIV are believed to have been killed by aconite.ā
Ā
āUh, yeahā¦ā
Ā
āThe question was what was the name of the flower from the family Ranunculaceae which also goes by the name wolfsbane,ā Josh finished with a smirk.
Ā
Buck didnāt get the point there. āThat was all really interesting information,ā he protested. āAconite is a very interesting flowerā¦and poison.ā
Ā
āAnd yet you didnāt know that Lady Gagaās debut album was titled āThe Fame.ā We might need to revoke your queer card for that,ā Josh added, taking the trivia card from him and standing to take it up to the MC. āRegardless, I think this will at least get us our drinks free if not the appetizers too.ā
Ā
Buck watched his date walk up to the front of the bar with a grin on his face. Heād been having fun. It had been a long time since heād had fun on a date. Honestly, he wasnāt really sure if what he and Abby had could be classified as fun but more intense and dramatic with everything to do with her mother and end-of-life care. Maybe a little fun was just what he needed right now. Fun and another friend even if a relationship didnāt work out.
Ā
Buckās phone dinged and he pulled it out of his pocket, smiling at where Josh seemed to be arguing with the judge over one of their answers. He tapped it and looked at the text message that had just come through.
Ā
Ron: What are your plans for Yule? Care for some company?
Ā
Harry stared at the message for much longer than it took to read it. Nowā¦this might complicate some things.
Ā
Buck: Wouldnāt your mum have a troll if you skipped out on hers for the holiday?
Ā
Ron: Nah, Bill and Fleur are hosting this year. I miss my friends
Ā
Right, so there was absolutely no way to say no to that. Harry just really hoped Hermione wasnāt going to freak. Actually, this may be epically brilliant. Chimney could stand a little fear in his life. Harry smiled as he typed out his answer.
Ā
Buck: I might have to work, but you are always welcome to my couch. We miss you too
Ā
āSomething good?ā Josh asked when he sat back down across from Buck. āOr are you searching for cute cat pictures because I want in if you are?ā
Ā
Buck grinned and put his phone back in his pocket to focus on his date. āJust company coming for Christmas. Itās all good.ā
Ā
āFamily?ā Josh asked with a grimace.
Ā
Buck couldnāt help his grimace at that too. āHell no. My family is awful, all except Maddie anyway.ā
Ā
Josh put his elbow on the table and leaned a chin on his fist. āI understand that. My family is awful, all except my aunt.ā
Ā
āThe one who makes home remedies and reads tarot?ā Buck couldnāt help prodding a little.
Ā
āOh really,ā Joshās face broke into a grin. āYou been asking Maddie about me? Thatās not really fair.ā
Ā
āPretty sure youāve been asking my sister about me too,ā he grinned back teasingly.
Ā
Josh pouted and stole the rest of Buckās beer. āYeah, but she wonāt give me any of the good stuff like embarrassing things you did as a kid.ā
Ā
āOh, there was plenty,ā Buck laughed. āYouāll just have to stick around to hear all about them though. It could take a while to get through those stories.ā
Ā
āMaybe on a second date?ā He smiled over the rim of what used to be Buckās beer.
Ā
āMaybe,ā Buck said, trying to put on his most winning smile that would probably make Lockhart proud.
Notes:
Up Next: Christmas with the 118...
Chapter 7: Family Christmas
Notes:
I just watched season 8 episode 9...oof...
That's all I'll say, no spoilers, just oof
(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)
Chapter Text
āWhy am I third-wheeling this date between you two again?ā Chimney asked with an amused look at Buck and Josh. āWhen Maddie and I invited you two out, at least it wasnāt an actual date.ā
Ā
āThis isnāt technically a date either,ā Josh corrected him with a smirk, and Buck just threw an arm over Chimneyās shoulders to lead him further into the Christmas tree lot. āOur date technically starts after we buy a tree and ditch you to go off on our own. Then I get Buck all to myself.ā
Ā
āAnd youāre here because my sister doesnāt trust me with purchasing the tree for her new place, but she apparently thinks you might actually have some kind of style as weird as that sounds,ā Buck grinned at his friend and the guy he was kind-of, sort-of dating currently. āJosh and I are getting the one for my place, but itās on you to pick out Maddieās. She would do it herself, but there is no way in hell her car is big enough to strap a tree on top of it.ā
Ā
āI feel like there is a story here about kid-Maddie and baby-Buck that we need to hear,ā Josh grinned and prompted a very interested look for Chimney too.
Ā
āYeah, Buckaroo, what did little Buck do to lose all trust in tree shopping?ā Chimney dug an elbow into Buckās side making him finally let go and step aside.
Ā
Well, if he was going to be that wayā¦Buck looped an arm through Joshās since Chimney was being a spoilsport. Josh chuckled, but clearly wasnāt letting it go. āCome on, Buck. Whatās the story?ā
Ā
āOh, youāll figure it out,ā Buck grinned widely since it would be pretty obvious.
Ā
Harry had never purchased a Christmas tree before until heād āgraduatedā from Hogwarts and moved into Grimmauld Place. Graduated was used loosely since heād been on the run and ended up just having to take his NEWTs at the ministry when all was said and done. Anyway, the Dursleys always had a tree, but itās not like he had any part in that at all. Frankly, if he looked at their tree too long, someone was bound to yell at him or box his ears.
Ā
So, his first Christmas on his own, Harry took Teddy shopping to pick out a tree, and Teddy wasnāt even one year old at that point. Well, Harry had planned to get a nice, big tree, but Teddy had latched one little pudgy hand onto the smallest, scrawniest tree at the tree farm, so that was what they left with. Teddy was so excited about it, and Harry agreed that it should be taken home and loved too.
Ā
It had been tradition ever since then for Harryās tree to be smallest, saddest tree he and Teddy could find that they decorated to within an inch of its life so that it would feel special just like the other trees. This was also the first Christmas he would be away from Teddy ever. Even when things were bad with Kingsley, they hadnāt gotten quite bad enough that he wasnāt able to get away for Christmas with his godson. Even the past Christmas when Harry was already at the 118, he had met Teddy and Andromeda in Canada for a couple days since Ron assured them the aurors werenāt actively looking for him there.
Ā
This year Andy had plans with her sister, Narcissa, though. Harry could go to see Teddy, but it was Kingsleyās election year, and according to Ron, part of the manās campaign was stamping out the new dark lord and hunting down his ex to show he was tough on crime even when it was someone heād cared about. It was a bloody shame it was getting him sympathy votesā¦the snake.
Ā
āThis is a lot of pressure man,ā Chimney breathed out and looked at the trees around them, cutting into Buckās morose thoughts about not seeing Teddy. āWhat makes the perfect tree?ā
Ā
Buck shrugged but with a smirk on his face. Chimney really seemed to be taking this seriously, it was so cute. He and Maddie were going to be adorable once they got their shit together. āI donāt know. Tree picking duty was officially taken away from me, remember.ā
Ā
āOoo! Hot chocolate! Thatās why I came along!ā Josh disengaged from Buck to point over to the cart one row over.
Ā
Buck grinned and clapped a hand dramatically on Chimās shoulder. āWell, youāre on your own. I owe my date a hot chocolate.ā
Ā
āThis oneās on me,ā Josh smiled back and walked over to get into the long line at the cart.
Ā
Harry almost stayed with Chimney since Josh had the drinks covered, but then he saw the man very studiously looking nonchalantly at a tree just a few down from them. He rolled his eyes. The entire British Ministry of Magic was looking for him as well as most auror forces across the world and somehow Ron always knew exactly where he was when everyone else was stumped. He really should check to see if Ron had put a tracking charm on him or something. It was both a little concerning as well as heartwarming. Harry hadnāt even realized his friend was already in town. Although, now that he thought about it, Hermione probably just told him where they were.
Ā
Regardless, it was very obvious it wasnāt Harry that Ron was here to see. āIām going to make sure Josh knows I want marshmallows,ā Harry told Chimney and left his friend stressing over if fir or pine was the best tree to duck into the next aisle and hide somewhere he could still get a good look at them.
Ā
Ron looked through the pine tree Harry was hiding behind and rolled his eyes at his friend. Well, Harry wasnāt going to leave poor Chimney to this interrogation alone. Plus, he wasnāt going to miss the drama if he could avoid it anyway. Ron next studied the same tree Chimney was. At least he was dressed very muggle and appropriate to the season and location, small mercies.
Ā
āWhat do you think?ā Chimney motioned to the tree and asked the stranger beside him. āHow do you know a tree is like the perfect tree? Itās extremely important I get this right.ā
Ā
Ron looked at Chimney and gave him a little smile. Harry knew that smile. Suspects got that smile right before Ron made a joke and dug into every little thing theyād ever done in their life while they just laughed along not realizing they were spilling their secrets to the idiot auror they thought they were talking to.
Ā
āGirlfriend?ā Ron asked lightly. āIs this some kind of test for your relationship sheās set for you?ā
Ā
āGod, I hope not!ā Chimney winced. āPlus, we arenāt really datingā¦not that I donāt want to, but I donāt want to rush things. She just got out of a relationship, and I donāt want to be a rebound, and I think she wants to take things slowā¦ā
Ā
Merlin, but Ron wasnāt even trying, and Chimney was spilling his guts. Harry couldnāt help his little snort of laughter. That really was just Chimney, and telling his life story to a stranger was fully expected. Everyone knew that Chimney couldnāt keep a secret to save his life or apparently keep himself from telling random people all about his relationships.
Ā
āSo, you must really like this woman?ā Ron smiled softly, and yeah, Harry wasnāt concerned. Initially, heād been worried they wouldnāt all be able to be friends still after the divorce, but he also hadnāt realized how long Ron and Hermione had known things werenāt working. Apparently, it was a long time coming, and they had only stayed together for as long as they had because they did still love each other, just not romantically.
Ā
Chimney got an adorably dopey grin on his face. Harry figured he should maybe stop thinking about Hermione and Chimney as being adorable, but hey, they were. āYeah, sheās great,ā Chimney breathed out in something close to awe.
Ā
āOh, sorry man,ā Chimney blushed awkwardly, clearly just realizing heād been info dumping on some stranger. āPlease just ignore meā¦uh, treesā¦yeahā¦ā
Ā
Ron laughed and motioned around them. āYes, treesā¦I recommend the spruce. Itās the most traditional. That might just be my good British coming out though.ā
Ā
Chimney frowned at all the trees, clearly having absolutely no idea what kinds of trees the ones around him were. āThat one,ā Ron pointed at a spruce. āI knew my secondary school botany class would actually be useful one of these days.ā
Ā
Harry was so proud; Ron had said secondary school instead of Hogwarts and botany instead of Herbology. His pureblood, wizard friend had really come a long way. Harry clutched his chest and gave Ron a dramatically proud look through the tree he was hiding behind. Ron met his eyes and gave him an exasperated look in return.
Ā
Ā Chimney smiled widely. āDude, they do botany classes in school where youāre from? Englandā¦right? What are you doing here in LA?ā
Ā
āIt was an elective,ā Ron shrugged to brush off the line of questioning. āAnd Iām here for Christmas. I have family in town, and I absolutely do not trust my brother-in-law to pick out our tree.ā
Ā
Harry glared through the tree, but Ron didnāt even look over at him. Chimney chuckled, āMaddieā¦the woman I like, her brother is here, and she says the same thing about him.ā
Ā
āImagine that,ā Ron turned a grin on Harry who glared at him.
Ā
āWell, that line was long,ā a voice said behind him, making Harry almost jump out of his skin. Merlin, he was slipping if he didnāt catch someone walking up behind him.
Ā
āThese had better be worth it,ā Josh handed a hot chocolate to him in a flimsy paper cup.
Ā
Buck took the hot drink and blew on the steaming liquid. āThanks, Josh.ā
Ā
āWhat are we watching?ā Josh looked through the tree at where Chimney and Ron seemed to be chatting about good restaurants in the area now.
Ā
Harryās immediate response was to lie, but then he stopped himself. There actually wasnāt a reason why he had to lie. Nothing about this situation would give his identity or magic away. Huhā¦it was odd to be able to tell the truth weirdly enough.
Ā
Harry shook his head and leaned into Joshās side a little. āThatās Maddieās ex-husband sizing up the new guy,ā Buck pointed at Ron, getting an excited gasp from Josh. āChimney has no clue who heās talking to.ā
Ā
āOh, reallyā¦,ā Josh smirked over at him with a mischievous glint in his eye. Suddenly, Buck was certain that Josh and George Weasley would get on scarily well. āAnd no one is informing Chimney about thisā¦why?ā
Ā
Buck just smirked back at him. āHow would that be any fun?ā
Ā
Josh turned towards him a little, that grin still on his face. āEvan Buckleyā¦I think Iām going to kiss you. Thoughts on that? Opinions? Concerns?ā
Ā
Buck played to the bit and gave it some fake thought and consideration. āWell, I think I need to experience it first before giving any opinions.ā
Ā
āHmm,ā Josh chuckled but leaned up slightly since Buck was a little taller and brushed soft lips against his. It wasā¦niceā¦
Ā
Buck smiled when Josh leaned back again. Itās not like it was unpleasant or anything. It also wasnāt anythingā¦special? That probably wasnāt the best word. What was bloody wrong with him? This was a perfectly nice guy who was safe and kind and not dangerous in the slightest! Why was Buckās stupid heart poking holes in this? It was fine!
Ā
āHey guys,ā Chimney broke into Buckās mental freak out at his own apparent inability to be excited about healthy relationships. Damn it! He wasnāt giving up on Josh when there was nothing bloody wrong with the guy!
Ā
āIāve got the tree!ā Chimney looked very proud of himself like he hadnāt just picked the exact tree Ron had pointed at. āHave you slackers found one yet?ā
Ā
āI came for the hot chocolate, so I was very successful,ā Josh smiled and winked at Buck who pushed all his internal drama aside to smile back.
Ā
āGive me a minute. I wonāt take long,ā Buck laughed and wondered from them to track down his scrawny tree.
Ā
Two rows over, Buckās shoulder was bumped by a smiling redhead. āYou have fun interrogating the new guy?ā
Ā
āEhā¦heās at least better than Seamus who was way too interested in the fact that āMione and I got divorced,ā Ron grinned and pointed at the tiny tree missing most of its pine needles that Buck was standing in front of. āBesides, there is no way that man has ever committed a crime in his life with the way he talks. I swear, I hadnāt even gotten to any of my good interrogation tactics, and I already had his life story.ā
Ā
āI know!ā Harry laughed. āNever tell him a secret either. Heāll explode trying to keep it until he just blurts it all out.ā
Ā
āWhy do you insist on getting those?ā Ron motioned to the tree with a fond look at Harry. "They have some really nice trees all around us."
Ā
āItās Teddy and my tradition,ā he said unapologetically. āI miss him. Iām glad youāre here though.ā
Ā
Ron ran a hand across his shoulders and squeezed the back of his neck. āI bought him a cellphone,ā Ron said as if that wasnāt the kindest thing anyone had done for Harry in a long time. āKid already knew how to work the thing and hadnāt held one in his life. Heās going to video call you on Christmas, even if youāre working. You should probably be prepared for a ton of text messages between now and then too unless he fries the phone by doing experiments on it. That kid is scarily good with technology.ā
Ā
Harry was so grateful and touched. āRonā¦thank you,ā he breathed out, feeling a huge weight lift off his shoulders at the prospect of actually being able to talk to Teddy.
Ā
Ron shrugged but gave him an understanding look. They stood there for a second just enjoying being together again before Harry chuckled and bumped his shoulder to explain. āTeddy is very into magic and technology interaction right now. Iām encouraging it because one day, I want to see Lord Teddy Black walk into the Wizengamot talking on a cellphone and make Draco Malfoy die from a stroke at just how very muggle it is.ā
Ā
āPlaying the long game, I see,ā Ron smirked, liking that image very much. āI didnāt think youād actually let everything go with Malfoy. Kill him through indignation, I like it!ā
Ā
āI learned from the best,ā Harry grinned at his chess champion best friend.
Ā
āIāll let you get back to your friends, but Iāll see you when you get home, right? Hermione said my missing toothbrush went to my kleptomaniac best friend, so apparently, Iām already in your wards,ā Ron asked with a teasing look.
Ā
Harry snorted a laugh but couldnāt even correct him because Harry knew he did tend to take little things from people he cared about. It wasnāt a problemā¦probably. āYeah, Iām taking Josh to lunch, so it might be a couple hours, so settle in and make yourself at home.ā
Ā
Ron grinned and walked backwards away from him. āNow thatās someone who I need to meet too. Hermione said she already cleared this bloke, but I reserve the right to check up on him too.ā
Ā
āNo running background checks on Chimney or Josh,ā Harry glared. Ron laughed and kept walking away. āIām serious!ā He called after him.
Ā
āNo, you arenāt; youāre Buck,ā Ron tossed over his shoulder, and Harry felt his heart swell with love at how well Ron knew him and how much he caredā¦even if he was most definitely going to run some kind of (probably) illegal search on the two men currently struggling to pull Hermioneās new tree towards Chimneyās truck. Yeah, Buck should probably go save Josh.
Ā
Ā
Eddie was more than a little concerned about Christmas this year. It was their first with Shannon back in their lives. Christopher was beside himself he was so happy, but Eddie was leaning towards it being more awkward than anything else. They had filed for divorce just a few days after their first conversation about it. Theyād been separated for almost two years by this point, so it wasnāt like there was any reason to wait longer.
Ā
It's not that Eddie and Shannon werenāt getting along. They really were. Honestly, they were getting along much better than they had when they were married. Still, it was a little weird. They hadnāt told Chris about the divorce, but Eddie just didnāt know how to explain it.
Ā
None of this was the reason that it was Buck who was with him and Chris to get pictures with Santa this year though. Or maybe it might be a little. Christopher had actually asked for Buck to join them though, and Shannon had to work that evening anyway. For some reason, Eddie couldnāt really bring himself to introduce Buck to Shannon. That just felt exceptionally weird. And no, he didnāt plan on examining that feeling in the slightest.
Ā
Eddie watched his son charming all the elves around Santa before looking over at the man beside him. Buck had been a little more down recently even as he was standing there smiling at Chris. He was smiling, but it was a wistful, sad smile. Eddie didnāt understand it.
Ā
āYour kid is just so great, man,ā Buck effused. āHeās so independent, wanting to do things on his own.ā
Ā
Eddie nodded, giving up on trying to figure out what was up with his friend for now. āItās because so many people have told him he canāt do things in his life. I never want him to feel that way.ā
Ā
Buck turned his blue, almost gray, eyes on him with a smile that had Eddieās heart doing something odd. āYouāre a good dad. Chris is lucky to have you.ā
Ā
Eddie shook his head and leaned against the railing for Santaās village more. āI was gone so long. I missed so much of his life, and Iāll never be able to make it up to him.ā
Ā
Buck nudged his shoulder to get him to look up at him. āHey, I do actually know a little about thatā¦the leaving and the being left. From my experience, it makes all the difference that youāre here now and trying, no matter what happened in the past.ā
Ā
Buck seemed so sincere, and way more mature than his 27-year-old frat boy self should sound. āYou turning wise on me Buckley?ā Eddie teased, needing to shrug off the intense emotions. He was absolutely not going to cry in Santaās village, especially when Shannon had already told their son the story of him throwing up on Santa when he was a kid.
Ā
āNever,ā Buck grinned back just as the elf led Christopher back over to them.
Ā
āHey mijo! You ask Santa for what you want this year?ā He took his son and gave him a huge sloppy kiss on the cheek that Chris had to wipe off and call gross.
Ā
āYeah,ā Chris grinned. āI canāt tell you though. It's a secret.ā
Ā
āWell, ok then,ā he said, but only because heād seen the letter Chris had written to Santa when they had mailed it, so he had a pretty good idea which video games his son wanted this year already. āLetās go get ice cream!ā
Ā
Just as they were walking away, Eddie heard the elf-lady talking to Buck. āYou both have a very cute son.ā
Ā
Eddie paused and waited. He wasnāt sure how Buck was going to handle this. Eddie wasnāt sure what he wanted Buck to say either. āUhā¦thanks,ā Buck said eventually with a smile before turning to join them.
Ā
Eddie smiled back and helped Chris down a couple steps. Buck hadnāt corrected her. That wasā¦for some reason, Eddie was happy about that. Why? He didnāt think he should be upset or anything, but why happy? Or maybe happy wasnāt the best wordā¦at peace maybe?
Ā
āHey! We getting ice cream?ā Buck asked again. āMy brother-in-law has eaten all mine, and Iām in desperate need of a sugar fix!ā
Ā
Chris laughed and let Buck pick him up to carry him the rest of the way to the truck. āHowās it going with Maddieās ex staying at your house? Isnāt that a littleā¦awkward?ā Actually, come to think of it, that situation had to be even more awkward than what was going on between Eddie and Shannonā¦minus all the blood sharing bits at least.
Ā
āNah,ā Buck smiled and did a little danced to bounce Chris and get him laughing. āHe was my friend first, and I had a binding verbal agreement from way back when they first started dating that weād all still be friends if they broke up. So, they just have to deal with it now.ā
Ā
āLike Mommy and Daddy?ā Chris said, catching Eddie completely off-guard. Just how much did Chris actually understand? Did Chris think they were divorced? Well, they were legally getting there now, but they hadnāt told him that yet. Buck didnāt seem to know how to answer that either. At least Eddie wasnāt alone in his surprise at how perceptive a seven-year-old could be.
Ā
āUhā¦yeah?ā Buck looked at him and they shared a confused shrug. āYeah, probably a lot like that.ā
Ā
They thankfully got to the truck, and Eddie unlocked the doors to let them in. Well, maybe this wasnāt going to be as bad of a conversation as he had originally thought it was going to be. But damnā¦heād eventually have to tell his son about the whole being an undead monster thing, so maybe he shouldnāt celebrate just yet.
Ā
Ā
āYou could have invited them over. Iām perfectly capable of pretending to be a muggle for one evening,ā Ron grumbled from where he was sitting on the floor and leaning against Hermioneās legs on the couch.
Ā
āEddie and Chris already had plans with Eddieās exā¦or possibly former ex and current partner. Iām not really sure how thatās going,ā Harry looked at his shining little tree wistfully while he twirled a long strand of his black hair through a finger. It was nice to be himself for a day, long hair, green eyes, scars and all.
Ā
Ron and Hermione both looked at him as if heād just said something very funny. He didnāt understand what heād said though that would cause that look. āI meant Chimney and Josh,ā Ron chuckled. āSoā¦maybe I should be asking about this vampire more than about the bloke youāre actually dating.ā
Ā
āWhat?ā Harry glared. āEddie is just a friendā¦a really good friend. And Josh had plans with some of his friends for the holiday.ā
Ā
āAnd Iām not subjecting Chimney to you for any length of time,ā Hermione flicked her ex-husbandās ear.
Ā
āOi!ā
Ā
āYou tracked him down to spy on him,ā she glared. "I told you to leave him alone."
Ā
Ron shrugged unapologetically. āWe both agreed to vet all Harryās dates from now on, so I donāt see how you can get out of that either.ā
Ā
āIām not incompetent!ā Harry protested but had to give up at the look from them both.
Ā
āNorberta,ā they both said in unison.
Ā
Harry rolled his eyes. āJosh is at least not a Norberta.ā
Ā
āNo, he isnāt,ā Hermione patted his hand. āYou also donāt seem to be very enthusiastic about this relationship though.ā
Ā
Harry sighed deeply. āCanāt we talk about you two? I have embarrassing stories on Chimney, or Ronā¦have you gone out with anyone recently?ā
Ā
Ron wrinkled his nose. āI think I need to be single for a while,ā he said eventually. āYou knowā¦figure out who I am on my own and all.ā
Ā
āThat sounds lovely,ā Hermione ran a hand through his hair. Harry just smiled with all the love in his heart; they were going to be fine.
Ā
He cleared the lump out of his throat and took a sip of his eggnog before motioning to the tree. āWell, how about presents then?ā
Ā
āI got them,ā Ron leaned forward and pulled a few boxes and bags over to each of them. āHarry, Mum says that you grew so much sheās going to have to raise a sheep to get enough yarn to keep knitting you jumpers for Yule.ā
Ā
Harry laughed and opened up his new, fire engine red jumper. āRemember when I was so small and scrawny?ā
Ā
Hermione and Ron both winced. āYeah, mateā¦donāt remind us,ā Ron said, opening the handcuffs Harry had got him and spelled magic resistant, fire resistant, lock-pick proof, unslippable, and which would only open at Ronās magical signature. See, stealing things from his friends came in handy when spelling things for themā¦it really wasnāt a problem. He may even remove the pink fur if Ron asked nicely.
Ā
Ron laughed loudly at them though and promised to use them at work all the time. Hermione also seemed to really like her new mug that said āHang in there. It gets worse.ā Harry had gotten a similar one for Josh that read āThirst Responder.ā Josh was going to love it with the unholy amounts of coffee he drank.
Ā
Harry opened the box from Hermione that had fuzzy dice in it to hang in his jeep. Apparently, they were spelled to glow when aurors were close by. How in Merlinās name Hermione could do that, he had no clue, but he was going to test it out with Ron first thing in the morning! He wondered if they had to be wearing their robes?
Ā
āIām shite at gift giving,ā Ron said while Harry pulled his soft, new jumper on over his head. āI did get you something though.ā
Ā
āItās fine if you didnāt,ā Harry said, pulling his hair put of the neck of the jumper. He hadnāt even noticed he didnāt have anything from Ron.
Ā
āWell, I did...and it's not exactly legal, so you better be grateful. Itās going to be here any second now,ā Ron grinned and looked at his watch. āWe timed this perfectlyā¦any secondā¦ā
Ā
Harry frowned and shared a confused look with Hermione. Was Ron expecting an owl? Owls didnāt come to Harryās loft because he was worried someone would put a tracking charm on it. All his magical mail went to the local owl post office, the one place Harry still regularly interacted with the magical world because he had to check in on Teddy. The cell phone was really nice now, but Teddy still couldn't take it with him through the Hogwarts wards or it would definitely die.
Ā
āAaaannnnddddā¦.now!ā Ron pointed to the space in front of Harryās kitchen island.
Ā
A loud pop sounded, and a tall, blue haired teenager stumbled and sprawled out on the floor, not even attempting to catch himself gracefully. āBloody hell! Why are international portkeys like passing through a nunduās digestive tract?!ā
Ā
āTeddy?ā Harry breathed out, not believing his eyes in the slightest. Ā
Ā
The teenager sat up with a huge grin on his face. āDad!ā He exclaimed. āHey! You didnāt think Iād miss all our Yule traditions to hang out with the Malfoys did you?ā
Ā
Harry ran right over and tackled his godson right back down to the floor in a hug. āOi! Did you get more muscles! Youāre crushing me,ā Teddy complained, and Harry let him up slightly but didnāt let go.
Ā
āI missed you so much,ā Harry said into the blue hair. āI love you so, so much.ā
Ā
āI love you too, Dad,ā Teddy huffed out a laugh. āDo we really have to do all the mushy emotional stuff though? I was hoping for some wizards chess and some good eggnog. You make the best.ā
Ā
Harry knew he needed to let go. He really had missed Teddy more than anything though. He didnāt know how he still warranted being called āDadā after everything they had been through, that he had put Teddy through. A long time ago, heād initially freaked out and corrected Teddy when he first called him daddy when he was about five, but Andromeda had set him straight immediately. He was as much of a father as Teddy was ever going to get, so whether he lived with them or not, whether they shared blood or not, if Teddy chose that role for Harry, then he was bloody well going to let him. So, even after Harry had strained their relationship...or really Kingsley had, if Teddy still wanted to call him dad, then Harry would always welcome it.
Ā
āIf you let me go, Iāll give you the present Grandma sent,ā Teddy tried to bribe him next.
Ā
Harry laughed but did actually let him go now. āItās not Kreacher right? Please say heās still at Hogwarts.ā
Ā
Teddy grimaced deeply. āUnfortunately. He irons my boxers and delivers them to the dorms,ā Teddy said in horror. Harry and Ron about died laughing at that while Hermione just scoffed and grumbled something about SPEW. Yeah, Harry was going to need to donate more to her charity soon to avoid his best friend's wrath.
Ā
āAnyway,ā Teddy pulled his rucksack off his back and unzipped it. āGrandma sent you an entire case of butterbeer. She said you must be going through withdrawals while living muggle like you are when you like it so much.ā
Ā
āBless that woman,ā Harry happily took the large case of his favorite magical beverage that Teddy handed over. āWho wants?ā
Ā
āEggnog,ā Teddy protested.
Ā
Harry sighed and studied him. āI didnāt leave the rum out of it this year. I didnāt know you were coming.ā
Ā
āEven better,ā Teddyās grin said he was spending way too much time with his Uncle George.
Ā
āI can remove it with a spell!ā Hermione jumped up before Harry could do something as scandalous as caving to his godsonās now green puppy dog eyes.
Ā
āAw, Aunt Mione, but Iām sixteen now,ā Teddy complained while Harry threw an arm around him and led him over to the couch.
Ā
āWell, old manā¦how about I introduce you to this wonderful game called Mario Kart then,ā Harry grinned and passed over a controller.
Ā
āOoo! I play winner!ā Ron jumped in at the mention of his new favorite muggle game.
Ā
Ā
Buck was making Bobbyās famous chili in his kitchen just a week after Christmas. He already missed Teddy so much. His godson had only gotten to stay for a few days before heād been missed and people asked questions, so he and Ron had taken their (definitely illegal and untraceable) international portkeys back to England together. Now his loft was way too quiet.
Ā
Heād had a few shifts at work, but it was his day off, and he couldnāt stand the silence. That was why Josh was currently judging the playlist he had softly playing on his phone while sipping on a beer and chatting with him at his kitchen table. āPass me the salt,ā Buck asked, and Josh held it out to him.
Ā
āThe kid was perfectly fine and even got home for Christmas. Iām pretty sure the company is going to give him a lot of money in exchange for signing something that says he wonāt sue,ā Josh explained what had happened to a kid they had saved who had accidentally gotten gift wrapped into a shipping container and almost shipped to who knows where before Christmas.
Ā
āThatās good to hear. Iām glad he reached out to you all. We never seem to hear what happens after calls unless they send food to the stationā¦which no one eats anymore,ā Buck looked over his shoulder and shared a meaningful look with Josh.
Ā
āBuck Buckley, the only smart one of the group,ā Josh toasted him with his beer.
Ā
Buck laughed loudly. āNo one in their right mind is going to agree with you on that, man.ā
Ā
āHey, you didnāt eat the LSD brownies,ā Josh disagreed. āWhere is your recycling?ā He motioned with his now empty bottle.
Ā
āThat cabinet,ā he motioned to one over by the fridge. āGrab yourself a new one if you want.ā
Ā
āYou want?ā Josh asked after tossing his empty and opening the door of the fridge.
Ā
āYes, please if you donāt mind. I canāt stop stirring this right now or itāll stick. I think I turned the heat up a little too high,ā Buck said, turning the heat down slightly. Heād better not burn this, or somehow Bobby would smell it all the way from his house and call to berate him.
Ā
It was a while later before he realized it had gotten really quiet in his loft, and Josh hadnāt said anything in a bit. Buck looked over and Josh was just standing in front of the fridge holding a brown bottle and frowning at it. āWhatās up?ā Buck asked, not know what had Josh looking so upset. Heād bought the same brand of beer that Josh had mentioned that he liked the last time they went out.
Ā
āWhere did you get this?ā Josh eventually asked, his voice coming out hoarser than normal. Harry paused in stirring and set the spoon aside to face him, not knowing what was up. He'd bought the beer at the local grocery store.
Ā
Harry finally got a good look at the bottle Josh was holding and almost turned as pale as Josh had seemed to just moments before. Well, bloody hell, of course the probably squib man would just happen to find a magical drink in his kitchenā¦He'd been so careful about anything magic in his home, but he supposed it would happen eventually.
Ā
āIt was a gift,ā he said, knowing that wasnāt going to cut it. Clearly, Josh recognized a bottle of butterbeer.
Ā
Josh licked his lips nervously and held out the bottle more. āThis isnāt sold in normal storesā¦Buck, where did you get this?ā He said slowly with a very intense look as if that would make Buck give him the answer he wanted.
Ā
Buck just studied him. The angry and disgusted look on Joshās face told him everything he needed to know. Merlin, but it had been nice while it lasted. He only hoped the man would dump him peacefully and not show a violent side Buck had yet to see in him.
Ā
āWellā¦I think we found one of your deal-breakers, havenāt we?ā Buck turned the burner off under the chili because it looked like dinner wasnāt happening any time soon now.
Notes:
Up next: Ending relationships, beginning relationships...
Chapter 8: Secrets Amongst Friends
Notes:
I'm having to mess with the timeline some to move things along a little quicker.
(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)
Chapter Text
Josh sighed before putting the unopened butterbeer on the counter. āFirst of all, that stuff is disgusting. I donāt see how you or anyone can drink it,ā Josh remarked, and Buck let a miniscule bit of his stress go. At least the disgust on Josh's face wasnāt directed at him.
Ā
Josh crossed his arms next and just studied him as if trying to read his life history from his expression or the wrinkles in his t-shirt or something. āSecondly, how in Houdiniās hell, Buck?! And why donāt you even seem surprised that I know what butterbeer is?!ā Josh finally burst out.
Ā
Buck winced at that. Maybe he should have brought his up with Josh before now. āI suspected you may have a connection to the magical world, but I didnāt know for sure,ā he explained. āYouāve let slip a few Merlins and Houdinis, but it's not like I saw you brewing a potion or levitating something.ā
Ā
Josh nodded slowly, seeming to accept the situation and that Buck hadn't wanted to assume. āSoā¦Iām a squib,ā he said to clarify. āYou are too?ā
Ā
Buck shook his head slowly, Joshās expression sinking. Yeah, this was going to be a deal breaker, he could see it already. Josh ran a hand over his face and let out a harsh breath. āSo, Iāll say it again,ā Josh gave him a hard look. āHow in Houdiniās hell?! Are you just obliviating all your co-workers all the time? Buck, thatās seriously unethical and illegalā¦ā
Ā
āNo!ā Buck cut in quickly, wanting to make sure Josh at least knew he wasnāt hurting those around him. āI donāt use magic at workā¦well, I have a time or two, just like a tracking charm or I stunned Chimney when he had rebar through his brain, but no one caught me, and I make it a rule never to use magic on calls or around the 118 unless I'm absolutely certain no one will see.ā
Ā
Josh looked infinitesimally less concerned. āWhy would you choose a job you couldnāt use magic at then? Thereās a reason wizards donāt work as no-maj first responders, Buck. The temptation is there, and if you get caughtā¦ā
Ā
Buck just nodded because he dealt with that temptation daily. He knew it well, but he also knew the stakes. It wasnāt just MACUSA stepping in to obliviate his co-workers if he messed up, but him being turned back over to Kingsley, and with the election campaign Ron had filled him in on, Harry would undoubtably be sent to Azkaban with no trial the same as Sirius had hands down. It would probably get the election handed to Kingsley on a silver platter too.
Ā
āRight, soā¦I have a very complicated relationship with magic, if you can understand,ā Buck began.
Ā
Josh snorted dryly and leaned against the island. āBuck, I have a complicated relationship with magic,ā Josh began. His expression turned hopeful then as a thought seemed to occur to him. āDo you mean, that you just donāt use magic now?ā
Ā
Buck took in his hopeful look and saw it for what it was. Josh would be willing to continue this relationship maybe if Buck didnāt use magic regularly. He could say that he didn't because he actually didn't use his wand much anymore, but he was who he was, and it would eventually come out. Josh didnāt deserve that betrayal.
Ā
āI use magic all the time, almost every second of the day,ā Buck said, causing that hopeful look to wash off Joshās face instantaneously. He wasnāt going to lie though, not when it would hurt so much later when he would undoubtedly be found out.
Ā
āIām a metamorphmagus. I donāt actually look like this,ā Buck explained motioning to himself. āIām not comfortable explaining why Iāve changed my appearance though.ā
Ā
Josh narrowed his eyes but nodded slowly after a moment. Buck would let him think that maybe he was making himself look better or hiding some kind of physical aspect he didnāt like or something like that. He didnāt know what Josh would assume, but whatever it was, had to be better than that he was on the run from the law.
Ā
Josh eventually walked around the island and sat down on one of the bar stools. āLook, Buckā¦you know how squibs are treated in the magical world,ā he began, and Buck prepared himself because this was definitely the break-up speech.
Ā
He had to say something though because he couldnāt have Josh think that it mattered to him at all. āJoshā¦I had always assumed that you were a squib if you had magic since you work at dispatch,ā he said. āI can see this is a big deal for you, but I need you to know, that you being a squib isnāt something that bothers me in the slightest. I wasnāt looking to date a wizard, clearly.ā
Ā
āThanks Buck,ā Josh opened the beer heād taken out of the fridge when he'd found the butterbeer and took a sip, clearly trying to gather his thoughts.
Ā
āI wish it didnāt matter to meā¦ā he began. āWhen my family learned I couldnāt use magic, I was basically kicked out at 11 years old. I mean, I still had a room in the house and food, but it was clear I was no longer considered part of the family, that I wasnāt wanted.ā
Ā
Buck felt that on a very personal level. He knew how it felt to be in a house with people who didnāt want him there. That was no way for anyone to grow up.
Ā
Josh just continued though. āIf it wasnāt for my aunt, I donāt think I could have survived living that way until I was able to get out and go to college. She didnāt care in the slightest that I didnāt have magic and took me in so that I didnāt have to stay in that house with those people.ā
Ā
Harry liked to think that if it had been Dudley and Petunia and Vernon had died that his mum would have taken in Dudley like Joshās aunt took him in. It was a comforting thought as much as it made him sad that his own aunt didnāt do that for him at all. āI understand,ā he began.
Ā
āNo, you donāt,ā Josh cut him off. āLook, you clearly arenāt no-maj-born with a gift like the metamorphmagus ability, so you canāt understand what it was like to be cut off from your family just for who you are.ā
Ā
Buck crossed his arms and raised an eyebrow at the man who was assuming quite a lot there. āJoshā¦have you ever heard Maddie or I speak about our parents at all? Thereās a reason why we donāt,ā he said in all honesty. It may be for different reasons, but neither one of them had healthy childhoods.
Ā
āOh, god, Maddie!ā Joshās eyes widened as that finally sank in. āIs sheā¦?ā
Ā
āSheās a witch,ā Buck confirmed. āHer reasons for stepping away from the magical world are different from mine, but she has her own. Youāll have to talk with her. She deserves to explain her own experiences.ā
Ā
Josh seemed to be fighting some kind of battle within himself before he just gave up with a sigh. āIām sorry, Buck. I just canāt. I like youā¦like I really like you, but I canāt step full-time back into a world that rejected me. Dating you, being in a relationship where youāre accepted in a world where Iām notā¦I donāt think I can do that.ā
Ā
Buck nodded. āI get that, and I respect it.ā
Ā
āI do really like you though,ā Josh continued with a look that was cautiously hopeful. āI might not be able to step back into that world full-time, butā¦could we still be friends? We make great trivia partners, and it may be nice to have someone to talk to about how terrible butterbeer is and how ridiculous the witches in movies are portrayed.ā
Ā
Buck smiled because that was actually the best outcome he could have hoped for. He hadnāt been able to convince himself that this thing with Josh was going to be long-term from the very beginning. A friendship...that was even better than him trying to make this relationship work when his broken heart and brain just couldnāt get with the program.
Ā
āI would love to be your friend,ā he said emphatically. āIāve had so much fun spending time with you, and I know Maddie feels the same way. I don't want to lose you from my life.ā
Ā
Josh chuckled and shook his head. āYeah, weāre going to need a dinner to hash this all out between us, I guess. I canāt believe I didnāt see it! You two have to be the weirdest magical people ever.ā
Ā
Buck just shrugged with a grin. āEh, probably.ā
Ā
āIs there anyone else Iāve missed?ā Josh asked with a laugh. āIs Chimney a wizard then since he and Maddie are sort-of dating?ā
Ā
āNo, definitely not!ā Buck laughed at that thought.
Ā
āAs far as I know, Chimney is no-maj all the way. I donāt think there are any more witches or wizards in our circle of friends,ā he answered honestly since Eddie was still no-maj, and he didnāt want to sell his friend out to anyone when Eddie didnāt even know Buck knew that he was a vampire.
Ā
āMerlinās balls,ā Josh grinned widely. āYou and Maddieās lack of pop culture knowledge now makes so much more sense! And her purse! It has an extension charm on it, doesnāt it?! Thatās why she seems to be able to carry books around in that tiny bag!ā
Ā
āOh yeah, Maddie always has a few books on her, even with the tiny purse,ā Buck laughed, and figured he could chance his luck and try to be useful to his friend. Ā āAlsoā¦now that you know, Iām always up to be your potion and charm dealer if you need anything.ā
Ā
āIāll definitely take you up on that,ā Josh smiled and sipped his drink. They were going to be ok. They may not be in a romantic relationship anymore, but Buck was cautiously optimistic that they could make this work and still be friends.
Ā
āNow,ā Buck turned around and turned the burner back on under the chili. āLunch...youāre still staying, and now I can drink my butterbeer without raising questions.ā
Ā
āEw, that stuff is still gross,ā Josh grimaced dramatically at the bottle on the counter. "Damn, it's a shame this ended before we even had sex."
Ā
Buck laughed loudly and opened the offending drink. "Probably for the best. You might not have been able to let me go after."
Ā
"You wish, Buckley, you wish," Josh grinned right back at him.
Ā
Ā
Harry sat in Hermioneās sitting room and nursed his glass of firewhiskey while his friend (now sister) ranted about her terrible day at dispatch where their systems had been down because of an accident at the communications center. She and Josh had saved the day, being the two people most used to not relying on computer systems and technology out of the group. Finally, the magical world's backwards approach to technology came in handy!
Ā
āI literally had to explain to a new dispatcher how to read a map,ā Hermine punctuated the comment with a sip of her drink. āLike, seriously Harryā¦a map. Itās not even like I was explaining alchemy or something, it was just a paper map!ā
Ā
āIt was a dayā¦ā Harry sighed. His day had been a little more traumatic than frustrating. āEddie was trapped in a burning house. There for a second, I actually considered apparating in and grabbing him. If Chimney hadnāt been able to get in touch with his friend at Harbor Station to air drop water and put out the fire, I might have.ā
Ā
Hermione put a hand on his knee and just left it with a small, knowing smile. He didnāt need someone to tell him how bad of an idea it was. He hadnāt done it, and he knew he shouldnāt even consider it. He also knew he would risk having to run again to save Eddieās life if he had to. Vampires could survive a lot, but burning alive wasnāt one of them. Harry was not going to tell Christopher that his dad wasnāt coming home even if that meant he had to go on the run, or even if that meant he went to Azkaban.
Ā
Time to change the subject. Harry took a sip and smiled. āSo, howās it going with Josh now that he knows? He interrogate you over your lunch break or something?ā
Ā
Hermione laughed. āNo, we chatted, but he and I werenāt dating, and heād already gotten over his shock, so it wasnāt as intense as it probably was for you two. Mainly we ended up talking about my healer training and how my studies are going. Also, heads up, but I'm pretty sure Josh thinks you're trans."
Ā
Harry raised an eyebrow and chuckled over his glass. "Really? Why? How did he get that impression from our conversation?"
Ā
She shrugged and smiled. "I don't know...maybe you saying you're a metamorphmagus and not explaining why you're completely changing your look. Maybe also because you insinuated our parents didn't accept you. I'm just reading between the lines, but the lines were pretty clear from how he was talking around it. Just so you know, he likes you all the same if you're trans...it's just the magic he has a problem with."
Ā
"Good to know, I guess," Harry shook his head seeing how that could be a conclusion a person would jump to, but not having seen that coming at all. Oh well, at least the conclusion wasn't that he was a fugitive running from the aurors. "I guess I'm flattered he thinks I'm that powerful of a metamorphmagus, which I'm very much not."
Ā
"Harryā¦Iām really sorry it didnāt work out," Hermione said sadly.
Ā
Harry nodded and patted her hand still on his knee. āI knowā¦and Iām sorry too. Itās justā¦I think Iām broken.ā
Ā
Hermione frowned deeply. āHarryā¦ā
Ā
āNo, hear me out,ā he sat the drink on the coffee table and took in a breath. Heād actually given this a lot of thought since Ginny had broken up with him, and even more since Kingsley. āI lost a part of my soul during the war.ā
Ā
āVoldemortās soul,ā she reminded him with a confused expression.
Ā
Harry shook his head. āA part of my soul that had been there from when I was a baby, even if it wasnāt mine originally. I can feel it, Hermione,ā he put a hand over his chest where the lightning bolt scar was.
Ā
Her expression fell. āWhy havenāt you said anything?ā
Ā
āBecause thereās nothing to do, nothing to fix it,ā he rubbed his chest. āSomething is broken in here, even if itās not the missing soul piece, maybe itās that my childhood just really fucked with my brain too much, or that Iāve been a soldier too long that I donāt know how to be normalā¦ā
Ā
Hermione scooted over and put her arms around him. She put a hand on the side of his face and rubbed her thumb lightly over the scar that cut across half his forehead. Something about her or Ron touching the scar had always relaxed him. They didnāt know why, but especially when theyād been on the run their seventh year, they had figured it out, and Hermione or Ron would run a finger over it whenever Harry was noticeably distressed. Harry thought it was their magic somehow soothing the ache left by the curse that remained even after the horcrux was removed.
Ā
āYou really should see a mind-healer,ā Hermione said for the thousandth time.
Ā
āI canāt,ā he breathed out. She knew he couldnāt because he couldnāt walk back into the magical world that much and be that honest, and a muggle therapist had gone so well for him already. Yeah, he wasnāt willing to give that a try again anytime soon.
Ā
Harry rested his head on her shoulder. āA perfectly nice bloke comes my way, and I just canāt seem to feel comfortable in the relationship. Then, someone like Abby or Kingsley who both wanted to use me in their own way comes along, and I just jump right in.ā
Ā
āHarry,ā Hermione kissed the top of his head. āI donāt think thatās a horcrux issue. I think this is a Dursley issueā¦maybe even a Dumbledore issueā¦ā
Ā
Harry winced. He still had some unresolved issues with the man he looked up to like a grandfather telling him he had to die, and even more so that Dumbledore had known it for a long timeā¦well, that had done a number on him definitely. He still wasnāt sure what he actually felt about the man, or Snape for that matterā¦or even Sirius.
Ā
āAlso, just because Josh is nice doesnāt mean you were right for each other,ā Hermione added. āThatās not the only factor to consider. Donāt give up hope yet.ā
Ā
Harry nodded. āMaybe I just need to be single for a while like Ron is trying,ā he concluded, sitting back up and grabbing his firewhiskey.
Ā
āThatās perfectly fine too,ā she smiled comfortingly. āNow, I do have to tell you, don't be mad, but I volunteered you to upgrade Joshās wards. Apparently, his aunt set his, and sheās not very good at warding. He asked me, but I told him you were better at wards.ā
Ā
Harry rolled his eyes at her, but smiled because he would always offer to keep his friends safe. That was never something he would be opposed to. Heād actually been trying to figure out how he could ward all his muggle friendsā homes without it being obvious and illegal. He was still working on that. āIāll text him in the morning for a time to drop by and do it.ā
Ā
āNow,ā Harry grinned. āWhen are you and Chimney actually going to go on a real date that the two of you both call a date?ā
Ā
Hermione rolled her eyes and huffed a laugh before reaching over and grabbing her cell phone. She tapped at it for a couple seconds before putting it back down. āThere,ā she smiled.
Ā
āWhatā¦?ā The phone immediately dinged, and Hermione held up a finger to check it.
Ā
She smiled widely. āThursday,ā she laughed and held the phone out for him to take.
Ā
Harry read the text chain and laughed. Well, that was one way to do it:
Ā
Maddie: Hey, Howie, how about you and I go to dinner Thursday night? On a date?
Ā
Howie: Hell yeah! Iām there!!
Ā
āSee, I was just waiting until I was ready,ā Hermione said when he handed the phone back over, still laughing. āPlus, I got tired of you and Ron looking at me with those sappy looks. Neither of your faces should ever try to make that expression again.ā
Ā
āAwwww,ā Harry definitely made the sappy-face expression and got a swat of her hand for his troubles.
Ā
Ā
Muggle police were so cute. Harry smiled at the cops sitting across from him in the interrogation room. Now, that thought absolutely didnāt apply to Athena Grant. Bobbyās fiancĆ© was scary, and he fully and inexplicably believed she could take him down even with all this training and magic. He had no basis for that belief, but he was certain of it. These cops though, just⦠he liked the Southern American expression of ābless your heartā as applies to them.
Ā
They were doing their very best to pin the bank robbery that had happened while the 118 had been rescuing a bank manager and Hen who were trapped in a vault on all of the firefighters. Harry and Ron would have made these two cops piss their pants if they were on the other side of the interrogation table. Honestly, he and Ron would have figured out the 118 had no part in all this well before now. Harry was having so much fun playing the dumb blond, but he was concerned about Eddie.
Ā
Eddie clearly wasnāt having as much fun as he and even Maddie were. Hermione had been questioned by aurors after the war and again after his disappearance. These two cops had nothing on war hardened magical cops. Harry and Hermione had the most to keep from these muggles, but Eddie was the only other member of the 118 hiding something (as far as Harry knew at least). It later turned out he was wrong, but that was another day.
Ā
Harry got it, the cops were digging through their lives. His own and Hermioneās identities would hold up to a muggle investigation, and he really hoped Eddie had been discreet enough that the cops wouldnāt find questionable vampire activities on him. He was absolutely certain Eddie wasnāt leaving a trail of bodies in his wake because it was Eddie. Eddie had remarkably control over his bloodlust for any age vampire, let alone a baby vamp. Harry could only guess that his friend had been turned during his time at war as a medic in Afghanistan to have created that level of self-control that quickly.
Ā
Still, Eddie had to be buying his blood from somewhere since Buck had never seen Eddie going out to clubs and had never heard a single story about a one-night stand. Honestly, Harry was hoping Shannon was helping out since he knew Eddieās finances couldnāt be great. Which, it seemed the cops were now latching onto. Well, if Eddie was actually arrested, Harry would just have to find out who the real bank robber was and somehow get Athena to step in.
Ā
āWaitā¦what? Can you explain that again? I donāt understand,ā he asked the cops who were walking him through how they thought the 118 had pulled off this heist and why. He internally laughed at the āyouāre so dumbā looks he was getting now. Ron was better at this strategy than he was. Ron had made it into an art form, but Harry was channeling his best friend very well.
Ā
Merlin, he was so going to call Ron as soon as he got home, and they were going to have the best laugh over this. Harry and his friends had actually robbed a bank before ironically enough. Their heist might not have been this well planned, but hey, they were 17 and starving, so a little grace there. At least they had the flair for the dramatic unlike whoever did this one. Why rob a bank if you werenāt going to ride out on a dragon and end a war?
Ā
Ā
Eddie was double checking his credit card statements while he waited for Shannon to bring Christopher home after their day together at the beach. The statements all very clearly listed that he had been purchasing acupuncture and holistic wellness services every two weeks. Apparently, that was what the vampires were hiding their blood dealing through. He trusted a shady organization as well-established as this one was to know how to cover their tracks, but he was nervous about the cops digging into his finances any more than they already had.
Ā
āDaddy!ā Christopher called out as soon as Shannon opened the door to the house.
Ā
āMijo! Did you have fun with Mommy today?ā He opened his arms for a big hug, feeling all his anxiety turn to joy as soon as his son was in his arms again. Everything was better when he had Chris with him.
Ā
āI built a sandcastle, and found this,ā Chris held up a large pink shell.
Ā
āWow! Thatās so cool!ā Eddie grinned and seriously studied the shell like it was a jewel his kid had found.
Ā
āI think you should put this on the shelf in your room and then go clean up. Youāre still sandy,ā he said, wincing at the grains of sand that had transferred to him from Chrisās shirt and rubbed at his skin. Sand always took him back to the desert, and Eddie had to push down the images wanting to drag him back to the worst days of his life. He was glad Shannon offered to take their son to the beach since Eddie himself always had trouble going there.
Ā
āHey, how was your day? Anything interesting happen at work?ā Shannon asked, dropping the bag of towels and swim trunks in Eddieās laundry room to be handled later.
Ā
āIt was fine,ā he shrugged. āApparently, there was a bank robbery or armored car robbery or something while we were making a rescue. The police have been asking a lot of questions.ā
Ā
Shannon frowned and sat on the couch. āAnything you should be concerned about? You pay cash for your blood, right?ā
Ā
āI donāt, but itās fine,ā Eddie handed over the credit card statement and pointed at the charge. Predictably she laughed loudly as soon as she read it.
Ā
āEdmundo Diaz getting acupuncture or reiki or something,ā she giggled. āI never thought Iād see the day. Should I buy you some essential oils or crystals to keep around the house?ā
Ā
āHa, ha,ā he deadpanned. āActually, lavender essential oils are very calming to diffuse for when Chris has to do his PT in the mornings.ā
Ā
Shannon just laughed louder and held her sides. āOh god, youāve gone LA on me!ā
Ā
āYeah, yeah,ā he smiled, grateful that he had his friend back. He may no longer have a wife, but Shannon had been his friend well before they were together. It felt like they were almost back there again, that they could be what they used to be.
Ā
Ā
āSo, letās see if I got this right. The fake nerve agent attack was a distraction for the armored car robberyā¦which was a distraction for the diamond heist,ā Buck scrunched up his face in a very confused look. āCrime is hard.ā
Ā
Eddie couldnāt help his smile at his best friend. Buck was just soā¦Buck. Eddie didnāt think Buck could intentionally commit a crime if his life depended on it. Actually, maybe if his sisterās life depended on it or someone he cared about. Eddie could see Buck doing whatever it took to protect the people he cared about. However, he was certain Buck would be the worst criminal on the planet.
Ā
Bobby had mentioned once that Buck had tried out for the Navy SEALs oddly enough. Eddie hadnāt talked about it with Buck, but he understood why Buck would drop out even after completing training. Buck could absolutely not be a soldier. Buck might be badass, but he would never intentionally hurt anyone for any reason. Buck couldnāt make those hard decisions, and Eddie wouldnāt wish that on him for any reason whatsoever.
Ā
āOk, so enough of the heist talk,ā Chimney cut in after Henās explanation of how she and Athena had gone all Hardy Boys or Nancy Drew or something on the crime scene and figured out what happened.
Ā
āDude, this is like the most excitement weāve had in a long time,ā Johnson called over from where he was sitting at the other end of the table.
Ā
āYeah, yeah,ā Chimney waved him off before pinning Buck with a look.
Ā
Eddie would save him from whatever this was about to be if he knew what he was saving Buck from. Chimney was acting captain right now though while Bobby was being investigated for whatever the cops had turned up during the heist about his time in Minnesota. Out of all of them, it wasnāt Bobby that Eddie thought would have something come up in the investigation. Frankly, he was still breathing a sigh of relief that his own dealings hadnāt gotten flagged. Everyone knew their captain would be cleared, but they were stuck with Captain Han right now, and he really might bite the man if he asked them to run one more drill.
Ā
āSo, I went out with Maddie last night,ā Chimney began.
Ā
āI heard,ā Buck grinned. āBreak my sisterās heart, and youāll wish I only broke your legs,ā he said with the brightest smile and the lightest tone, and for some reason Eddie felt a shiver of danger run down his spine still. Chimney gulped, so clearly, he felt it too. What in Draculaās name had that been?!
Ā
Chimney shook off whatever that was and put back on the smug look heād worn since being promoted to acting captain. āAnyway,ā he started again. āI heard from your sister that you and Josh broke up. Why didnāt you say anything? What happened? Please say you didn't make Josh cry! It would be like kicking a puppy.ā
Ā
Eddie frowned in concern. Buck hadnāt said a thing. Why hadnāt he told him? Eddie thought they were the type of friends who told each other things. Well, he didnāt tell Buck a lot, but Buck told him things.
Ā
āFirst of all, he broke up with me. And, secondly, itās not a big deal. Weāre still friends,ā Buck shrugged. He looked sad, but not overly upset. Eddie supposed that was a good thing. āWe just were looking for different things in life. It didnāt mesh.ā
Ā
āIt didnāt mesh?ā Hen raised a questioning eyebrow. āWhat does that mean?ā
Ā
āI means I make shit decisions in relationships,ā Buck shrugged. āThis time, we just called it before it could implode and ruin one or both of our lives. Probably the best outcome.ā
Ā
Eddie frowned. He didnāt like that. Buck shouldnāt feel like this was his fault. He didnāt know what had happened, but Buck wasā¦Buck was special. He deserved someone who saw that. He shouldnāt look this resigned to whatever this negative feeling was about himself. Something had happened is his friendās life, and Eddie realized he had no idea what that was, but it was important. What did a person do with that realization?
Ā
Hen reached over and patted Buckās hand. āHey, Buck, sometime things donāt work out. That doesnāt mean they werenāt good while they lasted or that better things arenāt to come.ā
Ā
Buck smiled and Eddie sighed gratefully that Hen had found the words he couldnāt. The bell rang loudly and they all abandoned the pizza theyād had to order without Bobbyās cooking there. Eddie prayed it wasnāt another of the package bombs that had been delivered around town recently. Whatever this was, had everyone on edge.
Ā
The ambulance pulled up to the scene of a car accident, and Eddie let out a breath of relief. Any day without a bomb in it was a good day in his opinion. Heād had enough IEDs for his entire life, thank you very much.
Ā
He and Buck rushed over to the driver in the car. They started in on the questions to assess her mental faculties, and Eddie began to place the collar around her neck to stabilize her for transport. āWhat about the woman?ā The driver asked frantically. āShe came out of nowhere. I didnāt see her!ā
Ā
Buck stood up to look while Eddie finished securing the collar. āEddieā¦ā Buck breathed out in what he immediately recognized as a horrified tone.
Ā
What had happened? Eddie straightened up to look. āNo, donāt,ā Buck tried to block his view, and Eddie had a sinking feeling and felt his knees going weak. Why didnāt Buck want him to see?
Ā
āLet me by,ā Eddie pushed him aside, maybe using more of his vampire strength than he should. He had a feeling though. He had a very bad feeling.
Ā
āEddie!ā Hen tried to stop him next, but heād seen the yellow dress. The same yellow dress heād seen just that morning when Shannon had dropped by the house because sheād wanted to take Chris to school.
Ā
āNo!ā Eddie rushed over and collapsed beside his wife, his friend. āShannonā¦ā
Ā
āI didnāt want to leave,ā she gasped out in pain, trying to find air.
Ā
āNo, no, youāre going to be fine. Stay with us,ā Eddie took her hand while Chimney and Johnson transferred her to a backboard. Eddie caught the look in Chimneyās eyesā¦Shannon wasnāt going to be fineā¦
Ā
Eddie breathed in. There was a lot of blood. He could see her injuries; he could smell the blood. Shannon wasnāt going to make it.
Ā
Chimney held off intubating her so that Eddie could say goodbye, but this couldnāt be goodbye! āTell Christopher I love him,ā she said with all her strength.
Ā
āI will,ā he sniffed, not even able to hold back the tears. āHe loves you too. I love you.ā
Ā
āTell himā¦tell him Iām sorry for leaving again,ā she gasped.
Ā
This wasnāt happening. He couldnāt let her go. āShannon,ā he breathed out, knowing the weight of what he was saying. He never thought he would ever consider this. After what had happened to him, the thought would have never crossed his mind until this happened.
Ā
āI can fix this,ā he said lowly. It would work; he could do it. āI can keep you here.ā
Ā
And he would do it too. He would turn Shannon into a vampire right there in front of Chimney in the back of this ambulance no matter what the consequences to him were. He might not remember his own turning, but heād pieced together what must have happened from what the soldier whoād done to him had told him later. He was certain he knew enough to do it if he had to.
Ā
āLet meā¦stay with usā¦ā he begged. He wouldnāt do this against her will, but she had to. She had to live.
Ā
āNo,ā Shannon gave him a weak smile. āNot like thatā¦Iām sorryā¦not like thatā¦ā
Ā
Ā
Buck sat beside Eddie in the hospital waiting room and wrapped his arms around his friend. Eddie gasped a sob. Buck just held him tighter.
Ā
Buck wasnāt allowed in the back of the ambulance. He had no reason to be there since he wasnāt a paramedic. Chimney and Eddie had crowded in with Shannon, and Buck had looked on, trying to figure out how to get in, but then the doors closed. He would have tried to save Shannon. His healing magic was shite, but he would have tried. He didnāt know how Eddie had kept from turning her, but Buck was grateful he wasnāt currently having to obliviate Chimney and Hen to save his vampire friend.
Ā
āShe left us,ā Eddie gasped out in another sob. Buck rubbed his back and held back his own tears. āI triedā¦I asked her to stayā¦ā
Ā
Buck nodded, not that Eddie could see. So, he had offered to turn her. Buck got it, he understood why she might say no. On the other hand, he also didnāt understand.
Ā
He was immortal, but if he wasnāt, Buck thought heād probably choose to become a vampire over dying at most points in his life at least. He could understand why other people might not though. He was used to his life changing drastically when heād become a wizard, then famous, then a child of prophesy, then a soldier, then a fugitive, then the Master of Death, then so on and so forth. Most people werenāt used to that though. He supposed not everyone would choose to become a supernatural being, even if it kept them alive. There were definitely downsides.
Ā
Buck might not have the words to say to make this right, but he knew grief. He knew how to be there, even when there was nothing he could do, nothing that could be done. āIāve got you,ā he said, looking over at the other members of the 118 and motioning with his head for them to leave. Eddie didnāt need them standing around and watching him fall apart. He wouldnāt appreciate that. Hen nodded and herded the group out of the room.
Ā
āIām here,ā Buck said again when they were finally alone.
Ā
āHow am I going to tell Chris?ā Eddie asked from his shoulder as he clutched Buckās shirt in his fists.
Ā
Buck scratched the back of his Eddieās neck and had to forcibly keep himself from kissing the top of Eddieās head like he would Hermione. Eddie wouldnāt like that. āYou just do. You be honest, and you let him express whatever he needs to,ā he finally said because heād had to break bad news to parents and children as an auror too many times. āIāll be there with you if you want me to.ā
Ā
āPlease,ā Eddie held on tighter, trusting Buck to hold him together through this, and Harry was gone. He loved this man. And wasnāt that the worst realization to make at the absolute worst time!
Notes:
Up Next: The ladder truck...
Chapter Text
Eddie wasnāt holding it together well in the aftermath of losing his ex-wife. Yes, he put on a front of staying strong for Chris. Heād told his son that his mother was gone, and that this time she couldnāt come back. Heād held Chris while he cried. But really, really it was Buck holding them together through everything.
Ā
Eddie hadnāt even been able to explain to his son that Shannon had died. Heād only been able to say she was gone. He knew Chris needed more of an explanation than that, but his words had failed him. Heād looked at Buck helplessly who was sitting on the other side of Christopher on their couch, and that made Christopher look to Buck too. Buck had come with him when Eddie had asked. He was ashamed he couldn't do this on his own, but he'd be forever grateful that he didn't have to.
Ā
In the wake of both of their pleading looks, Buck had just put an arm around Christopherās shoulders and pulled him in to his side. Then Buck held his child while he was the one who explained that sometimes people we love are taken from us. Sometimes there are accidents that we just canāt predict and canāt change. That Shannon was in one of these accidents. Buck explained that she had died and moved on to an afterlife but that she would still be there. She was in Christopherās heart and would watch over him. Eddie wasnāt sure he really believed that, but it helped. It helped him and Chris both.
Ā
Buck was so good at this. Eddie didnāt know why or how, but he felt the tears running down his cheeks when Buck transferred a crying Christopher to his arms. He and Chris held each other, and he mouthed a silent āthank youā to his friend over his son's head. Buck nodded, wiping the moisture out of his own eyes, and he hadnāt even known Shannon. What had Buck gone through in his life that made him so good at explaining death? Eddie wasnāt sure he wanted to know.
Ā
Things got better, but they also got worse. Things were better just because of time and having to move forward. Eddie and Chris grieved and stayed home from work and school to be with each other. They had each other, and Buck even stayed at their house for a while cooking and helping with all the funeral and burial arrangements, but then he had to go back to work. Things got worse then for Eddie at least because Eddieās family came to town for the funeral, and his parents didnāt exactly like Shannon, and they definitely didnāt know he was a vampire. Actually, that was one of the main reasons Eddie had moved to LA, that and the blood bank system.
Ā
Eddie had to take all his blood out of the refrigerator because his mother would take it over with things she wanted to cook. She and his abuela would be cooking for all the family coming through town. She was also really bad at just going through everything in the entire house saying she was cleaning and helping but also invading his privacy. He didnāt know what to do with his blood supply. What little he had was even more precious now too because Shannon was no longer there offering to help.
Ā
Finally, he stashed all he could in a cooler in the garage with a lot of ice packs and hoped for the best. It wasnāt ideal, but it only had to last for a week until his parents went back home. It was probably the longest week of his entire life.
Ā
It wasnāt even the fact that Eddie had to sneak into his garage in the middle of the night to drink blood like a teenager sneaking alcohol from his parents that made it so terrible. It was really his parents who just didnāt understand him in the slightest. They tried to get him to move back to El Paso. When that didnāt work, they tried again to get him to just give them custody of Christopher. He would never give up his son! He especially wasnāt going to give up his son to people who didnāt listen or seem to care in the slightest for any boundaries heād ever tried to set in his life. They didnāt even listen when Christopher told them he could do things himself and just did them for him. Christopher shouldnāt have to grow up in a situation where people told him what he was able to do and didnāt listen to his needs. Christopher was going to face too much of that in his life anyway, he shouldnāt get it from his own family.
Ā
It was with so much relief that Eddie finally dropped his parents off at LAX at the end of the week and went back to his thankfully empty home once more. Christopher was back at school for the first time that morning, and Eddie went to the garage to move the last of his blood back to the kitchen. He opened the cooler, and his face fell at the melted ice packs. Heād replaced them only the day before, but it was hotter today than it had been. He didnāt notice heat or cold like he used to before the vampirism, and it only just occurred to him that it was exceptionally warm that day.
Ā
With a sinking feeling, Eddie opened the airtight opaque bottles he kept the blood in and sniffed it. He grimaced violently at the smell. It was badā¦it was so bad!
Ā
There wasnāt anything to do but toss it out. He dumped the spoiled blood down the drain in the kitchen, running a lot of water behind it to wash it and the smell out that was making him gag. Heād have to buy more. It was going to be a major hit to his budget, especially now that he had to buy more than his usual supply without Shannon anyway. He was almost done with his probationary year though, and he would be making much more money as a full firefighter. He could do to it. Even if he went just a little into credit card debt now, it would only be until he got his next paycheck. Yes, he could make this work. He just needed to make another trip to the blood bank.
Ā
He decided he would make the trip right after his next shift. He was actually really happy to finally get back to work, even if things were still tense with Bobby being under investigation for not disclosing his issues back in Minnesota. Chimney was still in charge of the station and there were still the bombings happenings, and Eddie didnāt like being sidelined from everyone, Buck especially, when all this was going on. He wanted to be with hisā¦well, his family.
Ā
When had he started seeing the 118 as his family? He wasnāt sure. Heād never set out to see anyone he worked with as more important than only coworkers, but Buck had just jumped right into his life with him and Chris. Bobby had sent over food after Shannonās death. Hen and Karen babysat Christopher when heād needed to meet with the funeral home. Even Chimney had come by one morning and bullied him out for a game of basketball to take his mind off things in the middle of his parentsā visit. They were a family, and he wasnāt sure what to do with that.
Ā
Eddie breathed in the first breath of rightness heād felt since Shannonās death when he was finally standing once more in the apparatus bay and in his uniform for a shift. He had one moment of settling in, then the alarms were going off for some new emergency. With a bright grin, Buck grabbed him into a quick hug and welcome back before they parted since Buck was assigned to the ladder truck that shift and Eddie the fire engine.
Ā
Eddie was never going to allow him and Buck to be assigned separately ever again.
Ā
Ā
Harry really wished he were dead. Like really and truly wished he was just dead right now. The pain was so bad that it was unbearable. Heād been under the torture curse many times by this point, and he couldnāt rank the pain against each other. He and the cruciatus were old friends, so while you could never get used to the pain, it was at least expected. It was familiar. This pain, this was something heād never experienced before. It may or may not be worse than the cruciatus, but heād take the torture curse any day over a ladder truck lying on his leg. At least he knew what to expect there.
Ā
Unfortunately, this desire apparently didnāt count as being ready to meet Death as an old friend because Harry was still there and still in agony. The kid who did this was monologuing about Bobby getting his dad arrested or something, and he thought someone might be trying to talk the kid down. Maybe Bobby? Why was Bobby there?
Ā
It really didnāt matter what all was happening because Harry gave himself fifteen minutes. He would stay here for fifteen minutes in agony. At the end of that, heād summon the Elder Wand, stun the kid, levitate the bloody ladder truck off of himself, then get arrested by MACUSA who would have to obliviate everyone, maybe even do some complex magical ritual to erase the evidence if there were news cameras around filming. He would, of course, be sent back to Kingsley who would send him immediately to Azkaban, do not pass Go do not collect $200. Then Harry could get busy trying to figure out the animagus transformation which he would hope he could get down sometime within the next century and escape from that hellhole.
Ā
It was a really bad plan, but it was what was keeping him going right at that very moment. Making the plan was at least keeping him from giving up completely. So, he kept telling himself that he just had to endure this for fifteen minutes. He really didnāt have a way to gauge fifteen minutes though, so whatever, he just kept telling himself that to keep from going insane. Maybe it was fifteen minutes, maybe it was shorter, maybe it was longer, it didn't really matter...
Ā
Then Eddie was there. When did Eddie get there? He wasnāt injured was he?
Ā
āYouāre going to be fine, Buck,ā Eddie said in a wet gasp. Was Eddie crying? Why was Eddie crying? Eddie shouldn't cry.
Ā
āYou canāt leave me. You have to stay here for me and Chris,ā Eddie said next, and Harry finally got it. Eddie was asking him to stay.
Ā
He couldnāt leave just yet, not from death or getting arrested. He had to stay. Eddie had just lost his wife; he couldnāt make his friend go through another loss so soon. Plus, Eddie didnāt know how to make the crumpets Chris liked for breakfast that Harry kept their kitchen stocked with. In fact, Eddie called them the weird biscuit things, so no Harry couldnāt leave them yet.
Ā
Then he was being dragged out from under the truck, and yeah, that was worse. The truck on top of his leg had been much better. Harry screamed, and Merlin he didnāt think heād screamed at anything, out of pain anyway, since he was fourteen and first held under the torture curse. He may have blacked out for a second, and he really wished it was longer.
Ā
He was suddenly in the ambulance now though and hopefully on the way to hospital. Eddie was still there, telling him to stay with him and holding his hand. Damn, he loved Eddie so much. He really wished Eddie wasnāt straight and maybe thought damaged fugitives were hot. This was probably still not the time for those thoughts. Eddie deserved someone less damaged than him anyway. Someone softer...less paranoid...maybe with tasty blood.
Ā
Harry looked around the ambulance as the thought struck him. There was so much bloodā¦this couldnāt be good for Eddie.
Ā
āIām sorry,ā Harry apologized as he saw the blood on his leg, the blood smeared on Eddieās arms from trying to help him, and blood really everywhere. āIām sorryā¦donātā¦itās probably badā¦ā
Ā
Eddie looked so confused. Harry was being very clear though, he was sure of it. Eddie had to hold it together because Harry wasnāt sure if his blood would be healthy for a vampire. He wasnāt really sure if he was even alive, so maybe it would be toxicā¦or maybe it was fine. Maybe heād be a little tasty treat on his way to meeting Death as an old friendā¦that might actually be a good way to goā¦
Ā
āNever mind,ā Harry gasped in pain. āMight be goodā¦ā
Ā
Eddie still seemed confused and was checking his eyes now with a little flashlight, probably for a concussion. Yeah, he definitely had one of those. Whatever, Harry knew heād made perfect sense. Eddie was welcome to just do him in right then. It would be better than all this right now at least.
Ā
The ambulance pulled up to hospital, and Chimney threw open the doors. Eddie and Chimney moved the gurney he was on, and it jostled his leg. Thank Merlin, Morgana, and Mordred too that he finally passed out from that!
Ā
Ā
Josh stared in horror at the TV screen while everyone at dispatch watched the bombing and aftermath unfold on the news. That was Buck trapped under the truckā¦that was his friend. His friend was trapped under the ladder truck while a bomber threatened to blow them all up right there in the middle of the street. Maddie gasped tearfully beside him, drawing his attention to her. Josh put an arm around her. He couldnāt even process his own fear at what was happening to Buck, so he couldnāt imagine what Maddie was going through.
Ā
Theyād had so little time. Josh didnāt regret breaking off the romantic part of his relationship with Buck, and not just because of the magic. That was the main reason initially, but the relief he saw on Buckās face when heād suggested they be friends, was even more telling. They were good friends, they may even be great friends one day, but Josh didnāt think they were destined for a romantic relationship. He did think they had been destined to be in each other's lives for longer than this though.
Ā
Seeing Buck pinned under the truck left Josh with a sharp pain in his heart. He couldnāt lose Buck. They were just figuring out how to make this new thing between them work. Buck had come over and set his wards just a few days before, strengthening them to a paranoid extent, and Josh was now more certain than ever that, one, Buck was a much more powerful wizard than heād even guessed, and two, something really bad had happened to him and maybe Maddie too in their past. He needed more time to be there for his friend. To help him heal from whatever this was. To have a friend with magic who didnāt seem to care in the slightest that Josh wasnāt able to access his own. They could be good for each other.
Ā
āHe could get himself out of this,ā Josh muttered under his breath so that Maddie would be the only one who could hear. He knew it would be really bad, and MACUSA would flip, but he kind of hoped Buck would do it anyway. āJust a couple spells, and he would be free.ā
Ā
āItās on national news,ā Maddie whispered back wetly. āHe wonāt. He could, but he wonāt. He knows whatās at stake.ā
Ā
āOh thank God,ā Josh breathed out when all the bystanders rushed over from the sidelines to help the firefighters lift the truck off Buck once the bomber had finally been subdued. It looked like they were actually able to pull him out now.
Ā
He and Maddie needed to get busy then because the hospital was dangerous for a metamorphmagus like Buck. It was better to plan ahead than have to get obliviators involved later. āIāll have then diverted to Cedars,ā he told Maddie quickly, already moving over to access a computer terminal. āYou need to call ahead and have him transferred to the St. Gertrude ward.ā
Ā
Maddie frowned. Why did she look confused? She needed to call as quickly as possible. "Hurry, Maddie!"
Ā
āThe patron saint of cats and gardeners?ā She seemed way too confused. Did she not know?
Ā
Josh blinked at her in surprise, and not knowing how she didn't know this already. āWho was also a witchā¦you know, herbology and familiarsā¦the magical wardā¦?ā
Ā
āOh,ā Maddie breathed out. How did she not know about the magical hospital ward in LA? Ok, so sheād only been living there about a year, so he supposed that might make sense, but Buck should have known and told her.
Ā
āI assume he can hold his changes while unconscious, or heād never be able to sleep in the firehouse,ā Josh continued in his hushed tones while sending the routing information to the ambulance to go to Cedars Sinai in particular. With their trauma center, he was pretty sure that had already been the destination of the ambulance, but he needed to make sure. āNo matter how powerful he is, I have a feeling anesthesia is beyond his capabilities to hold his changes through, and that will be really bad if he changes back in the middle of surgery; plus, he shouldnāt be in surgery as a wizard. He has better options.ā
Ā
Now that Buck was out from under the truck, he had an excellent likelihood of pulling through this since he could be treated magically. The healers in the St. Gertrude ward were the best in the nation. Buck would be fine, but Maddie needed to make this call.
Ā
āMaddie?ā
Ā
She was shaking her head though with a sad look in her eyes. āNo, he canāt go there,ā she said to Joshās complete shock.
Ā
āWhy?ā
Ā
Maddie was now pulling him into the breakroom though to grab her bag from their lockers. āHe canāt go to the magical ward,ā she said frantically in a whisper almost closer to a hiss. āHeāll have to do the surgery. Iāll fix him up after or something, but they canāt know heās a wizard.ā
Ā
āThe healers wonāt tell the 118,ā Josh frowned, not knowing why this was an issue. āThe St. Gertrude ward looks just like the other wards in the hospital, and all the healers are well trained in dealing with no-maj first responders who may bring in magical people. Iāve routed many people there myself on calls when I was able to figure out ahead of time they had magic or had creature blood.ā
Ā
āYou donāt understand,ā she shook her head and summoned a potion from the bag after pulling her wand out of a holster on her arm. Josh had never seen Maddieās wand or seen her use magic before. Something about it shocked him more than it should.
Ā
She looked at him, all fear and grief gone from her face. There was only determination and resolve there now. āMy brother cannot be identified as a wizard by other magical people,ā she said very clearly. āIām not talking about the 118, though they really shouldn't learn about it either for Statute of Secrecy purposes and all.ā
Ā
āOhā¦ā Josh breathed out. That wasā¦what did that mean? Why was Buck in hiding from the magical world? Had he done something? But noā¦he knew Buck. Buck wouldnāt have ever done anything to need to go into hiding for. Buck was just such a golden retriever of a person. Josh would never believe Buck was in the wrong for whatever this was.
Ā
āI need you to get this potion to him and make him take it,ā she shoved the vial in his hand. āToo many people will be watching me. Iām the sister. Everyone will expect me to be there to offer support and talk to the doctors. Youāre the ex. They wonāt expect you to be around as much as me. You can get in, give him the potion, and get back out without anyone missing you.ā
Ā
That didnāt sound easy in the slightest. How did she expect him to sneak into a secured area of the hospital when he didnāt have any magic or hospital credentials? āWhatās the potion?ā He asked instead because actually doing this was too complicated to process right now. And, yeah, he was probably going to try to do it anyway. Heād probably get detained by hospital security while making the attempt, but he already knew heād at least try. He hadnāt had friends who cared for him like Maddie and Buckā¦well, ever, even though heād only known them for less than a year.
Ā
āI developed it months ago in case anything happened. Heās always ending up in these terrible situations, maybe not exactly like this, but something was going to eventually happen,ā she explained, grabbing both their things and heading towards the door. Well, he supposed their shift was probably over by now anyway since it was ending when they learned the bomb went off.
Ā
āItās keyed to his form nowā¦like Polyjuice but for his current form. If he takes that, itāll hold his changes for about 12 hours without him exerting the magic needed to do it himself.ā
Ā
āOh, ok,ā Josh nodded because, yeah that made sense if Buck was going to try to pass for a no-maj. If what he suspected was true and Buckās form was significantly different than his current one, he absolutely couldnāt turn back when a no-maj doctor was looking at him, or Merlin forbid, in the middle of surgery.
Ā
āI still donāt know how you expect me to do thisā¦or even why itās necessary,ā Josh frowned even as he got into her car with her and she began to drive off, ignoring the speed limit entirely.
Ā
āMy brotherās go-bag will be at the station in his locker,ā she saidā¦and what? Why did Buck have a bag for if he needed to run?!
Ā
āHe has an invisibility cloak, and itāll be in the bag. Weāll stop by there first and grab it,ā she continued, and ohā¦ok, so that was maybe something that could help. He hoped it was a good cloak though because sometimes those were pretty terrible. Anyone with magical knowledge would be able to spot a ripple in magic if the cloak was shitty. Ā
Ā
Josh just looked at the vial in his hand of clear liquid as they got closer and closer to the fire station. He was getting a really bad feeling that heād stumbled into something much bigger than he could even imagine. He thought he might be too far in to get out now though. āMaddieā¦I have to ask, why is Buck in danger? Why canāt he see the healers?ā He asked just as they screeched to a halt outside the bay doors.
Ā
Maddie turned that hardened look on him, and yeah, this woman and seen hardship, and she knew how to handle terrible situations. Josh had never seen someone pull themselves together so quickly and make a plan when anyone else would be spiraling into a puddle of goo. Hell, heād been spiraling into a puddle of goo while watching the news, and it wasnāt his brother.
Ā
Maddie closed her eyes and breathed in deeply before pinning him with what was almost a pleading look. āMy brotherā¦heās innocent. He didnāt do anything wrong,ā she began, and Josh was already nodding. That he believed; he knew Buck. āBut there is someone very powerful who he trustedā¦who we all trusted, and we shouldnāt have.ā
Ā
Josh was there with her now in understanding. He could see that plain as day. Buck would get himself into that situation. āRight, no need to say more,ā he opened the car door. They didnāt have time, so he didnāt need more of an explanation. They could fill him in later once Buck was safe. āLetās get that cloak.ā
Ā
Maddie looked at him gratefully and a little in surprise, but she smiled and led the way into the station. She cast something that had the firefighter who had been left behind at the station completely ignoring them while she hurried to the locker room. āAlohamora,ā she cast and rolled her eyes in exasperation when the locker didnāt open. Josh didnāt know much magic, but even he knew that should have worked.
Ā
āMy paranoid brother apparently decided to ward his locker,ā she explained with a pained sigh. Wowā¦what was very paranoid.
Ā
āKnowing him, Iām keyed into the wards though,ā she placed her hand on the locker and, Josh assumed, pushed some of her magic into it. The lock immediately clicked open.
Ā
āIām starting to get the feeling the wards around my apartment may be too strong,ā Josh mumbled while Maddie pulled the satchel that he recognized as the one Buck carried on him almost all the time out and shoved her arm all the way into it up to her armpit.
Ā
She huffed a humorless laugh and pulled out a silvery cloak. āIf you arenāt able to get your DoorDash, tell him, and he can tweak them,ā she said as if that was just something to expect when Buck warded your place. Maybe he should have asked more questions before agreeing to Buck performing a whole slew of rituals heād never seen or heard of in his lifeā¦not that he as a squib knew many to begin with anyway though.
Ā
āRightā¦hospital,ā he took the cloak and shoved the vial heād still been carrying into his pocket.
Ā
Ā
So, this was an excellent invisibility cloak. Not that Josh had many experiences with them, but damn, he was completely invisible! Maddie had been right about her not being the best to sneak in. Sheād been rushed as soon as they stopped at the hospital by so many members of the 118 that she had almost disappeared into their midst. Josh had already been wearing the cloak, so he tiptoed around Chimney and Hen to enter the hospital unseen. Even the electronic door sensors didnāt pick him up though, so he had to wait for someone else to enter before being able to step past the automatic doors.
Ā
Josh paused at a haunted looking Eddie Diaz who was sitting in the waiting room just staring at his hands like he was on another planet. There was still some blood there on his fingers, like heād wiped it off but hadnāt had time to wash yet. Josh only paused for second in concern for the man because Maddie grabbed onto Diaz as soon as she got there with the others.
Ā
āCome on, Eddie, weāre going to get you washed up. Buck is going to be fine, I promise. Heās going to be fine, just you see,ā she steered him right into the menās restroom, clearly not caring in the slightest that she was going in there with him.
Ā
Josh turned away from them and hurried behind a nurse into the emergency room. He followed the hurried activity of the trauma doctors and nurses to where multiple people were cutting off Buckās pants to get at his leg and hooking him up to all sorts of machines. He stayed out of the way, looking for any opportunity to jump in and dump the potion down his friendās throat without being run into by one of the medical staff. While he waited, he tried to follow the shouts of blood/oxygen stats and medicines listed, but his medical knowledge was limited to what he could handle on 911 calls over the phone, so he was lost almost instantly.
Ā
Josh just stood there and prayed that Buck wasnāt going to turn into a woman right there in the middle of the emergency room while being prepped for surgery. He was still certain he was right in his guess that Buck was trans. It made so much sense. While the magical world was fairly uncaring about sexuality, trans people still faced some bigotry, even though transitioning was actually much easier with potionsā¦or apparently being a metamorphmagus. It also explained Buck and Maddie's estrangement from their parents who were maybe bigots...it didn't explain why Buck couldn't be treated by the healers though...that didn't exactly fit his theory.
Ā
He didnāt know how long they had before Buck's magic stopped holding his form, especially with all the IVs and definitely pain meds they were currently dosing Buck with. It was frankly astounding that Buck could hold his form while asleep or unconscious to begin with, but with morphine in his systemā¦yeah, there wasnāt a metamorphmagus alive who could hold that, Josh guessed from the little he knew about the talent anyway.
Ā
Joshās eyes widened when he caught a slight change from where he was studiously looking for anything to happen. It was Buckās birthmark over his eye surprisingly. It moved slightly!
Ā
Everyone was so very focused on his leg, that Josh was certain he was the only one who saw, but it was changing even more right there before his eyes. The red splotch connected and moved up his forehead. Why would Buck move his birthmark? That seemed an odd use of his powers.
Ā
The mark started shrinking and then expanding though. The birthmark splintered into branches and stretched out. The red also lightened some into what looked more like a scar than a birthmark. A very, very distinctive scarā¦a scar that every magical person knewā¦a scar that even a squib like himself knew on sight!
Ā
Josh hurried over, less concerned with being bumped into now because someone would definitely notice the moving birthmark if they looked up for even a second. He opened Buckās mouth and dumped in the potion as fast as he could. He massaged Buckās throat so that it would go down and almost passed out in relief when it finally did. He hurried back to the corner of the room and anxiously waited, staring at the lighting scar.
Ā
Finally! Finally, the scar clumped back together and moved back into red splotches, splitting and framing his eyebrow once again. The nurses and doctors never saw, thank Houdini and Merlin and even Circe! The medical staff grabbed onto the gurney and hurried Buck out to surgery though, not a second too soon.
Ā
Josh just stood there where he'd been left, invisible in the corner of the room in the hospital breathing out to calm his nerves. What the hell situation had he landed himself in?! His panic skyrocketed instead of calming down. Harry freaking Potter was right there in front of him, being wheeled off to surgery!! That was Harry Potter!! Savior of the Magical World! Boy-Who-Lived! Man-Who-Conquered! And inexplicably the man wanted for being the next rising dark lordā¦!
Ā
Josh ran an invisible hand over his face and couldn't hold back the frankly unhinged chuckle that left his mouth. Evan āBuckā Buckley was absolutely not a dark lord in the making! He may not have really known his friend at all, but he did know that! Buck ran into burning buildings using no magic at all to save no-maj people! Freaking Harry Potter was trapped under a ladder truck and didnāt use any magic at all to save this life! What the fucking hell was the magical world thinking labeling that man as a dark lord?!!
Ā
Houdiniās rabbit and the hat it came in!! Josh freaking Russo had dated Harry Potter! Most eligible bachelor in the entire magical world for so many years running! He needed a damn drink!
Ā
And he needed an explanation because Harry freaking Potter did not have a sister!
Ā
Ā
āHe wasnāt making any sense in anything he said. He just kept apologizing,ā Eddie knew he was hysterical, and he couldnāt stop it. He was breathing fast and shallowly while Maddie held his hands under the water, massaging soap under his nails. āThen he just laughed and made even less sense talking about how it might be fine and go aheadā¦I donāt know what he was thinking or trying to tell me.ā
Ā
āEddie, he clearly had a concussion and was in a lot of pain,ā Maddie said soothingly, and why was she washing his hands again? Eddie couldnāt remember.
Ā
It was a good thing Maddie was washing his hands though, Eddie knew that very well because he was half a second from licking his fingers even as he sat in the waiting room with everyone watching. He hated himself; he really did. Buckās blood thoughā¦it smelledā¦Dios, but heād never smelled anything as good. And there had been so much of it in the ambulance.
Ā
Eddie had actually easily been able to hold himself together while Buck was in distress. Buck was all that mattered. They had to get him to the hospital. Buck had to hold on and not die on him. He couldnāt lose Buck like heād lost Shannon. But then Buck had been wheeled off by the doctors, and the smell finally sank in. And Draculaās first wife! It was glorious!
Ā
When it all hit him at once, it was just too much. There was the blood, and the hunger, and the fear, and grief, and the worryā¦and Eddie just thought he was going insane. He had sat down on the first seat he found and just lost track of himself and time and everything around him. There was too much, and he was overwhelmed. Then there was Maddie.
Ā
Maddie had taken his arm and tugged him away. She told him it was all going to be fine. She washed off the blood, and somehow seemed to have gotten most of the blood off his clothes somehow tooā¦and he really didnāt remember how that had happened. Maybe heād never had blood on his clothes? No, heād definitely had blood on his clothes. Was this a different shirt maybeā¦he didnāt even know anymore.
Ā
Finally, partially coming back to himself, Eddie actually took in what was happening for maybe the first time. āMaddieā¦Iām so sorry!ā He breathed out realizing this was Buckās sister! She must be so scared.
Ā
āI know,ā she turned off the water and grabbed some paper towels. āBuck is strong though. You know my brother. This isnāt going to stop him. Heāll pull through this, and heāll be fine. That I am certain of.ā
Ā
āI wish I was,ā Eddie just watched her wipe the water off his hands now, still not being able to bring himself to do anything. āHis heart was strugglingā¦ā
Ā
That wasnāt something a person should know without supernatural hearing and an obsession with blood though, was it? Did she notice? He looked up at Maddie who just nodded at him as if that comment weren't exceptionally strange.
Ā
āHis heart is exceptionally strong though,ā she laughed with no actual humor behind it. āAn old principal of ours said it was his superpower really. The fact that he could love when anyone else would turn to hate; that his heart was just so big.ā
Ā
Eddie didnāt exactly see how this connected, but at least she wasnāt calling him on him being able to hear Buckās heartbeat. He breathed in and finally felt more centered. Then he looked around.
Ā
āUhā¦Maddie? You do know weāre in the menās restroom, right?ā He asked with a small tug of a sad smile at the woman.
Ā
Maddie scoffed and rolled her eyes, tossing the towels in the trash. āEddie, if anyone cares about me being in here, then they can bring it on. With the mood I'm in, Iāll be more than happy to show them why my high school bully is still afraid of me to this very day.ā
Ā
Eddie let out a little chuckle and allowed her to lead him back out of the restroom and back to the waiting room with everyone else. He really hoped she was right. Buck had to be ok. He had to live. He had to pull through thisā¦becauseā¦because, losing Buck might be worse than losing Shannonā¦
Notes:
Up Next: An unexpected complication...
Chapter 10: Complications
Notes:
(See the end of the chapter for notes.)
Chapter Text
Harry couldnāt feel much from his body at all when he slowly came to. He did feel a large hand holding his though, it was strong with callouses from years of hard work. āRon?ā Harry painfully opened one eye and then the other.
Ā
āBobby,ā the man responded, and Harry internally panicked.
Ā
He wasnāt using his metamorphmagus abilities at the moment, he could tell. Harry felt like he was thinking under water, so definitely strong pain killers. Harry glanced at the arm Bobby wasnāt holding and just almost let out an audible sigh of relief at seeing a tattoo there. The tattoo was what heād created to move the burn scars from Gringottsās inhumane security measures into. So, Hermione must have gotten him the holding potion before his changes broke under anesthesia. He only hoped it lasted until he could think clearly enough to hold the changes himself.
Ā
Buck looked over and couldnāt help a painful smile at the man who was looking at him with so much fondness it made his heart hurt. He really was so very thankful to have let Bobby into his life and to finally stop trying to push the man away. āHey,ā he breathed out and glanced down at where his entire leg was encased in a white cast and suspended over the bed. āHow bad is it?ā
Ā
Bobbyās face fell at the question. It must be really bad. Buck was concerned, yes, but it looked like heād only been seen by muggle doctors. Hermione was around somewhere, and heād prefer to hear her prognosis over anything a muggle doctor could do for him.
Ā
āYouāll walk again,ā Bobby said firmly as if trying to convince himself of that statement more than Buck.
Ā
Ok⦠he frowned. That wasnāt exactly what he asked. āWhat about work? Will I be a firefighter again?ā
Ā
Bobbyās lips thinned, and he squeezed Buckās hand in both of his now. āYou have a long road ahead of you, kid. Thatās something the doctors canāt answer right now. You just need to focus on healing now anyway. And I'll be here with you every step of the way.ā
Ā
Buck glanced up at the bag of something hanging and connected to a needle in his arm. It must be something for pain because his brain wasnāt really processing much. āMaddie?ā he asked, because he could really use his sister right now to explain what all was going on through the fuzziness of his thoughts.
Ā
Bobby smiled and shifted around to lean more against Buckās bed, never letting go of his hand. āI sent her to take a break and get some coffee. Sheāll be back soon,ā he assured him.
Ā
Buck nodded and blinked slowly, trying to figure out how he felt about any of this. āThey get the guy?ā
Ā
āYesā¦Iām so sorry, Buck,ā Bobby breathed out. āThat bomb was meant for me. You never should have been caught in this. You weren't even working at the 118 when the kid's father was arrested for arson.ā
Ā
āHey,ā Buck frowned and squeezed Bobbyās hand. āThatās not how this worksā¦you canāt take the blame for what other people do and their decisions. We learned that in AA, didnāt we?ā
Ā
Bobby chuckled and ran his free hand over his face. He looked tired, like maybe he hadn't gotten sleep in a while. āI think youāve been to more AA meetings than a lot of alcoholics have.ā
Ā
Buck shrugged and closed his eyes because his eyelids were feeling exceptionally heavy right now. āWell, therapy didnāt exactly work out for me, so I appreciated the message and did surprisingly get some things out of it. Good advice and perspective at least.ā
Ā
Bobby had gotten very quiet, and Buck felt himself drifting. If Bobbyās hold on his hand hadnāt gotten almost painfully tight for a second, heād think that Bobby might have left. It was nice though. Bobby wasnāt a hand holding person, and Buck was very touchy-feely after a lifetime of being touch-starved, so he appreciated it.
Ā
Bobby cleared his throat suddenly, so Buck cracked open his eyes again to keep himself from falling back asleep. āSoā¦Buck, where did you get this?ā Bobby ran a finger down the long gash in his arm where Peter Pettigrew had collected his blood to raise Voldemort to life. It had been part of a ritual with a ritual blade, so the cut was essentially a curse-scar, and Buck hadnāt been able to move it or change it into anything else since most of his magic went into doing what little he could to the more noticeable curse scar on his forehead.
Ā
He was a little too drugged to have to field these questions, but he had assumed theyād come up eventually. So far, Abby had been the only one who was consistently that close to him who asked the questions. āI was a bit of a daredevil as a kid,ā he said, the same thing heād told Abby when she asked. āI got hurt a lot falling from heights and doing stunts.ā
Ā
The funny thing was that it was actually true. Those heights he fell from were actually from a broom, and his daredevil tendencies were mainly in quidditch and evading people who wanted him dead though. Even drugged he knew he shouldnāt be that specific.
Ā
Bobby raised an eyebrow though in disbelief, and Buck wondered what heād missed. āThen what about this one,ā Bobby turned Buckās hand he was holding over and traced the writing on the back of it.
Ā
That one Buck couldnāt actually explain. The āI must not tell liesā scar was too distinctive and too specific for any story he could make up about it. The truthā¦well, he had a feeling Bobby would run straight to Athena and have her open an investigation if he said that a teacher had tortured him at school when he was a kid.
Ā
Well, the same thing he told Abby then. āI donāt want to talk about it,ā he said firmly before closing his eyes again. He never knew what Abby had guessed had happened, and he didnāt need to know what Bobby was thinking either. He just needed his captain to let it go.
Ā
There was a long moment of silence while Bobby came up with whatever explanation he would going to make up in his own mind. āWhere did you say you were from again?ā Bobby asked, and damn, that was not the direction Buck had wanted him to go in his thoughts.
Ā
Suddenly, he knew that he needed to protect the Buckley parents. Nothing could blow back on them; they didnāt deserve any of this. Buckās thoughts scrambled trying to come up with some lie, anything to keep Bobby from thinking he needed to get Athena to look into the original Evan Buckley's parents.
Ā
āHey, little bro,ā Maddie said from the doorway, holding two cups of coffee. āItās good to see you awake; you had us all worried.
Ā
Buck smiled and let go of his distress. Maddie would handle this. Sheād figure it out for him; she was good that way. āI was just taking a little nap, nothing to worry about,ā he joked while his āsisterā handed one of the cups of coffee to Bobby.
Ā
āOur parents live in Australia now, and they had nothing to do with what happened to my brother,ā she told Bobby firmly. Bobbyās eyes widened at the new information theyād never mentioned before. Frankly, Buck was surprised Maddie would offer her own, real parents as a cover for Buck. Not that they would ever come to visit, but still...something about it warmed his heart.
Ā
Good, Buck closed his eyes. He could really use another nap. Hermione was awesome. Maybe the Buckley parents should randomly win a luxury cruise. Yeah, heād do that as soon as he was out of hospital.
Ā
āIām going to stay with him now if you want to go home and shower and get some sleep,ā Maddie told Bobby who nodded and sipped his coffee. Buck frowned because now it sounded like Bobby hadnāt left since heād been admitted.
Ā
āIāll be back in a few hours. Be good for the nurses until then,ā Bobby stood and patted Buckās shoulder before leaving the two of them alone.
Ā
Maddie huffed out a sigh and sat down in the chair beside him. āYou have to stop doing this to me,ā she breathed out. āI know youāre immortal, but Iām not, and youāre going to cause me a heart attack one of these days.ā
Ā
Harry reached out and took her hand with the one Bobby had only recently abandoned. āHey, Death wasnāt ready to be best mates with me just yet. Iām kind of high-maintenance as a friend,ā he joked, getting a little laugh. āNice move with getting me the holding potion. How were you able to manage that?ā
Ā
Hermione gave him an apologetic look, and he was suddenly very worried about what had happened. āSoā¦I gave your invisibility cloak to Josh and had him sneak in and dose you with it,ā she admitted with a wince.
Ā
Harry just blinked a few times, trying to process all that. Why would Josh have done that for him?Ā
Ā
āReally? Josh did that for me? Thatās⦠wowā¦ā
Ā
āHeās a good guy,ā Hermione nodded, and Harry knew that very well already. āI havenāt had the chance to talk to him about it after, but he stayed for a while in the waiting room with the rest of us and gave me back your cloak.ā
Ā
Harry hummed and tried to get more comfortable. āHow long until the potion wears off?ā
Ā
āYou have a few more hours,ā Hermione frowned at the bag of what was most likely pain killers. āI suppose you probably canāt hold the changes with that in your system, can you?ā
Ā
He shook his head, and the world spun just a little. āEr, noā¦can you cut back how much Iām getting?ā
Ā
Hermione fiddled with it some and nodded eventually. āYes, I very rarely would need to use an IV with potions, and this doesn't look much different from the ones we used at St. Mungo's. Iām not cutting you off completely, but you should be getting much less in your system now.ā
Ā
āAwesome,ā he said dryly, knowing that meant he was about to be in a hell of a lot more pain. āRecovery from this is going to be a bitch.ā
Ā
Hermione scoffed. āPlease, youāll be out of here in a few days, and Iām going to immediately banish the bones in your entire leg and regrow them. I already sent off an owl order for a large batch of Skele-Gro when I went to get coffee earlier.ā
Ā
Harry woke up a lot more at that comment. āWhat? But everyone will notice I recover too quickly. They'll ask questions.ā
Ā
āThen fake a limp,ā she gave him her patented Hermione glare that said he was being ridiculous. āIām not letting you do this the hard way when I can fix your leg easily as your personal healer. If you live for a few hundred more years, Iām not going to make you do that with lasting damage to one of your legs. Deal with it. Iāll have to leave the soft-tissue damage already since thatāll be too noticeable to get rid of, so youāll have some more scars for your collection, but the bones, those we are fixing with magic as soon as I get you home.ā
Ā
Harry just smiled at her fondly. āSo, youāre my personal healer now? I thought your specialty was magical creatures.ā
Ā
Hermione rolled her eyes. āWellā¦you kind of countā¦whatever you are now.ā
Ā
āRightā¦ā Harry didnāt know what to think about that. He was too tired and drugged to think about it now anyway. Speaking of magical creaturesā¦
Ā
āIs Eddie ok?ā
Ā
Hermione nodded. āHe had to go take care of Chris, but heāll be back by to see you later. He was understandably out of it and worried when I first got here, but I got the blood washed off of him and got him cleaned up. He pulled himself together after that pretty quickly.ā
Ā
Harry felt really bad about that. He hadnāt meant to bleed all over his vampire best friend. At least he didnāt make Eddie give himself away though. Now, Harry really just needed to close his eyes for a while until the pain meds wore off. āI think Iām going to go back to sleep.ā
Ā
āYou should,ā she squeezed his hand. āI let Ron know youāre ok, and heāll fill in Teddy at school. You have nothing to worry about besides getting well enough to get out of here so I can heal you. Get some rest now.ā
Ā
āSounds good,ā he mumbled, already feeling sleep take him.
Ā
Ā
Josh nervously stood outside of Buckās apartment wondering what the hell he was doing. Part of him wanted to run as fast and as far from all this mess as he absolutely could, but the other part of him, the stronger part, had him raising his fist and knocking. That part of him knew Buckā¦knew Harry, and needed to be there for his friend.
Ā
āHey,ā Maddie opened the door and smiled tiredly at him. āMy brother is the absolute worst patient. I hope you know what youāre getting yourself into.ā
Ā
Josh walked in and took in the loft apartment heād known so well only days before but now saw in a different light. For some reason, knowing this apartment was Harry Potterās was different than knowing it was Evan Buckleyās. Maddie had asked him to stay with Buck while she had a shift at dispatch since he was off that day. He was standing there just lost about how he should handle the situation. Maybe he should have planned his more before coming over. What did he even say to these peopleā¦the heroes of the magical world.
Ā
āJosh!ā Buck grinned from the couch and pinned him with pain-filled eyes. āHey! Thanks for potioning me in the hospital!ā
Ā
Josh breathed out at where Buck no longer had the cast on his leg which looked much too flat to have bones still in it. āSkele-Gro?ā He asked Maddie, thankful Buck wasn't going to have to heal the no-maj way.
Ā
āYeah, there are a lot of bones in the leg and foot,ā she breathed out. āBuck has a terrible couple days and a several more doses of Skele-Gro to go. I just need you to stay with him and make sure he doesnāt try to hop around the apartment while Iām at work.ā
Ā
āHey! What if I have to pee?ā Buck pouted. Wow, did Harry freaking Potter just pout?!
Ā
āHave Josh help you hop there. Don't try to do it on your own,ā Maddie rolled her eyes and kissed him on the top of the head. Josh never would have guessed they weren't actually siblings if he hadn't figured out who Buck really was. Well, he supposed they actually were siblings, if not biologically. It hadn't taken long to figure out who Maddie really was since she looked exactly the same, and yeah, he could see why and how they were passing as siblings clearly now.
Ā
āYou know you can drop your changes since it's just us here,ā Josh breathed out, deciding to hit this head on instead of pretending like he didn't know. āIt has to be easier with what youāre going through to not have to maintain the magic.ā
Ā
Buck and Maddie both frowned at him. āUhā¦ā Buckās eyes cut between them questioningly.
Ā
āWere you ever going to tell me?ā Josh crossed his arms and looked at them accusingly. They looked at each other again, clearly trying to figure out what exactly he knew. Well, that answered his question. They werenāt going to give anything away that he hadnāt already figured out. Ā
Ā
He huffed in exasperation and went to Buckās fridge to grab himself a beer; he deserved it. āI think I had a right to know that I was mixed up with Hermione Granger and Sir Harry Potter,ā he finally said after opening the bottle and taking a sip. "That's not a small thing when one of you is literally a fugitive."
Ā
They both winced, and yeah, they should feel bad. āIām pretty sure my knighthood has been stripped,ā Harry said finally, his accent immediately slipping back to British. And, ok, that was hot.
Ā
āActually, it hasnāt been,ā Josh replied and went to sit in the armchair beside the couch. āWhen I saw your birthmark change into the famous scar, I immediately went to my auntās house and dug through her old issues of the papers. She has a bit of a problem with hoarding magical newspapers. Anyway, you were knighted by the no-maj queen, and it seems you made an impression. She refused to strip your knighthood until you are apprehended and questioned.ā
Ā
āHarry isnāt a dark lord,ā Hermione began with a frantic look in her eyes.
Ā
āDuh,ā he rolled his eyes and decided to let them off the hook. He could tell they were getting very anxious about everything he knew and what he planned to do with that information. āBuck runs into burning buildings to save no-maj people on the daily and doesnāt use magic to do itā¦of course he isnāt a dark lord. Iām not an idiot unlike all your friends in the magical world. Really, anyone who's met Buck couldn't possibly believe he'd be a dark lord.ā
Ā
āThose people arenāt our friends,ā Hermione frowned with a thunderous look on her face. āIf they believe Kingsleyās lies, then theyāre no friends of ours.ā
Ā
āWell, your ex is an asshole,ā Josh concluded. āNot me, Iām your most awesome ex.ā
Ā
Harry snorted a laugh. āMate, you are so right about that; you have absolutely no idea. Wellā¦Ginny is fine, but still, youāre quickly heading to the top of the list.ā
Ā
Josh watched while Buck slowly began to change into Harry Potter. He was more than a little sad to see the tattoos disappear since they'd been pretty sexy, and he was very concerned when they all became scars littering his friendās skin. Blue eyes turned green and blond hair grew to a shocking length and turned almost jet black. Overall, Buck and Harry did look the same on a base level, but all the little surface level changes made him almost unrecognizable.
Ā
āHey,ā Harry brushed long black hair off his shoulder. āYou wouldnāt happen to be good at cutting hair, would you? Hermione and I are both bollocks at it.ā
Ā
āHell no!ā Josh shook his head firmly. No one wanted him to attempt a haircut. Harry would probably end up bald. Alsoā¦while he normally wasnāt one who went for long hair, it was hot on Harry. āPlus, it suits you.ā
Ā
āI have to go to workā¦are you going to be ok staying here now?ā Hermione asked him with a concerned look. āWe didnāt want to lie to you, but this is a tricky situationā¦ā
Ā
āI know,ā Josh nodded. āI was very freaked out for a while, but I thought it through. Especially after going through the papers and seeing what all had been printed about you, well, I understand now. Fear is a powerful thing, isnāt it? Why did Minister Shacklebolt turn on you like that anyway?ā
Ā
Harry looked pained, and Hermione looked murderous. āI left,ā Harry finally said, the physical pain of his leg and the emotional pain on his face making Josh just want to hug him.
Ā
āKingsley was an abusive bastard who thought he owned Harry,ā Hermione filled in, looking like sheād curse the man next she saw him. āHeāll do anything to get that control back.ā
Ā
Well, damn. Josh hadnāt seen that coming. āCan I hug you?ā He asked Harry instead of all the platitudes he desperately wanted to throw out there.
Ā
Harry sniffed back a sob at the question. āPlease.ā
Ā
āIām so sorry,ā Josh stood and carefully wrapped his arms around his friend.
Ā
āIām sorry you got pulled into this,ā Harry held onto him tightly and said.
Ā
Eventually, they let go of each other, and Josh smiled at both of the war heroes he was still surprised were in his life. āWell, itās a good thing Iām a squib then,ā he concluded. āNo one in the magical world thinks I matter in the slightest. Iām invisible. Who is going to think I of all people would know where the most wanted fugitive in the magical world happens to be hiding?ā
Ā
Hermione pulled him into a fierce hug next, and Merlin, Josh was starting to think this insanity was the best thing that had happened to him in a long time. āYou matter,ā she assured him. āYou matter to both of us so much.ā
Ā
āGo to work,ā he eventually gave her a little shove towards the door. āIām make sure your pseudo-brother doesnāt injure himself further and gets his next dose of Skele-Gro.ā
Ā
āThe 118 is on shift,ā Hermione said in a change of subject, now back to sounding American instead of British. āDonāt let any of them in, especially Eddie, if they stop by for any reason though. Tell them Buck is sleeping or something.ā
Ā
āWhy especially Eddie?ā Josh frowned while Maddie grabbed her purse and a tumbler of coffee distractedly.
Ā
āHeāll smell the potion, but Iām pretty sure any of them will recognize Buckās leg is currently boneless,ā she said, leaving the apartment and closing the door behind her.
Ā
Josh spun and pinned Harry with a questioning look. āOk, what am I missing? Why would Eddie Diaz be able to smell Skele-Gro? That seems...odd.ā
Ā
āErā¦ā Harryās eyes were wide while he was clearly scrambling to come up with an explanation. āCan you just let that comment go as not my secret to tell?ā
Ā
Josh crossed his arms because, hell no, he was only barely holding it together enough to be ok with harboring a fugitive. āAfter all this?ā He motioned up and down Harryās body. āI think Iām on the need-to-know list now.ā
Ā
Harry wrinkled his nose but finally gave in. āSoā¦Eddie doesnāt know that I knowā¦but heās a muggle vampire.ā
Ā
Josh let out a hysterical laugh and plopped back into the armchair. āOf course he is! Is Hen a werewolf now too?!ā
Ā
āNoā¦but my godson is half-werewolf,ā Harry offered, and Joshās laugh got even a little more hysterical. What even was his very non-magical life anymore?!
Ā
Ā
āYou sure youāre up for this?ā Eddie asked with more than a little concern over what he was asking his best friend to do. āI can call around to Chrisās friendsā parents to see if one of them can keep him.ā
Ā
Summer break had just started, and Chris was just recently out of school. Carla would usually keep him when Eddie had a shift, but she had a doctorās appointment that day, Pepa had work, and Abuela was in Texas visiting family. Buck had volunteered when Eddie was bemoaning the issue, but Buck hadnāt been out of the hospital long at all, at least in Eddie's opinion.
Ā
āIām fine Eddie,ā Buck assured him from where he was limping stiffly from Eddieās couch towards the kitchen. āMy cast is finally off, I have absolutely nothing to do today, and I miss spending time with my best buddy.ā
Ā
āCome on, Dad!ā Chris protested. āIāll take good care of Buck.ā
Ā
āSee, weāll play video games, order pizza, and have a guysā day. Nothing strenuous, I promise,ā Buck grinned and crossed his heart from where he was leaning against the doorway to the kitchen now.
Ā
Eddie sighed, but he needed this extra shift heād picked up. He had finally graduated from his probational period and was a full firefighter. Now though, he was in debt between paying for Shannonās funeral, Chrisās physical therapy, the private school tuition, and the extra blood he was having to buy. His paycheck was a lot more comfortable, but the money still seemed to flow through his fingers like water.
Ā
He studied Buck one more time. He was very concerned that Buck was pushing himself too much to recover and get back to work. The cast had seemed to come off faster than it should, and Buck seemed way too mobile for having had a ladder truck on his leg only a couple months before. Eddie wasnāt a doctor though. His medical training didnāt extend to anything after emergency response and battlefield medicine.
Ā
āBuck can do my PT exercises with me,ā Chris grinned next and used his crutches to stand.
Ā
āYeah, little man. You can show me how itās done. See, my superman will take care of me, and Iāll make sure he eats and gets to bed at a reasonable time,ā Buck grinned fondly at Eddie's son. Eddie knew Chris would be safe with Buck, he just wasn't sure Buck was up to a hyper seven-year-old in his condition.
Ā
āHey!ā Chris protested the comment about his bedtime.
Ā
āOk, maybe just a little after your bedtime, but not much,ā Buck smirked at Eddie unapologetically.
Ā
āFine,ā Eddie gave in because he really did need the help. āYou two play a lot of video games though and no rough housing.ā
Ā
āYeah!ā Chris pumped a fist in the air.
Ā
āWe got this Eds, you just have a good shift. Be safe,ā Buck said, looking a little sad, like he would rather be going with Eddie to work. Eddie understood that completely, but Buck needed to heal. Buck was too breakable. Even with Eddieās advanced healing, a ladder truck on his leg still would have been devastating. Buck was just a normal person though, and it was a miracle he was doing as well as he was.
Ā
āLove you mijo, be good,ā he kissed his sonās head and included Buck in the ābe goodā admonishment.
Ā
Ā
Buck stopped limping almost completely as soon as the door closed behind Eddie. He was very certain Christopher wouldnāt notice like Eddie would. His leg was still a little sore from all the soft tissue damage, but the broken bones and metal hardware were gone, and all new healthy bones were finally in its place. He and Maddie hadnāt quite figured out how to fake all the paperwork for the department since heād had to drop his muggle doctor to cover up how quickly and completely heād healed. Ron would probably help though. He was getting surprisingly and concerningly good at forging muggle paperwork.
Ā
Regardless, Buck was going to have to be off work for several more weeks yet or no one would believe he was well. Plus, he would have to recertify as a firefighter since everyone had seen what had happened on the news and the brass knew what he'd been through. Thankfully, his face hadn't been very visible on the news coverage what with a ladder truck on top of him, so his identity wasn't in danger just yet from the magical world. Anyway, it was still going to be a process.
Ā
As a silver lining, at least he had time to take care of Chris when Eddie needed him now though. Merlin, but he missed Teddy. Theyād gotten to talk on the phone only a few days before when Teddy had gotten off the Hogwarts Express for break, but that just meant that he missed his son even more. It would be a while before Teddy could visit him in LA since Andromeda wanted to spend time with him, so Buck would just have to spoil Chris until then. Spending time with Chris was absolutely never a hardship.
Ā
āOk, little man, I think we have time for one round of Street Fighter before I make us something for lunch, sound good?ā He asked Chris, knowing he was going to get his ass handed to him by a seven-year-old at any video game they played.
Ā
āYouāre on!ā Chris grinned as he went over to the video game console to set up the game for them.
Ā
āIām going to grab us something to drink while you get it going. You want water or juice?ā
Ā
āApple juice!ā Chris called after him.
Ā
āYou got it!ā
Ā
Ā
Buck rummaged through Eddieās refrigerator looking for something healthy to cook for lunch since they had already decided on pizza for dinner. Eddie really was bad at stocking his fridge and ordered way too much take-away. Buck had been ārecoveringā so he hadnāt stealthily been sneaking groceries into the house recently. If Eddie actually ate food when people werenāt looking, he would have realized that Buck always bought much more than he told him he did when he offered to pick up things for Chris.
Ā
āHmmā¦sandwiches it is, I guess,ā he eventually decided and began to take out what they would need.
Ā
āCan I have a cookie while you make them?ā Chris asked with an adorable attempt at puppy dog eyes. While Chris was very good at them, but was nowhere in the same universe as Teddy who could change his eye color to match Harryās. So, good try, but Buck wasn't caving.
Ā
āNot until after lunch, buddy,ā Buck said, laying out the slices of whole wheat bread that Chris didnāt like but Eddie and Buck both insisted on to counterbalance all the pizza and burgers they did give in on quite often.
Ā
āBut Iām hungry,ā Chris whined.
Ā
Buck chuckled and put some mayo on the bread. āYou can make it five minutes while I finish this. I doubt your stomach is rubbing a blister on your backbone in that amount of time.ā
Ā
āIt might,ā Chris replied, but there was definitely amusement in his tone. āCome on, Buck. One cookie wonāt spoil my lunch.ā
Ā
āAfter,ā he stressed and slapped some turkey on the bread. A scraping noise sounded over his head, and Buckās neck snapped up to look. His eyes widened in surprise at the sight of the box of cookies sliding across the top of the refrigerator and right across the kitchen to Chrisās hand. He checked, but no, he hadn't used any magic at all. So where did the magic come from...?
Ā
āWhatā¦?ā Buckās surprised eyes met equally surprised and a little scared eyes which were now looking at the box in his hand.
Ā
āBuckā¦I think I did that,ā Chris breathed out. He looked up at Buck, and yeah, he was now panicking. āHow did I do that?!ā
Ā
āOh, love, itās ok,ā Buckās heart sank, but he held himself together. He put down the knife heād been holding and hurried over to kneel in front of his best friendās son. His leg twinged at the position, but he ignored it because this was much more important.
Ā
āBucky, what did I do?ā Chris gasped, not getting enough air.
Ā
Buck took the box from him and put Chrisās hand on his own chest. āHey, buddy, feel my heartbeat. Breathe with me, ok. Come on, match your breaths to mine,ā he mimed breathing in deeply and letting out the breath.
Ā
What were the odds that a muggle vampire would end up fathering a muggleborn wizard before he'd even been changed into a vampire? Harry had learned to stop asking about the odds in his life though. The odds never seemed to matter around him in the slightest.
Ā
Chris eventually calmed down and stopped panicking. āHey, Chris, your dad and mom always told you that you were special," Buck began.
Ā
Chris snorted wryly. āBecause I have CP.ā
Ā
āWell, yeah, but that isnāt the only thing that makes you special. You're kind and smart and funny and that doesn't have to be all either,ā he smiled. āSometimes things happen that we canāt explain. Maybeā¦maybe magic can be real. What do you think about that?ā
Ā
āYeah? You think so?ā Chrisās eyes lit up at that thought. āYou think I might have magic?" Thankfully, kids were so ready to believe magic existed when adults couldn't be convinced of things they saw right in front of them.
Ā
āYou knowā¦I canāt think of anyone else I think would deserve to be able to use magic more than my best friend, Christopher Diaz,ā he said confidently. And yeah, magic didnāt solve everything, but life could be a whole lot easier for a person with CP who could cast spells. This was a good thingā¦as much as that hurt because it also meant that Harry might have to move on soon, but Chris deserved this even if it meant Harry might not be able to be in his life for much longer.
Ā
Chris immediately held out a hand and scrunched up his face, clearly trying to make the bottle of apple juice come to him. Harry couldnāt help his laugh that maybe sounded a little sadder than he planned. āItās not working,ā Chris huffed petulantly.
Ā
āI wouldnāt worry about it,ā Harry ruffled his hair and took a cookie out of the box with a wink. āJust one.ā
Ā
āThank you, Buck!ā Chrisās grin was wider than a cookie warranted.
Ā
āI bet itās like a muscle that just needs some training,ā he said, trying to make it sound like speculation and not first-hand knowledge. āKeep at it, and Iām sure youāll be able to control it in no time at all. Maybe just don't try around your friends, only at home. You wouldn't want to scare anyone.ā
Ā
āShould I tell dad?ā Chris asked through a mouthful of cookie, and Buck had to physically pinch himself because he desperately wanted to tell the kid to keep it a secret, but he knew he couldnāt. He couldnāt even ask Chris to keep him seeing it a secret, not and keep from betraying Eddieās trust in him completely.
Ā
Instead, Buck nodded with a smile. āYeah, I think you should tell him, but donāt be surprised if he doesnāt believe you instantly. You know us adults, sometimes we can be pretty dumb,ā Chris laughed at Buckās comment.
Ā
Eddie was a vampire, so he was more likely to believe in the supernatural, but he probably didnāt know about magic as new vampire, so that would still be a shock. āYou may end up having to show him before he completely believes,ā he added on because, yeah, he could see Eddie needing a little more convincing.
Ā
Ā
Chris was finally asleep, only thirty minutes after his normal bedtime. Harry stole a beer from Eddieās fridge and sat on the couch with a tired sigh. He pulled out his cellphone and called a number that had jumped to the top of his recent calls over the past few months.
Ā
Harry took a long sip while the phone rang. āHey? Whatās up Buck?ā Josh asked on the other end of the line with a little concern in his voice. āYou donāt normally call this late.ā
Ā
Harry winced, not realizing it had gotten so late since heād started some laundry for Eddie after putting Chris to sleep. āIām sorry, Josh. Are you busy?ā
Ā
āNo, just watching Drag Race and eating that Fortescueās ice cream you got me, which is awesome by the way,ā Josh chuckled. āWhat do you need?ā
Ā
āI just had a question,ā he sighed again. āClearly Iām not Americanā¦ā
Ā
āWhich still blows my mind,ā Josh interrupted with a laugh.
Ā
āAnyway,ā he continued. āI may have just witnessed a muggleborn kidās first accidental magic. Do you know how MACUSA deals with that? Do they wait until the kidās 11, or do they talk with the family before then to explain things?ā
Ā
āWhy the hell would they wait for a kid to turn 11?!!ā Josh sputtered in surprise. āDo they do that in England? Why?!ā
Ā
Harry sighed. āI really donāt know what's standard in England. No one contacted me before I was about to go to school, but my situation was a little different than normal. My aunt should have told me about magic well before then. I donāt think Hermione was contacted before school though either, but I haven't talked with her about it a lot.ā
Ā
āWeirdā¦ā Josh said, clearly judgmentally at the British magical world. āWell, here someone will be sent to explain things to the family shortly after the magic is registered at MACUSA. Itās a big country though, so it probably wonāt be super quick. Theyāll definitely get there before the kid is ready to go to school though. Waitā¦werenāt you babysitting Eddieās kid today?!! What're the odds a vampire's kid would turn out to be a wizard?!ā
Ā
āNever ask the odds around me," he laughed dryly. "And yeah, thatās the problem.ā
Ā
Harry winced as all the implications hit him yet again. āIf Chris tells the people from MACUSA that I saw it, they'll want to send an Obliviator to visit me since I'm not family. Theyāll find out Iām not a muggle, because like hell I'm going to be obliviated!ā
Ā
Josh let out a noisy rush of air on the other side of the phone. āWhat are you going to do?ā
Ā
āI donāt knowā¦I donāt think thereās anything I can do,ā Harry shrugged and took another gulp of the beer. āI wonāt ask Chris to lie for me, and telling Eddie is asking him to lie to MACUSA now too. I can't have either of them getting in trouble on my account.ā
Ā
āAre you running?ā Josh asked the question that had been constantly going through Harryās head all evening. āMaybe you should talk to Maddie. I donāt know what to do, Buck.ā
Ā
āI know, I just needed to know my time-frame,ā he said gratefully. āFor now, I think Iāll just go business as usual. You said it would take some time, so maybe Chris will have more accidental magic incidents before then, and he wonāt even think to mention that I saw the first.ā
Ā
āTheyāll ask,ā Josh said, and Harry had known that too. He could still lie to himself it was a possibility though.
Ā
āThen Iāll run when I have to,ā he concluded as much as he hated the idea. āIām not going to run before I absolutely have to though. My life is here now, and I donāt want to give everything up yet again. Iām not going to let Kingsley take you and the 118 from me as well as everything else.ā
Ā
āI donāt want you to leave either,ā Josh said quietly. āLook, Iāll talk to my aunt. She probably knows a lot more about how MACUSA does things than I do.ā
Ā
āThanks, Josh. I donāt know what Iād do without you,ā he smiled.
Ā
āI know; Iām a delight,ā Josh quipped, getting a laugh from him.
Ā
Harry kicked his feet up on the coffee table and got more comfortable. āSo, is Ilvermorny the only magical school in his country? I donāt see Eddie as someone likely to send his son off to a boarding school.ā
Ā
Josh snorted in agreement even though he only knew Eddie in passing and from Harry's stories. āNo, definitely not. There are day schools as well. Thereās one here in LA and another up in San Francisco that Chris could floo to daily if it is a better fit. My cousins all went to the one here in LA.ā
Ā
āGood to know,ā he nodded, not that Harry had any say in that decision in the slightest. āThanks, Josh. Iām going to let you get back to your show now.ā
Ā
āGood luck, Buck. Weāll figure something out,ā Josh assured him.
Ā
āGoodnight,ā Harry said and disconnected the call.
Ā
Harry just sat there for a long while. He wasnāt going to leave his family. He didnāt want to leave. He didnāt see what his options were though. At the very least, he could use the time he had left well and productively though. Chrisās life might be easier with magic, but he was still going to have some accessibility challenges with magic school too, especially with Potions. Chrisās fine motor skills were a bit of a struggle for him.
Ā
Harry opened the drawer in the table beside the couch and took out the pad of paper and pen Eddie kept there for notes and grocery lists. He started jotting down some of the things he could help teach Chris before he had to leave, things that he could do without letting it slip he was a wizard. Heād start with helping Chris figure out how to chop and slice and everything for Potions. Heād buy some books on magical accessibility too that he could give Chris right before he had to run if it came to that.
Ā
Quills were going to be a problem. Harry would look into alternatives. Ballpoint pens would be the easiest option which already existed, but he would need to look into if there was actually a reason why quills were required beyond tradition. Heād never actually looked into that since heād always had so many more important concerns way above that in his life.
Ā
āBroomsā he wrote and underlined multiple times on the paper. Chris would absolutely love to fly, and Harry was going to make sure he found the safest way to make sure the kid had that opportunityā¦and that Eddie wouldnāt freak out over it. Actually, flying was probably something Chris wouldnāt even need many adaptations to do. It was probably more Eddie who would need to adapt for that.
Ā
Well, one step at a time. Buck would have Chris help him cut up some fruit in the morning for their breakfast and start in on teaching him knife safety and the proper techniques then. Chris could tell Eddie later when he got back home about the magic after Buck left, but Buck was almost certain Eddie wouldnāt believe his son until he saw it himself. Hopefully, Buck had a few months before he had to make some very difficult decisions.
Notes:
Up next: the tsunami...
Chapter 11: A Day at the Pier
Notes:
(See the end of the chapter for notes.)
Chapter Text
Buck walked up to the very nondescript and beige branch location of the Pacific Heights Bank. It was a simple concrete building with an almost stock logo of a green mountain on it. No one would ever look twice or really have any thoughts about it if they didnāt know what it actually was.
Ā
He walked into the overly air conditioned space and up to a bored teller who was clearly doing the Wordle on their phone. āGood morning, what can I help you with today,ā the teller almost yawned out when Buck stopped at their window.
Ā
Buck absolutely hated this part of any trip to the bank for the danger it caused to his identity, but heād specifically chosen a time when hardly anyone would be there. He had been assured there were protections in place, but he didnāt trust them. Buck looked around first before leaning forward some and whispering, āIām here to see my account manager. Iām Harry Potter.ā
Ā
To the womanās credit, her expression didnāt change in the slightest at his name. She clicked a few keys on her keyboard and hit a button to open a door in the teller stand beside her. āCome on through, they are expecting you,ā she motioned him to the door in the back before going right back to her phone.
Ā
Buck took in a deep, steadying breath and stepped through the door which looked like it led to a bland hallway before it felt like he was drowning, then stretched thin, then too heavy and he landed sharply in the main bankās lobby. Every single time, it amazed him to see the lush greenery, water features, colorful birds, and cool ponds in the oasis of nature which was the Sidhe bank. He was absolutely certain he was no longer in California, and a little worried he might not even be on Earth anymore.
Ā
Gringotts was thankfully not the only magical bank in the world. After the war, the Goblin Nation had very clearly and viciously informed Harry, Ron, and Hermione that their business was no longer welcomed nor appreciated after robbing the place and stealing their dragon. The three were frankly lucky they werenāt facing legal action or violence, which was probably only because theyād literally stopped the war. However, after having been unceremoniously banned from the bank, the three of them stood on the marble steps in Diagon Alley with everything from their accounts in small shrunken trunks and just looked at each other in bemusement, wondering at what they were going to do now.
Ā
āWell,ā Ron had sighed first in resignation. āI guess we have to go deal with the Sidhe then, unless you would rather the Vampires. Personally, I vote vampire since at least I know how they would kill me, but the sidhe have more stringent privacy and secrecy policies, so whateverā¦ā
Ā
Hermione and Harry had just gaped at him. āThere are other banks?ā Harry eventually asked.
Ā
āEr, yeahā¦you didnāt know that?ā Ron frowned like they should have realized this, and Hermione looked ready to punch him. One of these days, Ron was going to realize the privilege he held as a pureblood wizard, but that day had yet to arrive. āUs British mages all pretty much use Gringotts, but magical creatures tend to use the sidhe banks except for muggle vampires who have their own system. Even magical vampires use either the sidhe or Gringotts though usually.ā
Ā
And that was how Harry, now Buck, had decided to open all his accounts with the Sidhe, which turned out to be exceptionally lucky since they didnāt care in the slightest that he was now a wanted fugitive from most of the magical world. Honestly though, they were much scarier than the goblins since their rules were stricter, they didnāt care who he was in the slightest to bend any of them for him, and if any were brokenā¦well, no one would ever hear from him again or know what had happened to him. Also, there were a lot of unspoken rules that Buck had to learn from a deep dive into the Sidhe race with Hermione or he would have broken them on their first meetingā¦and again, never be seen or heard from again.
Ā
All in all, it really wasnāt that bad though. Buck knew his money was safe, his investments were well cared for, and Kingsley could never track him down through the bank or touch his accounts no matter what he tried. Plus, if he were to ever be taken by his account manager for an imagined slight, well, the Sidhe world really wasnāt that bad overall. Not that he wanted to be taken from his life, but hey, this paradise wasnāt Azkaban or a goblin dungeon at least.
Ā
āSir Harry,ā he was greeted cheerily by his account manager Darragh. The man was tall, well-built, and looked about Buckās real age with just a very slight tinge of green to his skin which wouldnāt be noticeable if a person wasnāt looking. When he smiled though, his teeth were much sharper than any normal humanās would be and gave his entire look a predatory feel. When he smiled, Buck never could determine if the man was flirting with him or deciding if heād taste better with barbeque sauce or ranch dressing. All in all, still might not be the worst way to go, the Sidhe were quite fit.
Ā
āGood to see you again, Darragh,ā Buck shook his hand with a smile and followed his manager to an intricately carved wooden desk over by a bubbling water feature in the corner. He stepped through a powerful privacy ward around the desk and settled in the comfortable green, velvet chair.
Ā
āCoffee, tea?ā Darragh asked as usual with that dangerous smile turned up even another notch.
Ā
āNice try,ā Buck snorted a laugh and rolled his eyes at the question. Rule one of dealing with the Sidhe, never take any food or drink offered. If you did, then you would never be leaving their realm again for the rest of your life. Heād been tempted a couple times to take Darragh up on his offer of tea when things were at their worst with Kingsley, but he could never leave Teddy.
Ā
Darragh just shrugged and sat with an unrepentant grin. āCanāt fault me for trying. I do quite enjoy your company.ā
Ā
Buck just smirked at him because he was immortal, and one of these days, that offer to join another immortal race may just be too tempting to pass up. āWell, keep asking, maybe Iāll change my mind eventually. I do quite like the new waterfall over there,ā he motioned to a very beautiful addition to the corner of his managerās office-area.
Ā
Darragh chuckled in amusement and pulled Buckās file from a desk drawer. āWhat can I help you with today, Sir Harry? Do we have a new investment opportunity you would like to add to your portfolio? That one with the Longbottom Exotic Plants has been doing well recently. I believe they are cultivating a new line of fast-growing mandrakes.ā
Ā
āThatās good to hear, but not this time,ā he leaned back and got more comfortable. This realm really was exceptionally calming. He knew he couldnāt get any more comfortable though because it was all designed to make him fall asleep, and if he didā¦again, not leaving ever.
Ā
āToday, I need to set up a new trust account,ā Buck explained. āLike the one I have for Teddy.ā
Ā
āAh, yesā¦Lord Blackās account,ā Darragh pulled another file from within Buckās account files. āWho is this trust account for?ā
Ā
āItās for a young muggleborn wizard in the United States, Christopher Diaz,ā Buck explained while Darragh pulled out the necessary paperwork. āI also need you start in on the paperwork to officially mark him as under the protection of the Potter familyā¦as meaningless as that is currently. Hold off on filing it with MACUSA yet though.ā
Ā
That protection had meant a lot back before the world turned on Harry. Now though, it only really gave Chris status as part of a magical family instead of as a muggleborn. That didnāt matter as much in the United States as if did in Britain, but still, it would give him some extra legal protection, have solicitors more willing to work with him if he ever needed one, and actually made Eddie safer from the magical wordās discrimination by extension as well. If/when Buck had to run from his life in LA, he would file it immediately, but filing it now would give his location away to MACUSA.
Ā
āHow much are we setting aside for Mr. Diaz in his trust?ā Darragh asked. Buckās account manager was amazing at not questioning any of Buckās decisions and just rolling with them, as odd as they sometimes were. That might be a sidhe thing, but Buck really only ever dealt with Darragh, so he wouldnāt know.
Ā
Buck had thought about it, and he knew he was doing this behind Eddieās back which was more than a little questionable. He had no actual blood or legal claim to Eddieās son, but Buck was actually Harry Potter, and he was a part of the magical world and knew what it was like to be thrown into an entire culture and world you knew nothing about. It was the least he could do to make sure Chris had every opportunity to succeed and all the protections he could offer him. Eddie would eventually learn about it, but probably not until Chris was eleven and starting at a magical school. Buck could deal with the fall-out then, especially since heād very likely be on the run and with a new identity by that point.
Ā
āMake it the same as Lord Blackās,ā Buck told Darragh firmly. āAll the same stipulations and protections as well. Christopher will most likely be going to a day-school in Los Angeles instead of a boarding school, so you may need to change any wording if the paperwork specifies Hogwarts tuition or housingā¦add in transportation though. If he decides to floo somewhere daily, I want the floo powder covered.ā
Ā
Darragh nodded while his quill scratched across the parchment in an intricate language Buck would never even attempt to understand. Buck always cast the standard translation spell at anything he was asked to sign at the bank though because, againā¦there was usually a clause that would have him committing to spending the rest of his life in the Sidhe realm.
Ā
They were nothing if not relentless and consistent. It was a bit of a headache, but heād known all this going in, and heād only ever been treated with exceptional respect, privacy, and care, so he viewed the annoyance as worth it. Hermione was onboard with the Sidhe as well for all her banking, but Ron had definitely gone with the muggle vampires who heād said at least only wanted his life or blood and not his entire self. Maybe he should mention the vampire bank to Eddie if he ever decided to tell Buck he was a vampireā¦maybe.
Ā
āSign here and here,ā Darragh pointed at two lines.
Ā
Buck translated and checked over the paper, crossing out the line selling his existence the the Sidhe with a smirk. āIām not Christopherās legal guardian,ā he frowned at the next line which listed him as such. He was listed as Teddyās legal guardian at the bank for financial reasons, but not with the ministry because of Andromedaās custody. He didnāt have the same relationship with Christopher though as he did Teddy.
Ā
Darragh shook his head. āNo, with the Sidhe Nation, you will be listed as his legal guardian because we do not deal with muggles here,ā Darragh corrected.
Ā
āHis father is a muggle vampire, does that make any difference?āĀ Buck frowned, really thinking Eddie would have a major problem with this when he eventually learned of the trust account. It kind of sounded like he was taking Eddieās kid, even if it was only for banking purposes. That definitely wouldnāt go over well.
Ā
Darragh nodded and took back the paperwork, making a few changes magically. āYou can both be listed as his legal guardians then since he is a creature, but you must still be listed as a guardian for us because you are the account holder and the magical party.ā
Ā
āWouldnāt his father need to sign off on that?ā He frowned next because even if this was only for the Sidhe people, that seemed like a weird thing that he could just be assigned custody of a child that wasnāt his own even if it didnāt really mean anything outside of the Sidhe.
Ā
Darragh just smiled, showing all his teeth. āHis father has no dealings with the Sidhe. Our dealings are with the Potter family, and Christopher Diaz is now a member of the Potter family for my people. Sign here,ā he tapped the paper again a little impatiently this time.
Ā
Buck frowned and translated it once more. Everything was above board this time, and he wrote in āEdmundo Diaz (vampire)ā as a secondary guardian as odd as that was. Eddie was so going to kill him.
Ā
Eddie was going to kill him even more when Buck read the second piece of parchment he was to sign. He was now the official legal guardian of Edmundo Diaz (vampire) now as well. āBut heās an adult,ā he tried to protest.
Ā
Darragh clearly didnāt care. āYou have taken on this family, so they are yours now in accordance with Sidhe law. If they break one of our laws, they are your responsibility.ā
Ā
Ok, so that was nice at least. Clearly, Buck was never going to let either Eddie or Chris deal with the Sidhe on their own, but at least they couldnāt be made to stay eternally in the Sidhe realm if they broke a law now, and no sneaky clauses could be added into anything they signed. All in all, that was probably for the best. He supposed he could handle Eddieās ire for both him and Christopher being listed as part of his family for that added safety. Actually, maybe he should ask Hermione if she wanted to be listed as part of his family then too now that she wasnāt with Ron, she really didnāt want to spend the rest of her life with the Sidhe.
Ā
āWonderful, now this is for Mr. Diazās tuition, incidentals, living stipend after graduation, and coverage for any future apprenticeships or mastery courses,ā Darragh passed over next, and Buck sighed after translating and picking through his new contract. It was all worth it to know Chris was set up for success in the magical world now even or especially if anything happened to Buck or Eddie.
Ā
Ā
āDad, I can get it down for you. I have magic now,ā Christopher said, pointing at the box of cereal he wanted Eddie to get for him, but Eddie currently had his hands full trying to fix coffee and text with Carla who seemed to suddenly have to leave town again to help with her sick father. The man had been in bad shape recently, and Carla had been trying to juggle everything with her job and relatives. He assured her vehemently that she should go and be with her family, that they would be fine. Dracula, but summer break was very inconvenient for childcare!
Ā
āJust give me a minute, mijo,ā Eddie said as patiently as his stressed nerves would allow. He wasnāt sure where this new magic thing had come from, but Christopher had been adamant about it for a few weeks now. Maybe Buck had showed him a magic trick, and Chris had latched onto it or something, or maybe it had been a movie. He sent off a quick message to Buck while feeling very guilty about using his best friendās medical leave to his advantage once again.
Ā
Duh! Bring him by! I'd love to spend the day with my best friend! Buck just sent back immediately when Eddie asked if he could watch Chris while Eddie went on shift. Buck wasā¦well, he was a lifesaver. It wasn't the first time Eddie had wondered what they would do without the guy.
Ā
Chris made some kind of grumbling noise, and Eddie sighed tiredly. He took in a calming breath and turned to finally get the cereal box. āChris, I saidā¦ā he trailed off as the box floated off the top of the refrigerator and down to the hand of his very smug-looking kid.
Ā
āSee!ā Christopher crowed with a loud and teasing laugh.
Ā
Eddie justā¦what the hell just happened! He just stared at whatever the hell was going one. Did Chrisā¦? Butā¦how? Did Eddie somehow do this to Chris by spending so much time with him? But no, Eddie didnāt have telekinesis and none of the very few vampires he knew had ever mentioned it. Also vampirism wasn't catching...but then how...?
Ā
Chris just giggled and poured the cereal in his bowl. āBuck said you probably wouldnāt believe me until you saw.ā
Ā
Eddie brain screeched to a halt once more before he slowly knelt down to be more eye-level with his son. Ā āBuck saw you do that?ā He asked, not knowing what this all meant. Why hadnāt Buck said anything?! Buck should have told him!!
Ā
Chris nodded and shoved a Cheerio in his mouth. āYep! A few weeks ago.ā
Ā
āAnd what did Buck say when he saw you move something with your mind?ā Eddie thought his eyes were probably wider than theyād ever been in his life. Like, yeah, he was a vampire, but magic that something else! How did a person even wrap their minds around that?! And how did Chris have it?!
Ā
Chris shrugged. āHe said to tell you but not be upset if you didnāt believe me until you saw it. He said adults can be dumb,ā he giggled again at the end, clearly communicating that that applied to Eddie.
Ā
Eddie took in a deep breath. Ok, so Buck hadnāt told him his son was apparently magical in some form or fashion. But Buck was right, and he hadnāt believed until he saw it. Dios mio, but honestly, he wouldnāt have believed Buck if heād told him either.
Ā
āDid Buck seemā¦freaked out?ā He finally asked, trying to not sound freaked out himself.
Ā
Christopher firmly shook his head, munching on his Cheerios. āNah, Buck said Iām special, but he already knew that, so Iām just more special now.ā
Ā
Damn, but how did Buck always handle these things better than Eddie did, and Buck wasnāt even a dad? Well, he absolutely wasnāt going to let Buck upstage him in this. āWell, he was absolutely right!ā Eddie smiled and kissed the top of Chrisās head. āI donāt know what all this means, but it definitely means you are extra special, just like we already knew.ā
Ā
Christopher rolled his eyes and went back to his cereal, clearly more concerned with his breakfast currently. Eddie was suddenly very glad they were going to Buckās apartment that morning. He needed answers, or at least someone to freak the hell out with!
Ā
He glanced up at the clock. Draculaās balls! They were already late!!
Ā
Ā
Just one more week. Buck only had one more week before he could get back to work as a firefighter. Heād had to take a ridiculous amount of time off because it would have seemed questionable and concerning if heād taken less with the injuries everyone had seen. All the soft tissue damage in his leg was finally healed now, though he did have some quite impressive scars left. And the bones in his leg had literally never been healthier since they were brand new. Buck was going insane sitting around his loft doing nothing now.
Ā
Well, he wasnāt actually doing nothing he supposed. Heād done the bank stuff. He'd talked to Teddy on the phone a lot. Heād been teaching Christopher potions under the guise of cooking classes. And heād found a treasure trove of books on accessible magic and specifically cerebral palsy and spellcasting. Maddie had helped him find a mage in Cleveland who had CP and researched it in particular.
Ā
Annoyingly, Maddie and Chimney had even dragged him along as a third wheel on way too many of their dates recently. Chimney at least was clearly concerned he was going to become a recluse during his recovery. Buck was doing fine though, really. Even Molly Weasley was teaching him how to knit over video call when Ron got tired of him calling all the time and passed his cellphone off to his mum. Buck had about a third of a scarf currently, and it wasnāt half bad if he did say so himself.
Ā
Yeah, ok, he was going crazy.
Ā
Thankfully, heād been able to recertify to be a firefighter and just passed the last of his exams the day before. He was absolutely not petty enough to have looked up the records Eddie had set to intentionally break themā¦who was he kidding, he was definitely that petty. Heād also sent quite a few gloating texts to his friend already about it. It really had to be eating at Eddie who was a vampire and thought Buck was just some little old normal human. Ah, the small joys in lifeā¦
Ā
Speaking of the bloodsuckerā¦Eddieās key scraped in his lock. Harry rolled his eyes and magically changed his look from āHarryā to āBuckā instantly. Eddie didnāt need to use the key since he was integrated into Buckās wards, but Eddie didnāt know that and used the prop key all the same every time he came over. At least he felt welcome to just walk into Buck's space, and the key sound did at least give Harry a heads up to make sure his appearance was correct.
Ā
āSorry, sorry, Iām running late. I gotta drop him off and run,ā Eddie ushered Chris quickly into the loft.
Ā
Chris looked at Buck and rolled his eyes. āDad is never on time.ā
Ā
āCoffee is on the counter,ā Buck motioned to where heād made Eddie a travel mug of coffee just the way he liked it, knowing his chronically late friend would be cutting it close. Christopher wasnāt wrong.
Ā
āQue Dios te bendiga!ā Eddie breathed out in a rush of gratefulness and hurried over to the coffee.
Ā
āBe safe at work. Weāll find something fun to do. Hey Chris, how about going to a movie today?ā Buck called over to his shoulder to where Chris was already setting himself up on Buckās sofa to find a cartoon to watch.
Ā
Eddie walked to the door, but paused with a seriously look on his face. āHey, Buckā¦when I get back, can we talk?ā
Ā
That lookedā¦concerning. What had he done? There was no way Eddie had found out about the bank, right? If MACUSA had already stopped by to explain magic, it wouldnāt be Eddie at his door but an obliviator. So, what had happened?
Ā
āYeah, man, of course. Anything wrong?ā He asked as lightly as he could make his now racing heart say it.
Ā
āNo, no,ā Eddie waved him off with a smile over to Chris. āLove you, Chris!ā
Ā
āLove you too, Dad!ā Chris called back even as he flicked through the channels.
Ā
Eddie scoffed and rolled his eyes. āGet my kid out into some daylight at some point, yeah?ā
Ā
Buck just laughed because maybe whatever this was wasnāt actually terrible. āYeah, I can do that.ā
Ā
Ā
Well, this definitely counted as daylight. Buck stood with Christopher leaning between himself and the railing at the very end of the Santa Monica Pier. It had been a much too beautiful day to go to a movie, and Eddie was right, Chris was starting to look pale, and he wasnāt even the vampire in the family.
Ā
They had a blast riding the rides and playing all the games that were definitely rigged. Buck had used just a little magic to turn a few of them in their favor though. Christopher even had a large plushie now that took up half the bench he was standing on currently.
Ā
āSo, good day? You going to give me a five star rating?ā Buck grinned at his ray of sunshine enjoying the view of the ocean.
Ā
āYeah, maybe even six,ā Chris breathed out. āIām going to miss our days when you go back to work with Dad.ā
Ā
Buck hadnāt thought of that. Theyād had a lot more time to spend together since heād been off work and not actually having to stay home and heal. He had babysat quite often recently when Carla was busy or it was her day off. As much as he really wanted to go back to work and be with his family again, Chris was also his familyā¦now literally at least according to the Sidhe Nation.
Ā
āHey, we can still do Buck and Chris days,ā he assured his little friend. āIām not abandoning you. I might be at work more, but weāll still go to the zoo and the aquarium, and Iāll keep teaching you how to cook.ā
Ā
Chris grimaced because he still wasnāt sold on cooking, but Buck was determined Chris's knife skills would be better than his own when he first started Potions. āI suppose I should learn to cook since Dad is hopeless,ā he said in a long-suffering tone.
Ā
āThatās the spirit!ā Buck just grinned. Eddie probably would be a better cook if he actually could taste food as much as a normal human these days. The guy was single handedly keeping the hot sauce industry afloat currently though. Absently, Buck wondered if a person could eat enough peppers to make their blood taste spicy to a vampire.
Ā
āBuckā¦where did all the water go?ā Chris asked suddenly, and Buck turned and immediately couldnāt think anything except for fuck!
Ā
āTsunami!! Run!!ā Buck yelled at everyone around them, grabbing up Chris and turning to run as fast as he was able.
Ā
Everyone ran, jostling each other, screaming, knocking others out of the way. Harry would have apparated them away, but there was no way with that many people that he wouldnāt splinch himself, Chris, and probably five other people in the attempt. So, he ranā¦
Ā
They werenāt going to make it. He could feel the wave like fear pricking at the back of his neck. Harry dove into one of the wooden stands and turned to Chris. Wandlessly he cast a tracking charm on the kid followed by a bubblehead charm and a protection ward. Before he could do the same for himself, the wave hitā¦
Ā
It felt like concrete slammed down on him, and Harry was tossed against pieces of the pier and crushed by the water. He tried to claw his way to the surface. He had to find Chris. His lungs screamedā¦and with a glance of a white train station, Harry Potter died.
Ā
Ā
āMerlinā¦ā Maddie breathed out as she watched the tragedy unfolding on the news playing on the small TV at 911 dispatch.
Ā
āShit,ā Josh echoed from beside her. āIām so glad my aunt is out of town today, or she would have been there reading tarot.ā
Ā
Maddie pulled her phone out of her pocket suddenly and checked it because she had a very bad feeling. Her Harry senses were telling her that her friend was in danger. She breathed out a sigh. She must be wrong. It was only paranoia.
Ā
āBuck and Chris went to a movie,ā she said in relief when she pulled up the picture theyād sent from a diner that morning. It was just Harryās luck to be caught in something like this. Thankfully, for once, he was far away.
Ā
āChimney is about to have a rough day,ā Josh put a hand on her shoulders. āWe should get to the phones, theyāll ring any second now.ā
Ā
āSomedaysā¦todayā¦I wish the statute wasnāt a thing,ā she whispered lowly as she followed her friend back to their stations.
Ā
āMaddie, even magic isnāt going to save someone in that,ā he motioned back at the TV grimly.
Ā
Ā
āChris and Buck went to a movie, right?ā Bobby asked Eddie worriedly as they stood, taking in the destruction around them.
Ā
āThank God, yes,ā Eddie breathed out in relief.
Ā
āCome on,ā Hen clapped a hand on Eddieās shoulder and headed to one of the boats. āThere are a lot of people out there who need us.ā
Ā
āLetās go!ā He nodded firmly. Eddie vowed to use all of his vampire strength and stamina that day without questioning if anyone would notice at all. Heād do everything in his capability to help the victims of this disaster.
Ā
Ā
Harry breached the surface of the water and took in a breath, his recently dead lungs on fire. āBuck!ā A small voice yelled in fear.
Ā
Harry whipped around, treading water to see Christopher clutching a light pole with a shimmer of magic still around his head from the bubblehead charm. āHold on! Iām coming to you!ā He yelled, kicking his legs and swearing that he was going to get Chris out of this. Even if he died fifty more times, Christopher was going to make it out of this safe and whole.
Ā
Harry finally had Chris in his arms and hoisted him up on top of the 136ās firetruck ironically enough. It seemed the most stable thing around them. Unfortunately he knew intimately well just how much one of those things weighed, and yeah, they'd be safe there. āAre you ok? Anything hurt?ā
Ā
āIām fine,ā Christopher assured him, still trying to catch his breath. āYou haveā¦you have magic too!ā
Ā
āYeah, superman,ā Harry held him close and kissed his wet hair. āYeah, I have magic too. Iām going to use it to get you out of this, I swear. Youāre going to be ok. I promise, youāre going to make it through this.ā
Ā
āI know,ā Chris told him without an ounce of disbelief. āI know, because Iām with you.ā
Ā
Everyone had always looked to Harry to save the day. When he was child, the entire world looked at him to rescue them. He had carried the weight of everyoneās lives and expectations for so long, and it had weighted him down. Not a single time in his entire life though had that expectation felt so light. Christopher believed Harry would save him, and Harry found that Chrisās belief was one of the most important honors heād ever been bestowed.
Ā
With a nod, Harry renewed the protection ward and tracking spell around his charge. āNow, donāt tell anyone we meet today about the magic, but maybe you can help me pull people towards us. Can you say āaccioā for me?ā
Ā
āAkeeo?ā Chris frowned.
Ā
āClose,ā he laughed. āAccioā¦ā
Ā
āAccio,ā Chris tried again.
Ā
āGreat!ā Harry beamed at him. āNow, just like you moved the cookies before, try to feel that feeling, and say the word. It gives the magic direction.ā
Ā
He didnāt really think Chris would be able to do anything, especially without a wand, but accidental magic was a powerful thing, and this was a high stress time. Harry would try to fish whoever came by them out of the water, and if Chris could help pull them towards the firetruck even a little, then even better. āNow, focus on that woman while I go try to get her,ā Harry pointed at the woman swimming their direction. āStay safe, and hold on tightly.ā
Ā
āAccio,ā Chrisās face scrunched up in concentration as he focused everything he had one the woman.
Ā
Harry climbed down and grabbed onto the firehose to pull it across the street for people to grab onto. Theyād make it through this, and Harry would get Chris back to Eddie. Eddie had trusted him with his son, and Harry would defy Death himselfā¦againā¦to get Chris back home.
Notes:
Up Next: An unexpected visit from an old friend...
Chapter 12: Dangerous Secrets
Notes:
(See the end of the chapter for notes.)
Chapter Text
Harry was tying off the firehose to a light pole before he even thought to check his appearance. Merlin! He couldn't believe he hadn't checked before! Heād died several times in his life and had kept his changes though. For instance, when Kingsley had definitely killed him in their final confrontation, Harryās hair hadnāt grown out to his knees but stayed short. So, it was with some hope that he raised his hand and felt short hairs on his head. He breathed out a sigh of relief before helping the woman who was swimming towards him up onto the truck with Chris.
Ā
Thank Merlin that it seemed time was the main factor in losing the changesā¦well, that and muggle anesthesia which suppressed his magic, so understandable there. His magic never did leave his body when he died though, because he wasnāt really gone, or only was for a second or whateverā¦Harry really didnāt understand what happened to him when he 'died.'
Ā
āYou ok, buddy?ā Buck asked as soon as they were safely up on the truck, and he could check in with Chris again. Chris didn't have any injuries beyond a few scrapes and bruises miraculously.
Ā
āYeah,ā Chris breathed out in a sigh. He didnāt seem to be doing much at all with the accio charm, but Buck hadnāt really thought heād be able to anyway. It was more giving Chris something to do and wishful thinking.
Ā
āWhat happened here?ā Chris ran a finger across Buckās forehead, and he held in a swear at what Chris must be tracing. That damn scar just didnāt want to stay gone; it was the most stubborn part of all his changes. āDid that happen today?ā Chris looked confused at the old scar, which yeah, must have been really confusing since it was obviously not new but hadn't been there before.
Ā
Buck closed his eyes and let his magic change it back into a birthmark. The woman wasnāt paying them any attention; she was helping a man up on the truck whoād grabbed onto the firehose heād tied off. āBetter?ā He opened his eyes and asked. Chrisās face did something between confusion, awe, and concern. Hopefully in all the trauma the woman wouldn't realize it had changed.
Ā
āItās goneā¦you did that with magic?ā Chris frowned. āWhy? It's really cool, like a lightning bolt.ā
Ā
Buck kissed the top of his head and adjusted Chrisās glasses that had surprisingly stayed around his neck through the waters. āItās a long story, superman. How about I tell you once weāre out of all this and safe on dry land?ā
Ā
Chris gave him a solemn nod before pointing at another woman who was having trouble getting to the truck. āBuck, she needs help.ā
Ā
āI got it, buddy.ā And Buck was back at work getting as many people as possible out of the waters and up onto the truck and safe.
Ā
Harry Potter and Buck Buckley, neither one had needed to know anything about tsunamis. England definitely didnāt get them, and why would he have thought California would? Like yeah, it was a possibility, but who would plan for a tsunami?! However, he did understand basic laws of nature, and if the water came in, then it would need to go back out again. So, Buck knew he had to get all these people safely on the truck as quickly as possible in case there was either another wave or in case the waters quickly receded.
Ā
By the time Buck was back up on the truck and hugging Chris close to him, he was pretty cut up from all the debris in the water. Hermione was going to have a time of it to heal all this. Even if his healing spells weren't shite, he couldn't use any of them with all these muggles around him. Well, he was pretty sure everyone were muggles on the truck, but that wasnāt guaranteed. Any creatures or mages, like him, might have been too surrounded by others to apparate, or werenāt powerful enough to be able to, so there was always the possibility there were other magical people about, trying to survive like everyone else.
Ā
āWhy didnāt you tell me you had magic too?ā Chris asked quietly while they waited for the waters to go down enough they could get back off the truck. Buck glanced around, but no one was listening to them, all caught up in their own fear and anxiety.
Ā
Buck whispered another couple wandless spells to keep Chris protected and to track him if they were separated, worrying that the ones heād already placed would either fade off or wouldnāt be strong enough. It was the only thing keeping him sane right now. Eddie was going to kill him for taking Chris to the pier, and Buck didnāt blame him in the slightest. Eddie trusted him with his kid, and Buck had almost gotten him killed!
Ā
He wasnāt sure what to tell Chris, especially not here where they could be overheard. āShh, itās a secret,ā Buck whispered to him. āIāll tell you when we can talk, and others wonāt hear. Can you keep it a secret until then?ā
Ā
Chris wrinkled his nose. āLikeā¦donāt tell dad?ā
Ā
Buck shook his head firmly. No, heād never want Teddy to keep anything this big from him, and he would never ask Chris to do that to Eddie. āNo, buddy, you can tell your dad anything, but we canāt just tell anyone here,ā he motioned to everyone else on the truck.
Ā
āOoooh,ā Chris breathed out with a nod. He leaned his little head against Buckās chest. āYou saved me. Thank you, Buck. I was under the water, but I could still breathe.ā
Ā
Buck just kissed the top of his head again. āYou save me and your dad every day, so it was the least I could do. Nowā¦I spy with my little eye, something that isā¦brown.ā
Ā
Chris giggled and blinked around him. āWood?ā
Ā
āNope, try again,ā Buck laughed.
Ā
Ā
A surge hit the truck when the waters began to recede, and Buck jumped to the side with everyone else to try to pull in the group of people pushed their direction from wherever theyād been holding on for their lives more inland than them. Everything was so chaotic. Buck leaned down and pulled a man up to grab onto the truck, and another surge hit.
Ā
The truck shifted and floated to the side just slightly, enough to make him stumble. The protection spell around Chris tugged at him, and Buck instinctually reached his arm back grabbing onto his own magic to tug Chris forward. He overcompensated though in that pull.
Ā
It was almost in slow motion as he saw Chris stumble back onto the truck from where he had been falling off a half second before, while Buck passed him, falling the other direction from the backlash of his magic. Buck fell with relief that Chris was back on the truck and a sinking feeling that he knew he wasnāt going to be able to catch himself.
Ā
He hit the water hard, and there was probably a piece of a sign or wood or something that heād hit going down as well. Buck was certain he blacked out for a second before he sputtered back up to the surface, coughing out water, and scrambled to find purchase on anything solid enough to grab onto. He really wasnāt the best swimmer. That lie about having done Navy SEAL training to explain his intensive auror training was going to come back to bite him in the ass one of these days. In reality, Harry had really only swam a couple times since the second task of the tournament. It was all bad memories.
Ā
Buck was going under again, and he was certain he was going to die yet again that day, until something stopped him. It felt like a rope was around his chest, holding him in place and keeping him from sinking again. Buck looked, but there was nothing there around him. He glanced behind him and saw a little hand reaching his direction and an intense look on Chrisās face way back on the firetruck.
Ā
Merlinās balls, Chis was going to be excellent at Charms. Buck might need to add more money into his mastery funds to train with a true Charms master if he wanted to go that route later. That was years down the line though, but Buck was suddenly very happy heād taught the kid accio.
Ā
Now that he had the time to breathe, Buck was able to reach a car whose roof was just above the water line. He grabbed on and pulled himself painfully on top of it. The rope around his chest loosened and disappeared. Once he was up to safety, Buck look back at the truck, just in time to see Chris pass out into the arms of one of the other survivors from his overuse of magic. Frankly, Buck had been surprised he could hold on that long, it was so very impressive. Now, he just had to get back to the truck and hold Chris so tight that nothing bad could ever happen to him again.
Ā
Ā
Chris had used too much magic in helping him and probably in keeping himself swimming earlier when theyād been separated in the first wave. While the firetruck group stumbled inland once the waters receded towards where they'd heard a field hospital was set up, Harry pushed his own magic into the little body in his arms. Chris was ok, he would be ok, but he still wasnāt awake. It was terrifying Harry. Chris had to wake up. Harry would give him every bit of his magic if it would get him to wake up. Harry had used a lot of magic himself that day already through dying and coming back to life.
Ā
His reserves were gone, and he was starting to get rid of his metamorphmagus changes as they approached the VA hospital. It wasnāt noticeable yet, but several of his tattoos were scars once more, and itās possible his eyes were green, but he wasnāt certain about that. He kept his hair and the birthmark only because it would be noticeable to the people around them. Chris stirred right before Harry gave in and pushed the last of all he had into him.
Ā
āBuck?ā Harry stumbled at the sound of the very familiar voice from the hospital. Thank Merlin!
Ā
āChris!!!!ā Eddie yelled next. Harry saw him run towards them, and Harry just didnāt have anything left in him. He only prayed to Merlin that his hair and the birthmark stayed, but he was out of anything left in him to give.
Ā
āEddie,ā Harry passed the almost conscious kid into his frantic friendās arms.
Ā
āWhy? What happened? Chris?ā Eddie held onto Chris like he was the most precious thing in the world, which Harry supposed he was.
Ā
"We were on the pier," Buck admitted, knowing he was probably going to lose his friend. The admission caused a string of Spanish swear words from Eddie.
Ā
āDad?ā Chris woke, and Harry was finally able to let go. Chris was going to be ok. He let himself sink to the ground, glad that it seemed strong arms caught him, from where, he didnāt know. They smelled like Bobby though. Huh? Where had Bobby come from?
Ā
Ā
āDad, I swear, I canāt leave you for any time at all or youāre getting stabbed, cursed, blown up, or hit by a bloody tsunami!ā Teddy bellowed on the other end of the phone, making Harry wince at the sound in his still aching head. "And that's not even taking into account everything from before I was born!!"
Ā
āLanguage,ā he chastised, knowing it was super hypocritical of him, but hey, he was a parent, he could be hypocritical. āTeddy, love, Iām immortal,ā he reminded his kid for the thousandth time.
Ā
āSo, youāre still hurt. Aunt Hermione said you were cut up badly and magically exhausted,ā Teddy ignored his admonishment as usual. āEven if you canāt outright die, I still donāt want you hit by a bus or lightning or whatever else major thing is out to get you next.ā
Ā
āIām more concerned about if youāve gotten your summer homework done yet and when youāre coming to visit,ā Harry stood from his couch with a wince. Magical exhaustion was a bitch. "I'll be fine."
Ā
He could hear Teddy rolling his eyes all the way from England. āGrandma made me do my homework as soon as the term ended. You know, most kids get to do their homework at the end of the summer.ā
Ā
āUh huh, and you get to spend yours on the beach in California since your homework will be done. What sounds better to you?ā Harry took a cold butterbeer out of his fridge. It was the last of the ones heād gotten from Christmas that heād been rationing religiously since then. āOh, and bring butterbeer when you come. I'm out.ā
Ā
āYeah, yeah,ā Teddy laughed. āIāll be there just after your birthday. Sorry I canāt make it before, but Grandma has that holiday planned with Aunt Cissa in France and she wants me to stay with her until they leave.ā
Ā
āI know, Teds. Weāll just have to celebrate both our birthdays when you get here since youāre all officially adult and allā¦my baby all grown up,ā Harry fake sniffed. But yeah, Teddy was 17 now, how did that happen? It was going to be his last year at Hogwarts, and thenā¦Merlin, getting a job or a mastery. How was Teddy so grown already?!
Ā
āOh, that reminds me,ā Teddy cut in, and there was a definite note of tension there. Harry braced himself for whatever was about to come his way. āThereās a technomage who works in LA. Heās the best from everything Iāve read and studiedā¦I was kind of hoping, that maybe heād let me apprentice with him after I graduate. Iād like to see him while Iām thereā¦I know that you being in hiding is dangerous, but you donāt look like Harry Potter to people who don't know you at leastā¦and I could go on my ownā¦ā
āHey, yeah, of course you can meet him,ā Harry cut in because he wasnāt going to stand in Teddyās way for anything. Heād figure it out, especially if it meant Teddy might move to LA after Hogwarts. Heād even take on the sidhe or the goblins again to make that happen.
Ā
āReally?ā
Ā
āYeah, owl me all the information, and Iāll get Hermione to check into it and get you a meeting. Iāll see if I can safely go with you, she or my friend Josh can if I canāt,ā Harry offered just as his wards pinged and he heard a knock at his door before it was promptly opened. Thankfully, heād already applied his changes, or Eddie would have gotten an eyeful.
Ā
āI have to go, Eddie just walked in,ā Harry told Teddy in his American accent.
Ā
āOooo, Eddie! The hot vampire,ā Teddy laughed, and Harry needed to keep him and Ron from talking from now on.
Ā
āBye,ā Harry rolled his eyes before just hanging up the phone before Teddy could embarrass him further.
Ā
āRight, so how about you two stay in and order pizza this time,ā Eddie began as if he hadnāt just barged into Buckās loft. "Maybe two pizzas, you both are too thin."
Ā
āBuck!ā Chris hugged him tightly around the middle.
Ā
āHeyā¦what?ā Buck frowned at them while still hugging Chris back.
Ā
āThis time off you have going on is really working out for me,ā Eddie grinned and helped himself to Buckās half full coffee pot heād abandoned for the butterbeer earlier. āYouāre no Abuela and only half a Carla, but youāll do.ā
Ā
āButā¦whyā¦ā Buck looked at where Chris was already on his couch and trying to find his cartoons on Buck's TV. āEddie manā¦you want me to watch Chris againā¦after what happened yesterday?!ā
Ā
Eddie leaned into his space, and Buck realized Eddie looked tired, which wasnāt a good thing for a vampire. Tired meant hungry. Was Eddie hungry? Why?
Ā
āBuck, it was a natural disaster,ā Eddie said emphatically. āYou canāt predict that. You did everything you could to save my son.ā
Ā
āIām pretty crap at divination,ā Buck let out with a breath, not knowing why Eddie was trusting him after heād almost gotten his son killed. For some reason, it looked like he might be forgiven though.
Ā
Eddie blinked, seeming confused for a second. āWhatever, lookā¦thereās no one I trust with my son more than you, Buck.ā
Ā
āOhā¦ā Buck didnāt know what to say about that in the slightest. That was a lot. Yeah, Buck loved Chris like his own, but wow, Eddie trusted him that much?! But Eddie also didnāt know Buck had been lying to him all this time.
Ā
āSo, maybe play some videos games or watch a movie this time, yeah? Just to be safe,ā Eddie smiled his radiant smile as he backed towards the door.
Ā
āHeyā¦you wanted to talk about somethingā¦before all of yesterday happened?ā Buck frowned, remembering they were supposed to have a talk the day before thatād never happened with all the tragedy and fear and getting checked out by doctors.
Ā
Eddieās look fell before he nodded. āRight, thatās not important right now though,ā he glanced at his son with a sad look. āHow about we just get through the next few days, and then weāll talk?ā
Ā
Buck glanced over, and yeah, Chris had looked tired too. āNightmares?ā He guessed.
Ā
Eddie nodded. āI know you tried to shield him from everything, but he still saw a lot. I think weāre going to have nightmares for a long while.ā
Ā
Buck reached out and put his hand on the back of Eddieās neck and squeezed it comfortingly. āWe will too. We can all be there for each other,ā he said. Heād had nightmares about losing Chris all the night before. The what ifs and all the worst case scenarios.
Ā
Eddie seemed to lean into his touch slightly. āIād like that,ā he breathed out, seeming to find some relief from Buck's words.
Ā
Buck let go, as much as he never wanted to let go, ever again. āHave a good shift. Less than a week, and Iāll be back making your life so much more interesting.ā
Ā
Eddie rolled his eyes. āMore like terrifying, but yeah, Iām looking forward to it.ā
Ā
Eddie left and Buck walked over to Chris. āSoā¦how do we feel about naps because Iām already planning one for like an hour from now?ā He asked because Chris definitely looked even more tired than Eddie.
Ā
Chris looked up from his cartoon and smiled at him. Merlin, but heād fly against a dragon again to protect this kid if he had to. Chris motioned to his face. āCan I see what you look like? Is it just the scar?ā
Ā
Buck laughed and shook his head, sitting on the couch beside Chris. āItās not. I look a little different.ā
Ā
āCan I see?ā
Ā
Buck closed his eyes, and opened his bright green eyes to look at Chris again who gasped and reached out to take a fistful of Harryās long, black hair and trace a couple of the burns on his arms that were normally turned into tattoos. āWow, you look different. I like it though. Why do you change how you look?ā
Ā
"What, you don't think I normally look good?" He teased, trying to sidestep the answer. "Maybe I just want to be blond."
Ā
Chris giggled and seemed to let it go for the moment at least. He was probably too tired to really push. "I like the green eyes."
Ā
āWell thank you...Did you tell your dad about me yet?ā Harry asked because heād really like some warning before he was completely shunned or yelled at or whatever, and Eddie didnāt seem like heād known earlier when he left. The aftermath of a tsunami would make even one of your friends being able to use magic seem less important though, he supposed.
Ā
Chris scoffed. āDad only just believed me that I have magic. I think Iām going to let you have that conversation. My part is done.ā
Ā
Harry laughed because he had a feeling he knew what Eddie wanted to talk to him about now. He didnāt know how to handle that in the slightest, but it was much less scary to deal with Eddie wanting to talk about Buck having seen Chris use magic than knowing Buck was actually magical himself. Maybe he could come up with a fictional āfriendā who had magic, was that too much like a lie? He actually did have a lot of friends with magic.
Ā
Ā
Eddie was more than a little worried this was a scam. A random special needs school reaching out that wanted to give his son a scholarship to attend seemed way too good to be true. Well, they didnāt actually say they were a special needs school, but they said they taught very special students, soā¦yeah, they were definitely a special needs school.
Ā
The people from the school had been so good about working around his schedule to meet too, but it was odd they wanted to meet with him and Chris alone. Normally, Carla would be there with him for these things, but theyād seemed very insistent that they wanted to talk to only him and his son. So, yeahā¦probably a scam. He was going to vet literally everything they said and not believe a word until he could check with Carla.
Ā
He had a moment of thinking that he should call Buck and tell him about the school meeting, but then he wondered if that was weird. Buck was starting work again just the next day, and he had enough on his plate. Plus, Buck and Eddie werenāt in a relationship or anythingā¦Eddie wasnāt sure why he thought he should run everything by Buck. Did Buck realize he did that? Did Buck think it weird? Maybe he should back off just a littleā¦
Ā
Eddie straightened the throw pillows on the couch for the hundredth time and Chris laughed at him. āWhat? I just want it to look good,ā he glared playfully at his son.
Ā
āItās a school, Dad, not a date,ā Chris laughed, and that took Eddie back, and his heart probably skipped a beat. Did Chris think about Eddie dating again? Did they need to have that talk? Eddie wasnāt thinking about dating yet. But maybe he would one dayā¦
Ā
A knock at the door effectively halted his panic attack to start a new one. The people from the school were here. āIt was Ilvermorny, right?ā He asked his son, just to check. Theyād said they represented a group of schools, but the people were from one called Ilvermorny or something weird like that. Chris just very unhelpfully shrugged. He liked his current school and wasn't too excited about this meeting, so Eddie was just praying he didn't actively try to tank the interview because a scholarship would be really nice. Plus, they said they only started students at 11-years-old, so Chris had 4 years until then regardless. That was odd right? Why would a school start for 11-year-olds?
Ā
Eddie did eventually open the door to two women, one a small blonde woman whose huge smile made her look very bubbly, and a taller Asian woman around his age or a little older who looked slightly sterner or maybe just exasperated. āHello,ā he tried a nervous smile on them. āUh, Iām Eddie.ā
Ā
āMr. Diaz, itās so good to meet you,ā the blonde woman shot her hand out and enthusiastically shook his with much more force than heād expected. āIām Professor Arbor, and this is Auror Zhao. You can call me Dahlia though.ā
Ā
Eddie just blinked at the enthusiastic greeting before glancing in confusion at the other woman. She rolled her eyes. Definitely exasperation then.
Ā
āDahlia teaches biology at Ilvermorny, and an auror is a type of security. Since Dahlia is visiting with a lot of families all over the country right now, the school thought it best she had some security with her,ā the woman explained with an accent. Eddie wasnāt exactly sure where it was from. Heād expected more of a Chinese accent, but it soundedā¦maybe Irish?
Ā
āHow many times do I have to tell you, just say I teach Herbology,ā Dahlia almost bounced into Eddieās house past him without him even offering for her to enter. Eddie himself was still so very confused. Aurors? Herbology?
Ā
āYou must be Christopher!ā Dahlia clapped her hands before hurrying to sit beside his son. Eddie was worried for one minute, but something about this woman just said she wasnāt dangerous in the slightest. He kind of understood why her school would insist on security if she was visiting random peopleās homes and just running in and making herself at home. It seemed Chris was on an extensive list, hopefully this scholarship wasn't extremely competitive.
Ā
āHello,ā Christopher shook the womanās hand with a wide smile. At least he seemed to be making a good impression.
Ā
āOh dearā¦well, arenāt you just precious,ā Dahlia blinked and looked up at Chrisās crutches and then at Eddie with a look on her face he knew exceptionally wellā¦she hadnāt known Chris has cerebral palsy.
Ā
Eddie opened his mouth, not sure what to say. He cleared his throat. āYour schoolā¦you said it was for students with special needsā¦ā he trailed off. They hadnāt exactly said that thoughā¦
Ā
āThe school teaches special children, whatever form that takes,ā Auror Zhao said as she finally entered the house behind Eddie, closing the door behind her. She gave him a comforting smile though.
Ā
āIlvermorny or whichever of our schools you choose, would love to have Christopher attend,ā Dahlia shook herself out of her surprise and enthusiastically agreed.
Ā
Eddie didnāt know what to make of this entire conversation, but he did let out a small breath of relief he'd held when he realized they hadn't known. Soā¦it wasnāt a special needs school? They clearly hadnāt known Chris has CP. Why were they reaching out to him then? Chris was really smart and had good grades, but he wasnāt first in his class or anything. Why were they contacting him about a scholarship?
Ā
āNowā¦letās get down to business,ā Dahlia clapped her hands. āSo, do you believe in magic?ā She grinned widely.
Ā
The following conversation was probably the most surreal conversation heād ever had in his life. Magic existedā¦Chris was a wizard or mage or whatever he wanted to be calledā¦there were schools out there specifically for magicā¦and they had a way to find special kids like Chris. Oh, and an auror was actually a magical cop.
Ā
Honestly, ok, Eddieās threshold for believing in the supernatural had been scrapped the moment heād learned he was a vampire. Stillā¦a whole society living and working alongside the non-magical one and going unnoticedā¦that was a little hard to believe. Well, that was until he remembered he was a part of one of those societies as well.
Ā
āSo, are other mythical things real too,ā Eddie asked, definitely fishing here for his own sake. āLikeā¦ok, like werewolves and vampires and mermaids and all?ā
Ā
Dahlia giggled. āOh my, yes, but donāt worry. Weāll keep your baby safe from any danger.ā
Ā
Ok, so not the most encouraging reply to show this woman would be ok with Eddie himself being a vampire. Did they have some way to check that? He hadnāt told Chris yet, so he was definitely not going to tell these women anyway, but still, that sounded a little concerning. Neither of them had seemed to realize what he was though.
Ā
āDahlia, seriously,ā Auror Zhao sighed deeply. āDonāt worry Mr. Diaz. Merpeople live under water, vampires tend to keep to themselves, and werewolves are only dangerous one night a month. I actually had a werewolf professor one year, and I have to say, he was one of my favorite professors I had in school.ā
Ā
āWellā¦thatās good,ā he wasnāt sure what to say about that at all. Did they like people like him or not?
Ā
āCool,ā Chris said as if it was the best thing heād ever heard, which definitely gave Eddie some hope about when he finally told Chris what he was, which should probably happen sooner rather than later since Chris was apparently a wizard or something.
Ā
āNow, we need to talk over some of the legal business,ā Auror Zhao explained, leaning forward. āAs weāve explained, we have to keep this all secret. No-maj people arenāt allowed to know of our world unless you are immediate family, like you. You mentioned a care-giverā¦a Carla Price?ā the woman checked a notebook in her pocket.
Ā
āCarla looks after me when Dadās at work,ā Chris explained.
Ā
āWell, we have to keep this a secret from her,ā Dahlia jumped in. āI know you trust her, but sheās not your immediate family, so we canāt tell her. Understand?ā
Ā
āCarla is extremely trustworthy,ā Eddie began because he was starting to get a really bad feeling about Buck who had seen Chris use magic.
Ā
āHas she seen any of Chrisās accidental magic?ā Auror Zhao asked in interest.
Ā
āNo,ā Chris shook his head firmly.
Ā
āWhat would you do if she had?ā Eddie asked slowly. āYou wouldnāt like arrest her or something?ā
Ā
āMerlin no,ā Auror Zhao shook her head. āIt depends on what she saw, usually, no-maj people just think it was a trick of the light, but if it was very obvious, we would call in an obliviator. They only wipe the memory of the magic; it doesnāt hurt and wonāt affect any other memory.ā
Ā
That still soundedā¦well, terrible.
Ā
āHas anyone besides you seen Chrisās accidental magic?ā Zhao asked. āThis is very important Mr. Diaz. They wonāt get in trouble, but we must assess the danger to our community.ā
Ā
āWell, Buck did, but he doesnāt count,ā Chris said, and Eddieās heart dropped. He had just decided he was absolutely going to lie and not tell them about Buck. Hell, he hadnāt had a chance to talk to Buck yet between all of Chrisās nightmares and Buck getting ready to head back to work and preparing for this meeting.
Ā
āBuck isā¦?ā Dahlia prompted.
Ā
āDadās partner,ā Chris said with a grin, and ok, maybe Eddie could spin this. He just had to get control of the narrative. They'd said immediate family, right?
Ā
āYes, Buckās my partner,ā he said firmly, it wasnāt a lie at all, but he knew they were going to interpret it in a different way than his son had meant. Chris had meant they were work partners, but if these people interpreted that as Buck being Eddieās romantic partner, then all the better for not having any of Buckās memories wiped. āThat makes him our family.ā
Ā
āOh, yesā¦we are very inclusive in the magical world,ā Dahlia firmly nodded enthusiastically. Well...that sounded good...
Ā
āWe would insist on meeting him though,ā Zhao cut her off. āI must explain to him just as I've explained to the two of you. If weād known you had a partner, we would have insisted he be at this meeting as well.ā
Ā
āBut thatās not why I said Buck doesnāt countā¦ā Chris started, but Eddie knew he needed to cut this off before whatever his son was about to say. He couldnāt make it sound like Eddie and Buck only worked together or whatever he was going to say. Heād never forgive himself if anyone did any tampering with his best friendās memories.
Ā
āIāll call him. Iām sure heāll be right overā¦uhā¦he was just, uh, out at the store,ā Eddie said quickly, already pulling out his cellphone and glad Buck had gotten his replaced after the tsunami already. He hoped that they didnāt notice that Buck didnāt live with him. After a quick glance at the walls though, Eddie had an uncomfortable realization that it actually did look like Buck lived with him based on him being in many of the family pictures on the walls, the LAFD sweater with āBuckleyā across the back hanging with the coats, and the fact that Buck knew his kitchen much better than Eddie did.
Ā
That was definitely something heād have to pick through another day. Eddie hit Buckās name under his āFavoritesā tab in his phone and listened to it ring.
Ā
āHey, Eds. Whatās up?ā Buck answered almost immediately in a bright tone as if talking to Eddie made his day.
Ā
āHey, Buck,ā he weighed what to say. How did he tell Buck he needed to come over and pretend to be his fake-husband for the afternoon and learn about magic? There was absolutely no way to say that in front of these women, so he gave up.
Ā
āHey, could you come home for little bit? We need to have that conversation weāve been putting off,ā he said, hoping that Buck caught him asking him to come āhomeā and not over to their house. Maybe it would give him a clue?
Ā
āOh, yeah, sure,ā Buckās voice was tense, and Eddie could understand that. Chris having magic was a little scary, especially since Buck didnāt have being a vampire like Eddie did to know the supernatural existed before all this. āIāll be right over.ā
Ā
Buck was always so good about that. He had come over at 1am just two nights before when Chris had a bad nightmare and had been calling out for him. Eddie really didnāt know what he would do without Buck, so this absolutely had to work. He couldnāt handle Chris going off to a magical school all alone; he needed Buck by his side with all his memories.
Ā
Eddie made everyone coffee and found the cookies Chris liked so much and that had gotten them into this mess. Heād just passed them out to everyone when Buckās key scraped in the lock, and he walked right in just as Eddie knew he would. They never knocked anymore, and heād been counting on that to sell him as Eddieās romantic partner to these magical people. Ā
Ā
āHey, Diazes! Howās my superman doing?!ā Buck happily called out until he walked into the sitting room and stopped immediately in his tracks.
Ā
āHarry?ā Auror Zhao had stood up immediately with a stick in her handā¦a stick Eddie now knew was a wand! Eddie stood too, feeling danger but not knowing from what.
Ā
āBloody hell,ā Buck sighed, his voice suddenly taking on a British accent for some reason. What was happening? Eddie faltered, not knowing where to turn his attention.
Ā
āHarry Potter, you are under arrest,ā Auror Zhao held her wand up but it shook as if she were afraid or overwhelmed or something.
Ā
Buck looked over at Chris and Eddie saw it, Buck gave in. Whatever was going on, all fight left his friend with that glance at Chris. Buck held his hands in the air immediately.Ā
Ā
āIāll come easily and not cause any problems, just donāt do anything to put Chris in danger,ā he said, and Eddie hadnāt even processed that Chris could be in danger. He walked over and stood directly in front of Chris. He didn't know what was happening in the slightest, but if anything did happen, he would protect Chris at all costs.
Ā
āWhatās going on?ā He asked everyone. "Why are you arresting Buck? And who is Harry Potter?!"
Ā
Dahlia seemed just as confused as he was, but she was now holding her wand as well. āH-Harry P-Potter?!ā She gasped out, definitely recognizing the name.
Ā
āI make it a point to never ask the odds anymore,ā Buck sighed deeply in that British accent and gave the auror a wry and fond look. Did they know each other? They must if she recognized him, right? āBut really, what are the odds that an ex of mine who I last saw in bloody Scotland would be an auror here in LA and doing a school visit for a muggleborn?ā
Ā
āKnowing you...I'd never ask that question," she actually smiled to Eddie's surprise. "I actually live in New York now, but Iāve been traveling with Professor Arbor for all the visits,ā the woman shrugged, and Eddie saw her look, it wasnāt fearā¦it wasā¦concern, concern for Buck. Now Eddie was really worried. He'd been worried before, but if she was arresting him and concerned about him, something bad was going on here...
Ā
āCho, you know I didnāt do it, right? I couldn't,ā Buck, or maybe Harry asked. āIām innocent. You have to believe me, you know me.ā
Ā
āYeah, Harry, I know,ā she said, but didnāt lower her wand, and Buck didnāt lower his hands. āI still have to bring you in though. A lot of people want to ask you a lot of questions. You can't run forever, and you'll get a much fairer deal here than most anywhere else.ā
Ā
āAre they going to send me back to Kingsley?ā He asked, and it was the first time Eddie caught any quiver in Buckās voice, and Eddie really didnāt like it at all. Buck shouldnāt sound afraid. Heād just faced a tsunami and save Eddieās kid! Eddie suddenly wondered what chance a vampire had against two magical people. He might even have tried out his chances if Christopher weren't in the room. Buck had been right, they had to make this go smoothly for Chris.
Ā
āNot if I have anything to say about it,ā Auror Zhao said, or maybe it was Cho. Eddie breathed slightly easier. He had no clue who this Kingsley was, but Buck had looked afraid, and that had him afraid too.
Ā
āIāve kept in touch with George. He told me what happened," Zhao added with a sad smile.
Ā
āAh,ā Buck nodded and let the woman put handcuffs on him. āYou look good, Chang. Haven't aged a day,ā Buck grinned that grin he did that always got him accused of flirting.
Ā
āItās Zhao now, married two years ago,ā she showed him a ring that he appreciatively oohed and aahed over even while handcuffed, it was just such a Buck think to do that Eddie couldnāt believe he was maybe not really Buck at all. "You look good too. I like the blond hair. I always did like blonds."
Ā
āHarry Potter!ā Dahlia squeaked out again. āBut heās a terrorist!ā
Ā
āWho did what exactly? What proof of any crime have you seen?ā Auror Zhao raised an eyebrow at the woman. āI learned early in life to not believe anything the papers write or the British Ministry for Magic says. Itās why I live in New York now,ā she added with a long-suffering look to Buck who nodded in what looked like complete understanding.
Ā
āBuck, are you in trouble?ā Chris asked in a small voice. āDid I get you in trouble?ā
Ā
āNo, buddy,ā Buck assured him, and Eddie felt the anger that had been rising in him at Buck for not telling him any of this start to seep away. āI made a very powerful person angry a while ago, and I knew I couldnāt run foreverā¦I just thought I had a little more time,ā Buck breathed out at the end, and all the rest of Eddieās anger was gone.
Ā
āDo you need a lawyer? My cousin Manuel is a lawyer,ā Eddie offered because heād just gotten his best friend arrestedā¦his friend who sounded like he was in troubleā¦butā¦why was he running from magical people. And, oh yeah, a non-magical person like Manuel probably couldnāt defend a magical person, could he?
Ā
āWe donāt really do solicitors in the magical world for criminal matters. We have other ways of getting at the truth,ā Buck turned sad, blue eyes on him. āCould you call Josh and tell him what happened?ā
Ā
Eddieās eyes narrowed. āWhy notā¦?ā
Ā
āJust let Josh, know, ok?ā Buck cut him off with a look. Right, so Buck didnāt want these women to know about Maddie. Why? Did they not know he had a sister?
Ā
āSo, youāreā¦?ā Eddie motioned between Buck and everyone else in the room. Draculaās balls, but he was surrounded by these mages, wasnāt he?! Waitā¦did that mean Josh was too?! What about Maddie?!
Ā
āIām really sorry, Eddie. Iām so sorry, Chris,ā Buck looked between both of them but not expanding any further.
Ā
āCome on, Harry,ā Auror Zhao pushed him towards the door. āBetter get this taken care of. Iāll stay with you as long as theyāll let me.ā
Ā
Dahlia stood. āWellā¦um, soā¦weāll be in touch about Christopherās educationā¦and um, well, Harry Potterā¦ā she trailed off like Eddie really should know who she was talking about when he only knew Buck. Did he know Buck?Ā
Ā
āOh, Eddie!ā Buck paused in the doorway, making Auror Zhao run into him with a huff.
Ā
āTell Bobby Iām going to need more time offā¦maybe donāt mention I was arrested?ā Buck winced. āErā¦if Iām not deported, I should be back, right?ā
Ā
āI donāt really know, Harry,ā the auror said sadly.
Ā
āJust tell Josh, heāll know what to do,ā Buck said instead. Eddie knew this was somehow code for Maddie, but he still didnāt know why unless she would get in trouble for harboring himā¦Buck was a wanted fugitive, wasnāt he? Thatās what this was. Butā¦why?!
Ā
Everyone left and Eddie heard odd pops outside his house as he sank down onto the couch beside Chris. How did everything fall apart so quickly? Did he just lose his best friend? Was Buck going to prison for terrorism or something? Who was Buck? Who was Harry Potter?
Ā
āThatās what I was trying to say earlier,ā Chris said with a sniffle. āBuck didnāt count because he has magic too. It's how he saved me in the tsunami.ā
Ā
Eddie closed his eyes and let his head drop to the back of the couch. What had he just witnessed? Why hadnāt Buck said he was in trouble? Was his name really Harry? Was he actually British? Why hadnāt Buck ever said anythingā¦?
Ā
And Eddie had never told him he was a vampire eitherā¦
Ā
He let out a breath. Buck had been in trouble, and magic was a secret. Of course, he wouldnāt tell Eddie, just like Eddie had never told him. Maybe they werenāt as good of friends as Eddie thoughtā¦but then, Buck had given up immediately and not fought back because Chris was there. And Buck had saved his son. And Buck had told Chris about his magic and told him it was nothing to be scared of when he was the first person to see it. He had taken care of Chris when he needed him the most, even when it would put him in danger from other magical people. And maybe Eddie loved him even more now, even with all the lies.
Notes:
Up Next: Buck is gone, and Eddie is having a little crisis...
Chapter 13: Eddie's Bad Week
Notes:
(See the end of the chapter for notes.)
Chapter Text
āI just donāt understand why he was so insistent that I call you and not Maddie. Shouldn't I have called his sister?ā Eddie sighed in frustration after explaining to Josh what had happened with Buck. He hadnāt even had Joshās phone number and had to call Chimney to get it. It would have been so much easier to explain to Maddie who would hopefully know what was going on already. After getting Buck arrested, Eddie was going to do his damndest to respect his friendās wishes now.
Ā
A long moment of silence stretched out without any comment. āJosh?ā Eddie prompted. āYou still there?ā
Ā
āYeah,ā a deep breath exhaled into the phoneās speaker. āIām just freaking the fuck out right now Diaz! You really donāt realize how big of a deal this is!ā
Ā
Eddie winced because heād already figured that out. With the way the Dahlia woman was acting, it sounded like whatever Buck was accused of was very well known. Dios! They were looking for him in America when whatever it was he was accused of happened in England! It had to be really bad.
Ā
āBut you do knowā¦ā Eddie prompted, sitting on his bed. Heād shut himself in his room so Chris couldnāt hear. If this got very concerning, he didnāt want Chris even more worried about their friend than he already was. āYouāre part of this magical world too, arenāt you?ā
Ā
āSort of,ā Josh said tensely. āIām like the opposite of your son. Heās a magical person born to non-magical parents. Iām whatās called a squib, a non-magical person born to a magical family.ā
Ā
āOh,ā Eddie frowned. That sounded pretty terrible. It would have to suck to be born into a family of magic but you not be able to access it like they could.
Ā
āLook,ā Josh started again. āHe didnāt want to mention Maddie in front of the auror because sheās also a British citizen. Anyone who knows Buck, or rather Harry, would know who she is if you mention someone he calls a sisterā¦ā
Ā
āWaitā¦Maddie isnāt Buckās sister?!ā Eddieās brain had caught on the careful way Josh had worded that, and now he had to process that both of them were from another country, magical, and might not even be related. Just how many lies made up Buckās life anyway?!
Ā
āShe is in all the ways that matter,ā Josh said enigmatically. āRegardless, he was keeping her from being found out for āharboringā him and being sent back to England to face charges there. Buck is innocent of his crimes; Maddieās not innocent of hiding him and refusing to turn him in, even if he's found innocent.ā
Ā
Eddie just nodded and laid back on the bed, not even able to sit up anymore at everything hitting him. āThis Cho person seemed convinced Buck didnāt do whatever it was she was arresting him for. So, you believe her?ā
Ā
Josh snorted loudly. āEddie, you know Buck. Heās accused of conspiring to overthrow the government, and suspected terrorist activities,ā Josh said, and Eddieās eyebrows shot up. Even with all the lies, Eddie couldnāt believe why anyone in their right mind would think Buck would be involved in all that.
Ā
āBuckā¦well, Buck and Harry are really the same from all I've been told, even though I didn't know him before he was Buck. Itās not like heās putting on an act. Buck never lied to you about who he was as a person even if his backstory is different,ā Josh said the words that Eddie had needed to hear since his best friend had been led out of his house in handcuffs.
Ā
Eddie let out of a breath that didnāt help relieve any of his tension at all, actually it might be worse now that he knew he really and truly had gotten an innocent person arrested. āItās our fault he was arrested. I canāt believe he didnāt tell Chris to keep his magic secret or that he was in hiding or anything. Maybe Chris wouldnāt have told me Buck had seen him do magic if Buck had said to keep it secret.ā
Ā
āHe called me right after seeing Chris use magic that first time,ā Josh said to Eddieās complete surprise. āHe asked when MACUSA usually sends people to talk to the family of no-maj born kids to know how long he had before he had to run again, but he never once even considered asking Chris to lie for him to you or anyone else. He would never put a kid in that position, especially your kid.ā
Ā
āHe waited too long then; he should have run,ā Eddie said, glad that Buck had stayed even if Eddie also really wished heād run before all this happened. He just didnāt want to lose his best friend though. āDo you think he has any chance of being cleared? That Cho lady said heād get a fairer deal here than in England.ā
Ā
āThatās the truth,ā Josh said as if he really wanted to strangle someone. āIāll talk to Maddie as soon as I get off the phone with you. Her ex is still pretty plugged into the government in Britain, so maybe he can pull some strings or at least figure out whatās going on. I think Buck is extremely unlucky an old friend of his who could recognize him was at your house, but very lucky it was her who arrested him and not someone else who didnāt know him.ā
Ā
āAn ex,ā Eddie added. āHe said she was an ex of his.ā
Ā
āReallyā¦you said Choā¦like Cho Chang?ā Josh asked, surprising Eddie once more. Why would Josh know her?
Ā
āHe called her Chang once, but she said sheād gotten marriedā¦ā
Ā
āI didnāt know heād dated Cho Changā¦that wasnāt in his biography,ā Josh said to Eddieās complete confusion. āI wonder if that was before or after what happened to Cedricā¦ā
Ā
āWhat the hell man?!ā Eddie cut off his musing. āBiography?!ā
Ā
Josh laughed. āItās Buckās story to tell, but heās a little bit famous. Also...maybe don't tell him I read his biography.ā Why did Eddie get a feeling that was an understatement.
Ā
āIāll have Maddie stop by as soon as she hears anything but just keep doing your normal schedule and donāt mention what happened to anyone. Maddie will clear more time off with your captain or whatever needs to happen there. I think we should plan on him returning until we learn differently. You know how Buck is, his life is the 118.ā
Ā
Eddie did know. He knew that painfully well. āRight, thanks man. I can do that,ā Eddie nodded even though Josh couldnāt see him. He didnāt want to let Josh go yet. He needed more information.
Ā
āIs that why you broke up?ā Eddie found himself asking. He knew it was none of his business, but he needed to know. āBecause heās a fugitive?ā
Ā
Josh snorted a laugh. āNo, I actually didnāt learn that until after weād broken up. No, itās because heās a wizard. Thereās a lot of prejudice against my kind in the magical worldā¦which I want to be clear that Buck didnāt mind in the slightest and isnāt prejudiced at allā¦!ā
Ā
Eddie rolled his eyes. Of course, Buck wasnāt. Frankly, if Buck were actually planning on overthrowing a government, then Eddie would fully believe it deserved to be overthrown. Buck wouldnāt hurt a fly and was the most understanding and accepting person Eddie had ever interacted with, and that was including everyone else at the 118.
Ā
āItās just a lot to have to step back into that world for me,ā Josh sighed. āNot that Iām very far away from it now being friends with Buck and Maddie. Still, living with someone with magic is asking a little too much of my childhood trauma right now though.ā
Ā
āI get that,ā Eddie agreed, understanding childhood trauma. He knew he should tell Josh heās a vampire, but it was still difficult to admit out loud. And he definitely needed to tell Chris first. āIāll let you go tell Maddie now. Let me know if you hear any updates.ā
Ā
āWill do, and Eddieā¦donāt beat yourself up about this. You didnāt know, and Buck knew the risks of staying around,ā Josh said, not making Eddie feel any better about it though.
Ā
Eddie told Buckās ex goodbye and flopped back down on his bed. What the hell was he going to do now?! He had a shift in just over 12 hours, and he was going to walk into the 118 without Buck when he was supposed to be finally returning after everything that happened with the ladder truck. He had to walk out of his bedroom and explain to his son that his Buck was gone, and they didnāt know if heād be returning. How was Eddie supposed to do any of this?
Ā
Ā
Eddie frowned at the fancy blood bank in Beverly Hills he was forced to drive to after his shift. The shift had been rough. Maddie had apparently told Bobby that Buck was off in Australia because of a family emergency with their parents. Eddie had a very distinct feeling that not a single word of that held any truth in the slightest. If Buck and Maddie werenāt actually related, then what about Buckās parents? Were they in Australia? Were Maddieās? Were there any parents in Australia?
Ā
Bobby, Hen, and Chim relentlessly asked Eddie questions the entire shift about what was going on and what he knew. Chimney was freaking dating Maddie, so he really should be bothering his girlfriend about this, but apparently, Maddie was as tight-lipped about the thing as it came. Alsoā¦did Chimney know about Maddieās magic? Probably not, right? When did a person generally tell people about thatā¦when did Eddie tell people? He knew enough other supernatural people at this point that he probably should tell at least Chris and Maddie, but he didnāt know how to open that conversation in the slightest.
Ā
Then, after his shift, he had to drive all the way to Beverly Hills to this super fancy blood bank since the vampire services had moved yet again. He felt so out of place. The phlebotomistās shoes probably cost more than his rent, and that was definitely a Ferrari parked in the lot beside the building.
Ā
Raina grinned at him from the desk, looking just as deadly as she always did with blood-red nails, perfectly coiffed hair, and eyes that looked like they could poison you. āEddie, baby,ā her grin turned up another notch. āIām glad you found us.ā
Ā
āYou texted,ā he raised an eyebrow. Heād never given Raina his phone number⦠intentionally. It was actually good to get the moving text though or he would not have known where they were located this time. He just really hoped this didnāt end up with him having to change his phone number. Raina was...well...not someone he was going to be friends with any time soon.
Ā
āThe usual?ā She asked, already typing away. āOur prices have gone up.ā
Ā
Eddie paused in pulling out his debit card and winced. āHow much?ā
Ā
The price flashed across the card reader, and Eddie couldnāt breathe for a second. Heād had to buy Chris new crutches since his were lost in the tsunami, as well as new glasses since his broke, and now Chris was in therapy for all the nightmares from the tsunami. Then, on top of all this, his landlord had raised his rent when he signed his lease for the next year. He absolutely couldnāt afford this.
Ā
āSeriously?!ā He finally breathed out.
Ā
āWe just had a tsunami,ā Raina said with a look calling him an idiot. āThere is a massive blood shortage currently. Prices should be back down in a month, but this is what it is right now.ā
Ā
Eddie bit his lip and couldnāt even do any creative calculating for this. āJust one bag today,ā he finally said. That wouldnāt get him past a few days before he needed more blood. It was all he could afford and still pay their bills and feed Chris and pay for gas.
Ā
Raina rang him up, and Eddie swiped his card. He fought with himself all the way up until Raina passed the small cooler to him, but he was going to have to do the one thing heād promised himself heād never do ever since heād been changed.
Ā
āSo,ā he croaked out. He cleared his throat to try again. āSo, whatās the best club to pick up some willing blood donors at?ā
Ā
Raina looked positively lecherous at that question. āI knew youād eventually get there, Eddie-boy! It takes a good century to build up substantial vampire wealth. Supplementing your blood supply is really the only way to go until then. Here, let me write down my favorites. You want some company?ā
Ā
Eddie shook his head while the vampire woman scribbled a few names and locations of clubs and bars on a notepad. āI think itāll be less awkward if Iām picking up women without another woman around me, no offense.ā
Ā
āOh, none taken, hot stuff,ā Raina scratched a name off the list. āThen you donāt want the queer ones then. You might want to start with Plasma. Itās a vampire club, as in normies pretending to be vampire, not as in our actual kind. Itāll be kind of like training wheels. Those weirdos will be more likely to brush off a bite if you accidentally get caught.ā
Ā
Eddie took the list as if it were a loaded gun and was already regretting this decision. āI think Iād stand out in a vampire club, regardless of if I actually am one or not.ā
Ā
Raina looked him up and down assessingly. āJust wear black and eyeliner and leave your fangs out. Youāre hot enough no oneās going to question you much.ā
Ā
Eddie couldnāt help grimacing even more at that remark. He paused before turning, wondering if he could get any more information out of the woman. Frankly, he was wondering how much of an idiot he actually was by avoiding all things supernatural. Now that he was a part of the world and even his son was, maybe he needed to learn more about it all.
Ā
āHeyā¦um, Raina? Do you happen to recognize the name Harry Potter?ā He asked, not sure if he was hoping for her to know Buck or not. Mainly, he wanted to know how much of an understatement Josh's comment about him being famous was.
Ā
Rainaās eyes widened comically. So, definitely an understatement. Eddie was going to kill Buck after hugging him for full week once he returned.
Ā
āYou really are a baby vamp, arenāt you?ā She chuckled, not kindly at all. āItās a good idea to avoid any mages, sweet cheeks. They leave us alone if we leave them alone. I'd hate to see your pretty face after a run-in with an angry auror. Howeverā¦if you do ever see Harry Potter,ā she grinned, showing fangs. āYou tell him Iām in. Most of us are. If he wants vamp support, then all he has to do is ask.ā
Ā
Eddieās eyebrow shot up in shock. Ok, so Raina was definitely volunteering to join whatever terrorist organization Buck was accused of leadingā¦because, why? Because Buck, no Harry, was the one leading it? For the love of freaking Dracula! What had he gotten himself into?!
Ā
āJust a name I heard in passing,ā Eddie was already backing towards the door. "I really don't know anything at all. It just sounded important. I should go...and check out those clubs..."
Ā
āLet me know how it goes! Good luck, baby fang!ā Raina laughed, waving him off before turning back to her computer.
Ā
Eddie scurried out of the blood bank and to his truck. He had never had a one-night stand before. Heād never dated anyone besides Shannon! How the fuck was he going to go and pick up a random woman at a club? Dios mio, but he wished Buck was there to get advice from. Didnāt Chimney say that Buckās 1.0 days saw him picking up women left and right?
Ā
The one thing he absolutely did know though was that he was avoiding Plasma at all costs!
Ā
Ā
It took Eddie a week and him being hungry enough it was very concerning before he forced himself into the tightest shirt he owned and his nicest jeans. He asked his abuela to babysit Chris for the night, and actually drove to one of the clubs on Rainaās list. In that time, he hadnāt heard anything about Buck. Maddie had called just to say that her ex had asked around and had learned that Buck was being held at the MACUSA headquarters in New York, but she didnāt have any more substantial information than that for the moment. Eddie was getting a little frantic, and being hungry wasnāt helping in the slightest. Heād snapped at Chimney so many times that Bobby had actually pushed him towards the locker room and told him to take a cold shower at the end of their last shift.
Ā
With his vampire hearing, the music being blasted loud enough to wake the dead had him feeling nauseous from the moment the bouncer let him through the door. The lights were messing with his eyes too, flashing and making the room spin. He didnāt understand how a normal human did this, but as a vampire, he was probably going to be throwing up in the bathroom even before he had anything to drink. Maybe he was just too old for this? How old was Raina? 150? Yeah, maybe he shouldnāt go for that excuse.
Ā
Eddie went straight to the bar and ordered a bourbon to hopefully hide behind while he scoped out the patrons around him. Everyone was young and beautiful and looked so much more comfortable there than he did. He was on his second bourbon and starting to feel like a creeper staring at people before he noticed a woman looking his direction with an inviting smile on her face.
Ā
Ok, so maybe this wasnāt going to be quite as hard as he thought it was going to be. Eddie smiled back and sipped his drink. She was cute, beautiful even, but he still wasnāt sure how to go about this whole thing.
Ā
And then she was walking over. Shit! What did he do now?!
Ā
āHey, you here alone?ā The woman leaned against the high table Eddie was using as basically a shield from the rest of the club.
Ā
Eddie smiled, hoping smiling counted as flirting, right? āI could stand to not be alone anymore,ā he said, and where in Draculaās castle did that come from?!
Ā
The woman flipped her long, curly blonde hair over her shoulder, and Eddie had a strange flash of curly blond hair on someone elseās head. Someone much taller and more masculine than this woman. Eddie physically shook his head to get the image of Buck out.
Ā
āAmber,ā she held out a hand to him.
Ā
āEddie,ā he raised it to kiss instead of shaking it. āNice to meet you.ā
Ā
Ā
Eddie wasnāt really sure how he and Amber found themselves in the backseat of his truck. Heād intentionally not Ubered for this very reason though. It had all been a blur since sheād first walked over. His mouth had been saying things without his permission that heād only ever seen in the cheesy romance movies Shannon had made him watch. For some reason, Amber seemed to like that or at least be willing to go with it for the moment.
Ā
He justā¦well, this wasnāt doing a hell of a lot for him. It wasnāt that Amber wasnāt gorgeous, but he justā¦wasnāt attracted to her for some reason. He should be, right?! Was something wrong with him?
Ā
Amberās hand was down inside his pants before he could even really analyze why this wasnāt really working for him. And he did start to get hard at that. It justā¦didnāt feel right. He was so hungry though. He just had to push through this or maybe change things up a bit.
Ā
āHey,ā he stopped her with a smile that he hoped covered up his discomfort. āLet me take care of you instead,ā he said, sliding his own hand up her skirt. Actually, a bite to her inner thigh would be the least likely to be noticed later or for him to get caught doing it, especially if he was under her skirt.
Ā
āOh my God!!ā She exclaimed when he ran his tongue up her thigh to follow his hand. āWhere the hell have you been my entire life?!ā
Ā
Ā
Eddie was on his third shower since heād gotten home from the club. He hadnāt even really had sex with Amberā¦well, he did count oral sex, so yeah he had, but still. He shouldnāt feel like this, should he? He felt like heād used her. Yes, he was definitely not hungry anymore, but it was almost worse than being hungry. He didn't even know what this feeling was, but he didn't like it at all.
Ā
Besides that one moment when Amber had been feeling him up, he hadnāt been hard the entire time. When sheād tried to return the favor, heād just said he was good, that heād taken care of himself. She was beautiful, and nice, and had sweetly kissed him before jumping down out of his truck and heading back to the club, not noticing she was missing a little blood now. What was wrong with him?
Ā
Eddie scrubbed his arms again and then just leaned against the wall of the shower. He couldnāt do this again. Maybe he could eat bloody steaks instead? But no, animal blood didnāt do much for him at all. Heād just have to go into debt then. Raina said this was probably only for a month. He could pick up some extra shiftsā¦but how was he going to pick up extra shifts without Buck helping babysit Chris? Abuela and Pepa would help, but they would also worry. Heād figure this out; he had to.
Ā
Ā
Eddie was using his probably one not-hungry day to get as much done around the house as possible. Heād picked Chris up from Abuelaās and dropped him off at school that morning and was now frantically cleaning the floors and dusting and whatever he could do before he started to lose the energy he had. He really should have timed this better to be on shift at the firehouse when he wasnāt hungry, but he hadnāt realized he was going to swear off ever picking up someone at a club again the one time heād actually tried it.
Ā
He had started in on folding laundry when a knock at his front door stopped him. Eddie ran through who might be stopping by his house all the way to the door, which he opened to find Maddie Buckley holding a large cardboard box on one of her hips. She hadn't been on the list of people who would normally stop by.
Ā
āMaddie?ā He asked suddenly concerned at her being there. āIs it Buck? Did you hear anything?ā
Ā
āHey Eddie. Can I come in?ā Maddie smiled and motioned behind him. She looked a little tired, but not overly concerned, so Eddie relaxed slightly.
Ā
āYeah, of course,ā he opened the door wider and moved out of her way.
Ā
Maddie went straight to his living room and plopped the box on his coffee table. āRight, so I heard from Cho. Things are looking good right now. She wasnāt more specific than that, but thank Merlin, Harry was able to convince them to question him using Veritaserum, which means they know theyāre getting the truthā¦thatās like a truth serum that actually works,ā Maddie said, slipping into a British accent that had Eddie blinking and trying to catch up.
Ā
āOh, so does that mean theyāll let him go?ā He asked, relieved his friend was actually being heard. "Once they hear he didn't do it, right?"
Ā
āThey will, or Ron and I will get him out,ā she shrugged as if she hadnāt just off-handedly offered to break someone out of jail.
Ā
āRonā¦your exā¦ā Eddie was really trying to keep up.
Ā
Maddie smiled and shrugged. āWouldnāt be the first time we went on the run with Harry.ā
Ā
āThatās exceptionally concerning, you know that, right?ā Eddie crossed his arms and glanced in the box. Weirdly it contained a random pile of junk. Actually, that scarf looked like Henās that she wore over the winter, and he thought he saw a ball-cap with the Minnesota Twins on itā¦so probably Bobbyās.
Ā
āWhatās with the box?ā
Ā
Maddie shoved some things around and began to dig through it. āWell, since Harry is gone, I decided to go ahead and do my yearly take-back of everything heās stolen. I may need to move it to bi-yearly, I think he's getting a little worse. Plus, if we have to run, we arenāt taking all this with us. Anyway, he tends to hoard things from his friendsā¦itās a long story actually.ā
Ā
āI donāt understandā¦ā Eddie cut off when Maddie shoved a Hot Wheels car and plastic dinosaur into his hands that were definitely Chrisās. Chris had never even missed them.
Ā
āI donāt think anything else was your kidās, but this is definitely yours,ā Maddie emerged from the box with a green t-shirt.
Ā
āThat little klepto!ā Eddie grabbed his old army t-shirt from her. It was his absolute softest shirt, and heād thought the dryer had eaten it or something. Itād been missing for at least a month or two at this point.
Ā
Maddie gave him a sheepish smile. āYeahā¦so Iām pretty sure heās been wearing it often around his loft too, soā¦sorry about that.ā
Ā
Eddie frowned at the shirt, not understanding in the slightest why his friend would take things from them. āBuck steals our stuff? Why?ā
Ā
āNot really,ā Maddie rubbed her neck, clearly trying to rephrase this so heād understand. āItās useful to have something from people you care about to add them into your wards or cast protection wards around their homes, and Harry is anal about wards. He added you to his wards really early on after he met you, so you can enter the loft whenever you want. That key you have is just a prop, you donāt actually need it to enter. Also, he cast a low-level ward around your house to keep people meaning violence away from your home. Iām actually surprised Cho didnāt notice it, but Harry is very good with wards at this point.ā
Ā
āReally?ā Eddie frowned, his heart feeling full all of a sudden at Buckās thoughtfulness in trying to take care of them.
Ā
āYeah, Harry takes it to a bit of an extreme though. Throughā¦various circumstances,ā she grimaced, and Eddie knew there was a backstory there. āHarry has lost or had taken from him almost everything he had from his family and the people he lost. Now, he kind ofā¦well, just holds onto things.ā
Ā
Eddie didnāt even think about; he handed the shirt right back to Maddie. āPut this back in his drawer then. If you run, I want him to have it in case we meet again, ok?ā
Ā
Maddie gave him a sad smile but did take the shirt back. āEddie, I have a feeling youāre never actually going to be rid of Buck no matter where we run or what happens.ā
Ā
That soothed something deep within Eddie. He sat on the couch and ran a hand over his face. āHow are you holding up, Maddie?ā
Ā
āMy real name is Hermione. And Iām holding up, mainly keeping busy and calling in favors from old school friends who may have any useful information,ā she sat beside him and patted his arm. āYou are welcome to keep calling me Maddie though.ā
Ā
āAnd you arenāt really Buck, or Harryās, sister?ā
Ā
āI think heād like you to keep calling him Buck too,ā she chuckled. "He isĀ Buck to you."
Ā
āAnd wellā¦Iām as close to a sister as heās going to get,ā she shrugged. āBuck is an orphan with no family. Weāve been close since we were kids though and in boarding school together.ā
Ā
āOhā¦ā Eddie trailed off, not even knowing what to say about that. He did have a burning question though. āWhy would anyone think Buck of all people could be a part of a terrorist group?!ā
Ā
Maddieās lips pursed and she turned more towards him. āLook, Eddieā¦some things I think you need to hear from Buck and not me. However, the basics of all this is that we trusted someone we really shouldnāt have. After the war, well, we wanted to trust people again, especially the people who fought with us.ā
Ā
Eddie leaned back away from her in surprise. āWar?ā
Ā
Maddie nodded slowly. āRightā¦more information. There was a magical war Buck, me, and my ex-husband Ron were all involved in.ā
Ā
Eddie firmly shook his head. āBuck would never fight in a war.ā Heād seen Buck pick up spiders and take them outside instead of squishing them. Heād never set out to hurt someone.
Ā
The look in Maddieās eyes was not encouraging. āEddieā¦Buck fought in the war, and then he joined the aurors, whichā¦our world is fairly small, so aurors are very much paramilitary in our society, and Buck was the top one.ā
Ā
Eddieās was having to re-think everything he knew. That just didnāt seem possible. āButā¦why?ā
Ā
āYou have to understand, Harry didnāt actually want any of that. He wasā¦basically what you would call a child soldier,ā Maddie said to Eddieās horror. What the hell?!
Ā
āHe was hunted from childhood by this psychopath who was trying to take over, and Harry ended the war by killing that monster. After that, well, heād saved everyone, and they just expected him to keep doing that. He didnāt really have a choice,ā Maddie explained. āHonestly, I think if he got to choose, then this, what he has at the 118, is his dream. There isnāt an equivalent of firefighter in our society. I think healer would be the closest, and there just isnāt enough adrenaline in that profession for Harry. He needs a little danger. Now thoughā¦ever since I followed him here, this has been the happiest Iāve ever seen him.ā
Ā
Eddie tried to let all that soak in. How had he gotten his friend so wrong. But had he really? He needed a very long conversation with his best friendā¦if Buck was ever able to return. What all had Buck been through? He was so much younger than Maddieā¦how had no one tried to protect him?
Ā
āBut heās so young stillā¦ā Eddie just looked at her helplessly. Something crossed Maddieās face that he couldnāt interpret.
Ā
āEddie, you need to talk to Buck about this, not me. I can tell you everything that happened, and I know weāre friends, but not like you and Buck. You need to hear it from him,ā she answered, and she was absolutely right.
Ā
Eddie nodded and felt so tired. All the energy heād had that morning was just gone. At least he wasnāt hungry.
Ā
āWhat about you?ā Maddie asked, leaning against the back of the couch and pinning him the most understanding look heād been given in a long time. āHow are you doing with all this? I know it's thrown you for a loop, especially with Chris being a part of our world. How is Eddie doing though?ā
Ā
Eddie opened his mouth to tell her he was perfectly fine but couldnāt bring himself to say the lie. He looked down and considered what he was willing to open up about. He wasnāt the best at letting people inā¦Buck excluded who had just barreled into his life like a hyper puppy and never left. Maddie had been a nurse thoughā¦right? Something was wrong with him, and he could use some help.
Ā
āYou were a nurse?ā He asked with a frown, wondering if her being a witch meant there was a different story there now.
Ā
āA healer actually,ā she nodded. āItās the magical version of a doctor. I specialized in magical creature health.ā
Ā
That knowledge brought Eddie up short. He was a magical creature...sort of, right? He wasnāt exactly willing to tell her that though. But stillā¦maybe she could help. He needed to be able to eat, and something was wrong.
Ā
āCan Iā¦can I ask you a very awkward and uncomfortable question?ā He winced. This was probably worse than telling her he was a vampire, but honestly, heād rather talk about this particular problem with Maddie than his regular doctor who he didnāt know well at all. Maybe that was weird, but he just knew she would be more understanding, and maybe able to magically help him.
Ā
Maddie just laughed. āYou got a questionable rash? Iām always good to check out a questionable rash. I might even have a safe potion you can use for itā¦depending on what it is at least. Soā¦we dropping trousers? You might want to close the curtains first,ā she motioned to the window.
Ā
Eddie couldnāt help his laugh. Something about Maddie just made him feel safe ever since sheād helped him clean off the blood in the bathroom after Buckās accident with the ladder truck. That and Maddie was dating Chimney. If anyone could put up with Chimney long-term, then they had the patience and fortitude of a saint.
Ā
āNot a rash,ā he laughed again. āItās justā¦well, I canāt reallyā¦well, not thatā¦ā
Ā
āHow about you start with when you first noticed whatever this problem is,ā she cut off his nonsensical ramblings.
Ā
Eddie took in a breath and nodded, starting over again. āOk, well, I think it was back when Shannon first came back into our lives. Weād never had any problems beforeā¦in bedā¦you know? We had plenty of other problems in our relationship.ā
Ā
āBut you did now?ā She prompted, no judgment at all on her face.
Ā
āNot exactly,ā he frowned. āItās justā¦I wasnāt really interested now. I didnāt feel a connection to her like I used to.ā
Ā
Maddie frowned slightly. āThat seems completely reasonable to me. She left you, and it had been a long time since you were together. She was essentially a stranger walking back into your life.ā
Ā
Eddie nodded slowly. āButā¦I went out and wellā¦I couldnāt really get interested in someone else eitherā¦like, I know she was gorgeous, but I justā¦wasnāt attracted to her.ā
Ā
Maddieās look didnāt shift in the slightest. āJust because someone is good looking, doesnāt mean you have to find them sexually attractive. It doesnāt sound like youāre describing a physical problem to me here. Itās not like you were sexually attracted to her and not able to do anything about itā¦Eddie, it sounds like you just didnāt want to do anything about it.ā
Ā
He winced because, yeah, maybe. āSomethingās wrong with me though, right?ā
Ā
āNot in the slightest,ā Maddie shook her head. āWhy do you think you have to be ready to sleep with anyone wherever and whenever?ā
Ā
Eddie didnāt know the answer to that. Justā¦well, he was a guy, right? But heād only ever been with Shannon, and he was single now. Wasnāt he supposed toā¦you knowā¦be out there or somethingā¦
Ā
Maddie sighed. āI really shouldnāt tell you this,ā she gave in. āI really think it will help though.ā
Ā
Eddie cocked his head to one side and waited out whatever moral obligation she was weighing. āI donāt think he would mindā¦no, he definitely wouldnāt,ā she finally nodded. āRight, so donāt ask the why because thatās invading my brotherās privacy much more than Iām willing to do, but Buck 1.0 never existed.ā
Ā
āUhā¦what?ā Eddie frowned. He knew that was Chimneyās shorthand for back before Eddie had joined the station and Buck had been a little wild.
Ā
āOk, so maybe thatās a bad way of putting it because my brother did sleep around a lot back in the day, but not when he moved out here and joined the 118,ā Maddie continued to his confusion. āAs far as I know, and my brother is actually too chatty about his love-life, so I do actually knowā¦heās only slept with Abby since he moved here.ā
Ā
āButā¦why?ā He asked and rolled his eyes at Maddieās look at him for asking the one question she told him he couldnāt. āFine, but how does this pertain to my situation?ā
Ā
Maddie gave him a fond look now that Eddie wasnāt sure he deserved after getting her brother arrested. āThere are a lot of reasons for not jumping into bed with everyone who crosses your path. Thatās not a requirement of being a single guy in LA. Buck had his reasons, and Iām sure you have your own. Maybe youāre just looking for the right person, or maybe youāre demisexual or something. Or maybe you just donāt like one-night stands. It doesnāt have to be more complicated than that.ā
Ā
Right, so Maddie was basically telling him to get a therapist. That was just great. He couldnāt afford the copay for a therapist.
Ā
āThanks Maddie,ā he said because that actually did help a hell of a lot with his own personal crisis. He didnāt even know why he was beating himself up about this so much. In the grand scheme of his problems though, it still didnāt help him get blood. He was still going to be hungry.
Ā
āAnd Eddieā¦if you ever need anything, Iām happy to help you,ā she said, squeezing his hand once. That was niceā¦he really needed blood though. She couldnāt help him with that.
Ā
Ā
āDiaz! Come spot me!ā Lena Bosco ordered as she walked past Eddie towards the stationās gym. Eddie quickly shut his laptop where heād been looking up the term Maddie had usedā¦demisexual. It wasā¦he really didnāt want to admit it right now, but yeahā¦maybe she was onto something there. Again, that complicated Rainaās way of getting blood at least though.
Ā
He grumbled all the way down to the gym and did help spot Bosco. Sheād thankfully agreed to stay on at the station and put off going back to the 136 while Buck was away at his āfamily emergency,ā and she was great, but she wasnāt his best friend. Eddie missed Buck like a missing limb.
Ā
āWho peed in your cheerios?ā She asked, startling Eddie who had zoned out completely.
Ā
āHuh? What? Iām fine,ā he sighed and set the weights back in the rack.
Ā
āDude, youāve been walking around like you want to punch someone for a week now. Whatās up? Seriously?ā She asked, and she actually did seem to care.
Ā
Eddie tiredly leaned against the rack holding the punching bag. He was hungry again. āIām having some financial difficulties. I think Iām going to have to pick up a second job. No one is asking for shift covers right now for some reason. Shouldnāt people be going on vacation or something? Itās the summer!ā
Ā
Bosco looked at him with a small frown on her face as if trying to figure something out. āYou were Army, right?ā She eventually asked.
Ā
Eddie had absolutely no idea where this was going. āUh, yeahā¦?ā
Ā
āYou trained in fighting there, right? Like MMA?ā
Ā
Eddieās eyebrow shot up. āYes, yes I did.ā
Ā
āGreat! Youāre coming with me tonight,ā she smiled at him broadly. āDonāt spread it around, but I know a way to make some fast money. You get paid if you win or lose, but much more if you actually win.ā
Ā
Wellā¦this sounded a whole lot better than going to a club.
Notes:
Up Next: Buck's bad week...or maybe not so bad...
Chapter 14: Buck's Return
Notes:
I've updated the chapter count. This is definitely a guess, but I feel pretty good about it.
(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)
Chapter Text
āSoā¦muggle hair dye?ā Cho asked conversationally while she waited with Harry in the MACUSA portkey office for the contingent of aurors to meet them and probably start in on his interrogation. The office was currently empty because they didnāt want to put any of the civilian workers in ādangerā around such a āviciousā wanted terrorist.
Ā
āClearly blue contact lenses. But how in Merlinās name did you get rid of the scar? You didnāt like burn your forehead or something, did you?ā She continued as if they werenāt waiting on a bunch of people who probably wanted to toss him to the nearest dementor or into whatever Americaās version of the Veil was.
Ā
Harry chuckled, doing his best to compartmentalize his rising anxiety. āCho, you just saw meā¦what was it?...four years ago at the anniversary? I already had my eyes fixed by then.ā
Ā
āWell, excuse me for not remembering you tossing your glasses when I was in the middle of moving continent and getting a new job,ā she fondly scoffed at him. āPlus, the blue lenses donāt have to be corrective. So, what is it then if not that? Your appearance isnāt different enough for Polyjuice, and I donāt know any glamours that are this good.ā
Ā
Harry smiled and decided it was probably the end of his hiding anyway. All his secrets were coming out, especially because there was no way he was going to let them send him back to England without a Veritaserum questioning if he had anything to say about it. Plus, if he was able to escape, he didnāt want more people than necessary to see his āBuckā look in case he wanted to use it again. Soā¦he breathed out and let go of his changes.
Ā
āMorganaās tits!ā Cho gasped and dramatically slapped his shoulder where he was still standing there handcuffed. āHow did no one fucking know youāre a metamorphmagus?! I feel like that would have come up during the war if not during the tournament. Is that how you got away with sneaking around all the time?ā
Ā
Harry gave her a sheepish smile, shrugging his wild hair over a shoulder. āEr, well, Iām really not that powerful since I canāt change my bone structure or anything, but Iāve been getting a lot of practice in as you can imagine, so my abilities have expanded quite a lot. Back at Hogwarts, I only knew I could change the length of my hair, so that was pretty much all I ever used it for back then. It was a little terrifying when I saw what my hair actually looked like after not having gotten a haircut for over two decades. I think I screamed like Malfoy when my patronus chased him down that one time.ā
Ā
Cho snorted a laugh. āOnly you Harryā¦ā her amusement suddenly washed off her face for a deep sadness. āLook, Iām sorry about Kingsley. Iāve mentioned my suspicions to my co-workers a lot over the past few years out of sheer indignation. They know none of this makes sense. I thinkā¦I think you can get them to listen. Iāve laid the groundwork anyway. Plus, they already all know how you were maligned over the war and made Undesirable Number One then, this all tracks with things done to you in the past.ā
Ā
āDo you think I can get them to listen with some Veritaserum?ā He asked pointedly. āChoā¦Iāll spill any secret they want to know about the war or British ministry at this point as long as they donāt send me back. Please, you canāt let them send me back to Kingsley. Iād rather be thrown in prison here than sent back to England.ā
Ā
He was shocked that he actually meant every word. Not too long ago, he would have done everything in his considerable power to keep the secrets of the war like the horcruxes and the hallows. Even after the war he had dangerous secrets, like there were several classified missions he really shouldnāt be the only person alive who retained the knowledge of, but definitely wasā¦and Kingsleyā¦probably the only thing that could get him to spill all those secrets would be Veritaserum.
Ā
āMr. Potter,ā a stern-looking older man with bifocals, hair almost as blond as Malfoyās, and a mustache that should have stayed in the 1970s said when he entered the room flanked by a whole group of red-robed aurors. It was a little flattering how many aurors they thought they needed to bring him in. āI think you have a strong case to request a lawyer to mockup an interrogation contract before your Veritaserum questioning actually.ā
Ā
That surprised Harry because solicitors were usually kept out of criminal proceedings because of the use of pensieves, Veritaserum, and binding magical contracts. A questioning contract was one of the few times they were allowed, at least in Harryās experience in England, and only when the aurors believed they were going to uncover very dangerous or politically sensitive knowledge. Which they definitely were if they were going to question Harry, but still, that meant that at least on some level they believed Choās suspicions that he may not actually be in the wrong. He didnāt want to hope just yet, but he was starting to head that way.
Ā
In the face of being questioned, Harry felt himself falling back into Harry Potter the auror and further away from Evan Buckley the firefighter. Actually, Buck would probably have done it too, but whatever. He smiled at the man with a little flirtatious wink. It was a character he fell into to make people comfortable around him, the same as Ron played up the buffoonā¦which had led to most of Buck 1.0ās lore even beyond the lies heād told to push away his team. Anyway, time to play with these aurorsā¦
Ā
āWell, hello handsome, I do always like to know the names of my dates though, it makes things so much easier, so you areā¦?ā He asked the man. At least two aurors behind him snorted a laugh, and Cho rolled her eyes.
Ā
āI swear, Barclay, he had absolutely no game in school,ā Cho assured the auror who was probably her boss. āIf he doesnāt behave, Iāll tell you all about our first and only date.ā
Ā
Harry fake gasped. āI counted the Christmas thing as our first date. You hurt me, Cho.ā
Ā
She wasnāt amused. āBehave.ā
Ā
āFineā¦Itās good to meet you Auror Barclay and assembled minions,ā Harry grinned at the group.
Ā
Barclay wasnāt amused either, even though the man to his left was probably Harryās new best friend since he was still chuckling at the jokes. If Harry had to escape, heād make sure it wasnāt on that particular aurorās watch. It was only fair.
Ā
āMr. Potter, you do realize how serious this is,ā Barclay glared. Harryās carefully held anxiety was really trying to break through all his many layers of Occlumency to hide it.
Ā
āSir, I know exactly how serious this is. I was Head Auror by the time I was 27, overthrew 2ā¦no 3 dark lords if weāre being generousā¦the last one only had like 5 followers, so Iām not sure he counts,ā he told Cho who rolled her eyes at him again before looking back at her supervisor.
Ā
āAnd if all that wasnāt enough, my godfather was wrongfully accused and sentenced to maximum security prison for 12 years and then hunted until his deathā¦not to mention that I was literally almost killed by my own ministry when I was 15, hunted by them for an entire year when I was 17, and now the literal leader of my nation actively tried to kill me once, almost killed me several more times, and is trying to have me imprisoned for the rest of my life because he couldnāt handle me dumping himā¦so yeah, I understand, but also you donāt get to control how I cope to keep myself sane,ā he added with a dark look at the auror who looked slightly less irritated and a fraction more impressed at his honesty.
Ā
Auror Barclay gave him a short nod. āI suppose you have a point thereā¦now, do you have a lawyer, or should we provide you with one? Iād like to get a move on with your questioning.ā
Ā
Harry couldnāt help his wide grin. āI definitely doā¦I have to warn you though, my solicitor is Sidhe.ā
Ā
At least five of the aurors swore violently at that. The Sidhe bank was very full-service though. It was one of the main reasons heād picked it over the vampire bank even with the extra danger of them always trying to get a person to sign their life and freedom away. There were definitely worse ways to go at the very least.
Ā
Barclay held a hand out and took Harryās wand from Cho and his go bag that he carried whenever he wasnāt on shift. Well, he took the holly wand Harry still carried on him when he wasnāt at the fire station. Harry could call the Elder Wand whenever he wanted, but he wasnāt about to tell them that. And, if they thought they were going to get past the wards on his bag, then they best have an expert ward-breaker on staff because Harryās paranoia had paranoia at this point.
Ā
āWe will fire call the bank for you. Who is your assigned Sidhe representative?ā He asked, all business. Barclay really was no fun, very Terry Boot vibes in an interrogation, nothing like Ron or Harry. Different strategies, but they were all pretty effective.
Ā
āDarragh,ā Harry told him simply. His account manager/solicitor was not going to be happy to be called away from the Sidhe realm on short notice, but he was very well compensated, so heād get over it. With a dismissive wave, Barclay left his aurors who pulled and pushed Harry down a dark hallway and through several empty offices towards a very sad and boring interrogation roomā¦as they all were really no matter what country. Cho stayed with him the entire time and even slouched against one grey wall when they were finally left alone.
Ā
āYou think Iām going to run or something?ā Harry asked, because he just might, and he really didnāt want to get Cho in trouble if he did.
Ā
She shrugged. āProbably, but mainly I asked to stay with you to make sure you arenāt getting shuffled off to an international portkey without at least checking your story firstā¦plus, I think that theyāre hoping that having me, whoās still a British citizen, in attendance will keep this from becoming some kind of international incident.ā
Ā
Harry snorted wryly. āGood luck with that. Iāve never been very good at preventing those.ā
Ā
āAh, France,ā she nodded knowingly. Heād actually been thinking the Quidditch World Cup, but yeah, France was more his fault, she had him there. āJust how did you end up breaking into the Louvre and getting away with it?ā
Ā
āClassified,ā he smirked. That was actually dark lord number three and his five followers he and Ron were after. The French Police Nationale were really quite appreciative after the international incident thing was smoothed over. Actually, that was right when heād first started dating Kingsley and things were still good. Kingsley had really gone to bat for him then.
Ā
āSo, tell me about this new bloke? He treat you well?ā Harry asked with more sincerity than most of what heād said since portkeying to New York. He and Cho might not have kept in touch, but he did still view her as a friend and wanted her happy.
Ā
Cho smiled, and it was all Harry needed to know. Heād never smiled like that about Kingsley, ever. āAdam is actually pretty wonderful. I think even Cedric would approve,ā she said, and yeah, that was high praise. Her smile turned into a smirk then. āAt least heās never ditched me on Valentines Day for another girl.ā
Ā
āHa, ha,ā Harry smiled, still a little embarrassed for his teenaged self. He really didnāt have any game back then, she was very right. āIt was for that Quibbler interview if you remember.ā
Ā
āYeah, yeah, whatever you have to tell yourself,ā she just shot back fondly. āLong as you donāt do the same thing to your hottie of a partner. I hate to see sexy men cry.ā
Ā
āEddie would never take me to any place as cheesy as Madam Puddifootās,ā Harry scoffed, getting a real laugh from Cho. Actually, it would probably be really fun if he and Eddie did go because theyād both get a kick out of making fun of it the entire time they had tea and tiny sandwiches. Then theyād go to a pub or something for real food. Waitā¦Cho meant work partner, right? It didnāt sound like she had thoughā¦
Ā
āIt really was bad, wasnāt it? Merlin, those cherubs!ā She shook her head chuckling.
Ā
The door opened a few minutes later, and Auror Barclay held it for the tall Sidhe man whose slightly green skin stood out much more under the harsh lighting of MACUSA. āSir Harry,ā Darragh gave him a long-suffering look, clearly calling him an idiot for getting arrested.
Ā
āDarragh,ā he nodded and just grinned. Darragh would take care of this, he trusted the man and his extreme competence. Well, if he didnāt end up selling the guy his life and liberty or something, but hey, at least he wouldnāt be sent back to Kingsley. Darragh would most likely treat him well.
Ā
Darragh tisked, and snapped his fingers, causing Harryās wild hair to immediately snap into what felt like a braid down his back. āMuch better. You looked like a stray kneazle. I canāt work under those conditions,ā he sat across the table and took out a ream of parchment. āNow, if you will all leave me and my client. I will call for you when the contract is finished.ā
Ā
āMACUSA requires me to check over any Sidhe contract before the prisoner signs,ā Barclay warned with a narrowed look at Darragh who sighed as if it was so very unprofessional for him to not be trusted but nodded anyway.
Ā
Harry nodded too; that was a very good policy. They hadnāt had that policy when he was an auror, but very few mages willingly agreed to work with the Sidhe when Gringotts was right there, so they hadnāt needed it. Realistically though, if Harry didnāt think he could reasonably get out of this, he probably would consider selling himself to the Sidhe. It would get him out of custody into another realm at least.
Ā
Cho finally left with her supervisor, and Darragh snapped again, vanishing Harryās handcuffs. Harry immediately rubbed his wrists and popped his back that had gotten very stiff. āThanks, you probably werenāt supposed to do that, but I appreciate it,ā he said settling back into his chair.
Ā
Darragh shrugged before tapping the parchment where the framework for a contract suddenly appeared. āIām almost positive you could have escaped at least four times before now if you werenāt hoping to prove your innocence. I may not agree with allowing yourself to remain in custody, but I can see the advantage of no longer being on the run.ā
Ā
Harry raised an eyebrow. āSix by my count actually. And yeah, that and I didnāt want to get Cho in trouble.ā
Ā
āWell, I make more money if you are out of prison and actively investing your significant funds, soā¦letās get started,ā Darragh smiled with his extra-sharp teeth and tapped a quill to the contract. āWhat areas of your knowledge are dangerous to national security or classified enough to get you into more trouble than youāre already in?ā
Ā
Harry sighed and rubbed his neck. āCan we just ban any questions about the war?ā
Ā
āIs anything relevant to your current troubles?ā
Ā
āAbsolutely not,ā Harry assured firmly, and Darragh wrote it in. No one needed to know about the horcruxes or hallows. There was way too much danger for anyone to hold that knowledge, himself included. He couldnāt exactly obliviate himself thoughā¦especially when he was now Master of Death.
Ā
Ā
By the time Darragh and Harry finished the contract, Barclay looked it over and made them change picky things, they wrote it again, and everyone finally signed, it was very late at night, and the MACUSA potion master had gone home for the evening. So, Harry was off to lock-up for the evening to wait to be interrogated until the next day. There were at least three more ways he could have escaped overnight, which he may be generous enough to tell the aurors about if he was allowed to remain in the country or at least not sent back to England.
Ā
On the positive side of things, Harry was allowed a fire call since he was being held overnight. He had to think really hard about who to call because who he really wanted to call was Eddieā¦who Cho seemed to think was his husband or somethingā¦he wasnāt sure how that had come about, but whatever, he wasnāt complaining. Anyway, Eddieās didnāt have floo access. Hermione was his next thought, but he didnāt want to get her pulled into this in case they realized sheād known where he was all this time. MACUSA knew she was in America because she was still taking classes at Ilvermorny, but they didnāt know she was in LA. Josh also didnāt have floo accessā¦so Ron it wasā¦
Ā
Ron sighed deeply when his head appeared in the green flames. āYou really do have the absolute worst luck, mate,ā he said dryly, which meant Eddie must have told Josh, who told Hermione, who had already contacted Ron. The friend grapevine was very fast.
Ā
Harry frankly agreed about his luck. āWell, I knew I couldnāt run forever, and at least it was Cho.ā
Ā
āShe still angry at you for the Valentines thing in fifth year?ā Ron asked with a frown.
Ā
Harry laughed. āNo mate, we put that behind us before the war even really got started. I havenāt seen her in about 4 years, but we always did pub nights after the anniversary speeches and glad-handing when you were off shagging Hermione or something. Thenā¦you knowā¦Kingsley happened, and she moved countryā¦soā¦ā
Ā
āYeah, I get it,ā Ron sighed. āBy the way, I checked MACUSAās floo connection, itās secure. They have warding around the magic of the connection.ā
Ā
Harry sighed in relief at his friendās assurance. Heād almost not called Ron because of that. International calls were always a little more secure than local ones since a person couldnāt travel through the connection, but still, the British Ministry could monitor them to an extentā¦unless MACUSA secured it on their end.
Ā
āI donāt have long,ā Harry heard the auror whoād laughed at his jokes shuffling his feet behind him. He really should learn the blokeās name. āMy Sidhe solicitor wrote up a contract, so I wonāt be spreading classified information and all, and Iāll be questioned under Veritaserum tomorrow.ā
Ā
āThatās really good news, Harry,ā Ron nodded firmly. They shared a look, clearly saying Ron would relay all this to Hermione. āNo whispers on my end yet of you being found. MACUSA has kept a good lid on all this surprisingly. Iām starting to think Chang might have had the right idea to jump ship and head over there.ā
Ā
āThank Merlin word hasnāt got out,ā Harry breathed out again. āOhā¦Teddyā¦ā he couldnāt say to tell Teddy that he might not be able to make his trip, not when there was an auror behind him.
Ā
Ron just nodded though. āHey, youāre innocent. This might not take long. Maybeā¦maybe nothing has to change?ā
Ā
Harry thought it was too optimistic to think heād be allowed to go back to his life in LA. If he somehow could though, heād grab onto that opportunity with both hands. Then, Teddy could come visit and look into that technomage he wanted to study under, and maybe move in with Harry in a year. And then there was Eddie and Chrisā¦and there was too much back in LA for Harry to leave now. He had to clear his name and make sure they would let him return to his life. He didnāt know how he was going to do that, but he needed to make it happen.
Ā
Ā
It took two days for Harryās questioning to finish up. There was a lot of arguing between the aurors about how to best word their questions, and every time Harryās Veritaserum wore off, they had to wait two hours before he could be given another dose. Harry hadnāt remembered feeling this drained since the war. Emotionally, mentally, and physically, he felt like he was at the end of his capabilities to continue.
Ā
Realistically, there wasnāt much the American aurors could do to a sitting British Minister of Magic (who had just won the freaking re-election, which was just great), but they asked the questions anyway. They asked Harry about things heād never told Ron or Hermione or anyone. They asked things, and Harry found himself saying truths he hadnāt been able to admit to even himself all these years. As much as Kingsley had destroyed him, Harry was now starting to realize just how much that actually was. Even bloody Auror Barclay looked ready to throw down for Harry, and Harry didnāt think the man had emotions until that moment. Cho was crying, and Harry couldnāt say anything to help her through his own tears.
Ā
āWell, we are absolutely not going to extradite you to England,ā Barclay firmly growled when Harryās last dose of Veritaserum wore off. āBeyond that, I canāt give you any definitives until I speak with the President of MACUSA. As much as we have been trying to avoid an international incidentā¦I donāt know how that is possible now. However, I will argue that you be granted political asylum. Whether she agrees or not though, weāll have to wait and see.ā
Ā
Harry let go of so much of the stress heād been holding onto now that extradition was off the table. Hopefully he wasnāt told to leave the country, but at least they werenāt planning to gift-wrap him and hand him over to Kingsley. āThank you,ā he told the man sincerely who gave him a firm nod of what looked like approval before he took all the paperwork and pensieve recordings and left the room, presumably to meet with the president.
Ā
āHarryā¦Iām sure Ron or Hermione have told you this, but you really need a mind-healer once all this is over with,ā Cho sank into Barclayās seat and leaned closer to him. āIāve been seeing someone since the war who has been helping, and I didnāt go through nearly as much as you didā¦and everything that happened afterā¦ā
Ā
Harry frowned and pulled over a piece of spare parchment and a ballpoint pen that the American aurors seemed to favor over quills, thank Merlin. He scribbled out a name and slid it over to her after only a moment of weighing if it was a good idea or not. āLook, I donāt want to incriminate myself, so take this as an anonymous tip, but you may want to look into this Dr. Wells, sheās a witch working as a muggle therapist. Sheās also the main reason Iām hesitant to try any type of therapy again.ā
Ā
Cho took the paper with a grim and angry look on her face that was clearly not directed at Harry. āShould I ask about you when I find her?ā
Ā
Harry shook his head. āShe will have no recollection of me as a patientā¦if you understand,ā he told her firmly. What sheād done was exceptionally illegal and unethical, but obliviating her was also illegal, and Harry was really pulling for that political asylum right now. āIām fairly positive my captain got her fired from the LAFD, but Iām not sure if sheās still practicing somewhere or not.ā
Ā
Cho slid the parchment into her pocket. āIāll look into it; you can trust me with this. Itās the least I can do.ā
Ā
āYou donāt owe me anything,ā Harry smiled at her as much as he could when his face felt chapped from all the crying heād been doing for two days straight.
Ā
Cho reached across the table and took one of his hands in both of hers. āHarryā¦we all owe you everything. You hear me. I donāt know how much the Americans can do about the situation in England, but you have to realize even they know now. We all owe you, and not just for Voldemort, but yeah, at the very least thatā¦.plus, those other two dark lords,ā she gave him a wobbly smile at the end.
Harry snorted a tired laugh. āEh, that last one doesnāt count.ā Cho chuckled with him, and they settled in to wait on whatever the President of MACUSA would decide.
Ā
Ā
Lock-up wasnāt that bad. Harry had a private room with three meals a day and a stack of quidditch magazines Cho had dropped off for him to catch up on all the games heād missed during his time on the run. Well, the food was very bland, the bed was hard, and the loo was in his room with no privacy, but still, heād been in worse prisonsā¦or really dungeons, but whatever.
Ā
Bureaucracy did not move quickly, but Harry wasnāt expecting it to. Really, the fact that it took almost a whole week for a decision to be made was faster than heād thought it would be. He knew Ron and Darragh were both checking in on him regularly, plus Cho, so maybe that was helping, but stillā¦for any type of government proceedings, that was really quick.
Ā
āThe President has authorized me to present you with a few options,ā Auror Barclay laid out three pieces of parchment on the table from where he was sitting across from Harry and Darragh who was invited back for legal support.
Ā
āAny of those options include political asylum?ā Harry asked, sliding the first contract closer to read it.
Ā
āAll of them,ā Barclay nodded firmly, finally giving Harry the hope heād been trying to protect himself from. Barclay tapped a finger to the contract Harry was looking at. āThis one offers a position as my second in command in the aurors. I know it would be a demotion for you, but Iām still a couple decades from retirement at least. Iām hoping you take this offer even though it will cause MACUSA the most political upheaval since we wonāt be able to keep it a secret that you work for us.ā
Ā
Harry pressed his lips into a firm line. He didnāt want to return to being an auror. He liked helping people with no violence involved, and he didnāt want to give up being a firefighter. Plus, Kingsley would know where he was if he worked for MACUSA. The minister would not have an easy time getting to him, but Harry still didnāt like that thought.
Ā
āThe others?ā He asked, pushing that contract back to look over the second.
Ā
Barclay sighed but didnāt look like he was surprised that Harry would pass up on the auror job. Frankly, this man now unfortunately knew him better than his best friends after their intense two-day interrogation. āThis next is the safest for you, and the one I recommend if you donāt take the job offer. This is our version of witness protection. You would be required to testify if there were any reason for you to, but I donāt see an American trial as a possibility for a British world leader, so itās a very distant possibility. We would give you a new identity and relocate you somewhere, obliviating all but one auror from knowing that location and identity.ā
Ā
Frankly, that was worse than the job offer because heād be taken from the lives of his family then. He couldnāt cut Hermione, Ron, Teddy, Eddie, Chris, Josh, Chimney, Hen, Bobby, and Athena from his life now that he had them. He couldnāt walk away from his family again.
Ā
āThe third?ā He asked, hoping that this one wouldnāt suck. He would have a hard time taking either of the first two.
Ā
Barclay grimaced. āThis is the most dangerous option for you. I do not recommend it,ā he slid the contract over. āIt is for political asylum and nothing else. We turn you lose, and youāre on your own. Weāll do our best, mainly for our own political reasons, to keep your presence in the country secret, but youāll have no official ties to MACUSA.ā
Ā
āWhereās the pen?ā Harry asked immediately reaching for the ballpoint pen. This was the one he'd been hoping for.
Ā
āSir Harry,ā Darragh sighed and slid the contract over to himself firmly. āAt least let me read it first. Sweet Oberon, but mages are so hasty. This is why your realm is so chaotic.ā
Ā
Harry laughed at him, but let his solicitor do his job. Darragh did suggest a few changes to destroy records of his initial arrest location since it was clear Harry was returning, but overall, it was very straightforward, and more than Harry could have hoped for. Yes, it was the more dangerous option, but it gave him his life back. Plus, he had Hermione there and Eddie who could hold his own as a vampire, so he wasnāt alone.
Ā
Harry signed with a flourish. āNow, who has my wand and bag? Did the bag bite anyone? That was a really cool ward, wasnāt it?ā
Ā
Barclay grimaced, and Harryās heart warmed that someone had definitely gotten bit. āYou wouldnāt happen to be willing to teach that ward to me before you leave, would you?ā
Ā
Harry smiled broadly and probably a little ferally now that his anxiety was gone. āOh, love, not only that, but do you want to hear about all your holes in security down in lock-up? I have a list.ā
Ā
Ā
Buck was very nervous. Heād never been this nervous standing outside of the Diaz home ever. This had always been his safe haven. He'd known from the moment he was welcomed in that first time that he really was truly welcome even though it was hard for him to admit it at times. Vampires were extremely territorial (baby vamps the most), so Eddie giving him a key and allowing him to basically take over his kitchen was evidence more than anything else that for some strange reason, Buck was allowed into the Diaz family. He didnāt know why or what heād done to deserve that, but the extent of the access he was allowed to Eddieās home was overwhelming. That level of trust was both flattering and terrifying.
Ā
Now, Buck was certain heād broken that trust. There was no way Eddie would forgive him lying to him for yearsā¦not to mention the whole wanted fugitive part. Maddie had said that Eddie had forgiven him, but Buck didnāt believe it. Maybe heād just put on a good show to keep Maddie from being upset while Buck was away. Buck wouldnāt trust it until he saw it himself.
Ā
Buck shored up his shaky Occlumency walls that the Veritaserum had torn down and took a few deep breaths before he knocked on the door. It didnāt take more than ten seconds before the door was enthusiastically thrown open.
Ā
āBuck!ā Chris shouted before almost tackling him to the ground. āMaddie said you were free, but not when you would be back!ā
Ā
āIām back, buddy,ā he held onto the kid with all the love in his heart. āIām so sorry, Chris. I didnāt mean for you to worry or have to see that. Itās all good now though.ā
Ā
āDo you get to stay now?ā Chris leaned back to ask, his blue eyes looking hopefully up at Buck.
Ā
Buck hesitated because that was more Eddieās call than anyone elseās. He looked behind Chris to where a vampire was leaning against the opposite wall and giving him what could only be described as a fond look. Maybe things were going to be ok.
Ā
That was until Buck saw the deep bruise on Eddieās armā¦
Ā
How did a vampire get a bruise that didnāt disappear within half an hour. And why did Eddie look so tired? There were bags under his eyes, and he looked like heād lost some weight. What the bloody hell had been happening while he was away?! Itād only been two weeks! A week in holding, and then a week where Harry stayed in New York getting all the paperwork and legalities settled as well as hanging out with Cho and her husband Adam.
Ā
āHey,ā Eddie said, shrugging at Buckās concerned look. āJust an accident on the job. No big deal.ā
Ā
Bullshit. Buckās eyes narrowed. A vampire didnāt bruise like that from anything that could happen on the job barring something that would have absolutely killed a normal human, and Maddie would have definitely told him about that. Why was Eddie lying to him about this? Maybe he didnāt want Chris to know?
Ā
Buck looked down at the smiling kid, and let it go for the moment, but only until Chris was out of the room. āYeah, superman,ā he finally felt reasonably able to answer Chrisās question. āIām legally able to stay around as long as you want me now. Iām officially no longer a fugitive.ā
Ā
Chris cheered and pulled Buck into the house and past Eddie who shut the door and followed them. āIām so sorry I got you arrested, Buck,ā Chris said almost frantically. āOr Harry? Should I call you Harry? I like Buck a lot more than Harry though. Ms. Athena's son is already called Harry.ā
Ā
Buck stopped and knelt down to be able to look Chris in the eyes. This was important. āHey, Chris,ā he said, stopping his friend from spiraling. āAbsolutely none of this was your or your dadās fault in the slightest. I never told you I was running from a bad man, and I should have. And Chrisā¦Iāll always be your Buck. I want to be your Buck, not Harry, not to you.ā
Ā
Chrisās face broke into a huge smile. Buck glanced up, and he couldnāt read the emotions on Eddieās face, but he got a feeling heād said the right thing. Eddie gave him a nod and a smile. āHey, how about I order us some pizza, and you can tell Buck about everything heās missed while heās been away?ā
Ā
āI want to hear about jail!ā Chris tossed his crutches by the couch and plopped down. āSchool is boring, tell me about magic jail. Are there bars on the cells or is it force fields like in Star Trek?ā
Ā
Buck and Eddie shared a look with an entire conversation in it. Eddie eventually shook his head with a chuckle and picked up his cellphone to place their pizza order. āWell,ā Buck started. āJail was boring too, but my friend Cho gave me a whole stack of quidditch magazines to read. Now, let me tell you about the best magical game in the entire world that Iām going to teach you just as soon as we can convince your dad it isnāt dangerous.ā
Ā
āGood luck with that,ā Eddie scoffed, not even knowing anything about the game. That just wasnāt fair. Buck pouted at him, but Eddie rolled his eyes and kept typing.
Ā
āAnyway,ā Buck looked back at an excited Chris. āYou fly around on broomsā¦ā
Ā
āDios mio! Why the hell would you fly around on brooms of all things!ā Eddie stopped his typing to exclaim. āNo, hell no, Buck!ā
Ā
Buck smiled because things might not be back to normal yet, but maybe they could get there. He was still welcome for some reason, and even though he didnāt deserve it, he was never going to willingly walk away from that. Now, he just had to figure out what in the founderās names had been going on with Eddie!
Ā
Ā
After way too much pizza, stories of Buckās greatest hits as a quidditch player that had led to explanations of magical boarding school and the day school options that Dahlia and Cho hadnāt actually gotten around to going into depth about with Buckās arrest, and then a Disney movieā¦Chris was finally asleep. Buck followed Eddie out of Chrisās room where he turned the lamp off and softly closed the door behind them.
Ā
āIām sorry I lied to you,ā Buck immediately started the conversation because no matter what was going on, he needed to make that clear immediately. Whatever it was though, the bruise was still on Eddieās arm, so Buck was getting more concerned by the second. Vampires didnāt bruise like that.
Ā
Eddie paused in where he was getting two beers out of the fridge. āBuckā¦I was definitely angry for a little while, but thenā¦well, I get it,ā he said, straightening and passing a beer to him. āThe auror lady, your friend, explained the Statute of Secrecy when they were explaining Chrisās magic, and wellā¦the whole wanted fugitive thing had to have complicated all that even more.ā
Ā
āIām still sorry,ā Buck followed him to the sitting room and the couch. Eddie didnāt know Buck knew he was a vampire, so he could have told Eddie the truth, but he didnāt want to put Eddie on the spot about being a magical creature until he was ready. It wasnāt Eddieās fault that Buck had weird death senses. He absolutely would call his friend out if he kept lying about those bruises though.
Ā
Eddie took a sip of his drink to collect his thoughts. āMaddie wouldnāt tell me a lot about what happened. She said I should hear it from you. I really only know she's your sister, just not by bloodā¦there was a war, and you were some kind of soldier and then cop, and someone powerful was angry at you and has been spreading lies.ā
Ā
Buck laughed. āWell, thatās it in a nutshell, everything and nothing,ā he said. āLook, that really is the basis of things, but Iāve spent two weeks having to repeatedly scrape my soul bare about all this. Could I have just a little timeā¦not long, just a few days to be back to being Buck Buckley and not Harry Potter before I do it all again? I promise Iāll tell you everything, but I donāt think I can physically do it again right now.ā
Ā
Eddie actually reached over and took his hand and gave it a squeeze. It was comforting until Buck realized Eddieās hand was too cold. Yeah, he was a vampire and ran colder, but it was still way too cold. āIām fine with that Buck. I donāt want to push you,ā Eddie spoke over Buckās growing concern. āCan you at least tell me one thing thoughā¦whoās in Australia?ā
Ā
Buck laughed, holding onto Eddieās hand tightly so he couldnāt take it away. Buck would take any intimacy Eddie was willing to give and hold onto it as long as possible. āMaddieās parents, or well Hermioneās, I donāt know if she told you her real name. Theyāre kind of shitty parents, but at least they werenāt abusive or really neglectful. I doubt they will ever come up again unless we need an excuse to leave town, which I hope never happens again.ā
Ā
Eddie laughed and it brightened the entire room. āI'm sorry about that for Maddie, but oh, man, you donāt know how many questions Iāve had to dodge about what you were up to in the land of kangaroos. Your sister was absolutely no help at all. I donāt know how she distracted Chimney that entire time without answering anything.ā
Ā
Buck waggled his eyebrows in suggestive explanation, and Eddie choked on his sip of beer. āNo, I donāt need an explanation.ā
Ā
āAh,ā he laughed. āWell, what about you then? What have you been doing the last two weeks?ā
Ā
This was what Buck really needed to know. Now was the time for Eddie to at least partially fess up. āNothing much,ā Eddie shrugged, taking another sip of his beer. āJust work and Chris. I helped Abuela fix a hole in her fence a few days ago.ā
Ā
Buckās eyes narrowed. No, this had gone on far too long. He was the first one to let people keep their secrets, but this one looked dangerous. Eddie knew he was powerful now. Why wasnāt he letting him help?!
Ā
āRight, so my dear, lovely friend,ā Harry let go of his American accent and slipped back into auror mode. He was Harry again even if he looked like Buck. Eddie needed an auror, not a firefighter right now. Eddieās eyes widened, rightly sensing this was getting serious.
Ā
āYeah, friend?ā Eddie said with a gulp at Harryās look.
Ā
āMy sister intentionally came over to your house while I was away to tell you she was here to help if you needed anything,ā Harry said slowly. It was the most Hermione could do without saying she knew Eddie was a vampire herself. āI donāt know what you talked about, but I do know you didnāt ask for helpā¦not with what I'm seeing now with the state youāre in.ā
Ā
āWhat do you mean?ā Eddie looked completely confused, which was clearly covering over panic at knowing exactly what Harry was talking about.
Ā
āRight, Iām going to say this as clearly as I possibly can so you canāt misinterpret,ā Harry said slowly putting his beer on the table and holding onto Eddieās cold hand again. āVampires do not bruise like that from ānormalā activities.ā
Ā
Eddieās eyes widened almost comically, and he tried to pull away. āHey,ā Harry held on tighter. āI didnāt want to call you out before you were ready, and Iām the very last person to ever judge you, but I can help. Hell, Maddie can help. What do you need? You need someone arrested? Are you sick? You need blood? What do you need, Eddie?!ā
Ā
Harry hated that he was talking too loud there at the end in his frantic questions. He threw his hand behind himself, casting a low-level silencing charm at Chrisās door with the Elder Wand to hopefully keep from waking the kid up. Eddieās eyes caught on the wand, and he seemed to not be able to breathe.
Ā
āHey,ā Harry put the wand down and held both hands up placatingly, hoping to show he meant Eddie no harm at all. āI was only casting a silencing charm, so I didnāt wake up Chris. Iām not going to tell anyone anything if you donāt want me to. I need you safe though, Eddie. You donāt understand how much you and Chris mean to me. I promise you. I only want to help.ā
Ā
Eddie continued his freaking out, but at least didnāt look like he was about to run anymore. Harry knew his friend had a problem with asking for help. Harry had that problem himself until Hermione or Ron would bully him into letting them in every time. Whatever this was though was serious, and Harry wasnāt letting it go without a fight.
Ā
āLet me in, Eddie,ā he said when his friend calmed down slightly and seemed better able to focus. āRemember, I have your back, and you have mine. Let me have your back this time.ā
Ā
Harry could see it when Eddie finally gave up his need to hold everything in and not ask for help. He seemed to finally relax only a little and let some of his burden go. Eddie took in a deep breath.
Ā
āDid you know werewolves exist?ā He asked, completely shocking Harry. This was not where heād been expecting this conversation to go.
Ā
āYes, Eddie,ā he said slowly. When had Eddie had occasion to interact with werewolves? As far as Harry could tell, Eddie barely interacted with vampires. āI know werewolves exist very well. My sort-of uncle was one.ā
Ā
Eddie looked surprised for a second before just letting it go. āWell, apparently they are really into street fighting.ā
Ā
And what the bloody hell had been going on while Harry was out of town?!!! It had only been two bloody weeks!!
Notes:
Up Next: Buck and Eddie have a much needed conversation...
Chapter 15: Opening Up
Notes:
I'm playing with the canon timeline a lot over the next few chapters.
(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)
Chapter Text
Eddie was freaking the hell out! He was going through so many emotions that he just wanted to shut down and not deal with it. First it was panic, Buck knew he was a vampire! Then anger, why hadnāt Buck said anything? Then there was acceptance of the situation because if Buck had told him before heād known Chris had magic, then Eddie would have most definitely packed up Chris and moved the next day. Then anger again because why hadnāt Buck told him after Chris showed he had magic? But then was understanding because Buck had thought he had to go on the run once people knew about Chris.
Ā
Now Eddie didnāt know what he felt. He was just bombarded with so much that he couldnāt process. Eventually, he just had to settle for some kind of numb relief. They were both supernatural in some form, and Buck surprisingly didnāt look afraid of him at all. Plusā¦Eddie had kind of gotten his friend arrested, soā¦water under the bridge?
Ā
Oh, but now Eddie had to fess up to the mess heād gone and gotten himself into. āDid you know werewolves exist?ā He asked in resignation.
Ā
āYes, Eddie,ā Buck said as if that should have been obvious. Why would it have been obvious? āI know werewolves exist very well. My sort-of uncle was one.ā
Ā
Eddie was absolutely not going to process that in addition to everything else. āWell, apparently they are really into street fighting.ā
Ā
āExcuse me,ā Buck pinched the bridge of his nose and looked like he was doing his best not to yell or something. Eddie was suddenly very glad for the forethought of putting some kind of silencing spell around his kidās door. This was probably not going to go well.
Ā
Buck sighed and looked at him again, seeming to rein in all his anxiety and frustration into a false calmness. āAny why in Merlinās name would you, Eddie Diaz, vampire, happen to know that werewolves are into street fighting?ā
Ā
āItās a long story,ā Eddie obfuscated, not wanting to go into it at all. And hey! Mages swore by Merlin; he was so justified in swearing by Dracula in his head! Right, not the time.
Ā
āI have nowhere to be until I finally get to start back to work in two days,ā Buck crossed his arms and really did look like heād sit on Eddieās couch for two days straight if thatās what it took.
Ā
Buck wasnāt his parent or actual husband and had no say over how he lived his life. At least thatās what Eddie was telling himself even though it felt like Buck really did have a say after all theyād been through together and how much heād come to rely on his friend. āOk, well, you have to realize that blood is very expensive, and it got worse after the tsunami and the blood shortage it caused. Plus, I had to get Chris new glasses and crutches, my rent went up, and I really do need a new truck. The old oneās A/C went out and has transmission issues.ā
Ā
Buckās expression fell into one of sad understanding. He ran a hand over his face and asked the question Eddie had been dreading. āWouldnāt going clubbing and a few one-night stands have been much easier than street fighting though? That seemsā¦drastic.ā
Ā
Eddie shrugged and couldnāt help the blush he felt light up his cheeks. Dracula, but wouldnāt it have been nice if vampires couldnāt blush! āSoā¦itās possible Iām demisexualā¦and er, one-night stands kind of really cause me some psychological distressā¦ā
Ā
āOh,ā Buck breathed out next with wide eyes, and Eddie was actually not shocked to see literally no judgement on his face in the slightest, only concern. āWell, thanks for telling me, and yeah, I can see how that might be a problem. How did you find a werewolf street fighting group though anyway?ā
Ā
And that was it. Buck just accepted and moved on. Eddie couldnāt express how very thankful he was that Buck wasnāt making a big deal out of it. Eddie, himself, had been freaking out ever since his google search in the wake of Maddieās off-hand comment. He needed someone to accept him and see it as normal when nothing else in his life was normal.
Ā
With a breath of relief, Eddie settled in to tell the convoluted story then. āWell, I told Bosco, your temporary replacement at the station, that I was having some financial problems, and she took me to a street fighting group she goes to occasionally. The money wasnāt good, but it was easy. I just had to pull my punches and really watch how hard I went with the normal humans to not actually hurt anyone.ā
Ā
Buck nodded, still no judgement. Eddie was maybe a little shocked now at how much Buck was just going with it all. āAnd I guess there was someone from the other group who saw you?ā
Ā
Eddie nodded. āBosco decided to go home with someone else one of the nights, so I was alone, and this guy approached me. My senses just went haywire when he walked up and screamed danger and ew, wet dog and all that.ā
Ā
Buck chuckled and nodded. āYouāre natural enemies, sort ofā¦Iāve seen werewolves and vampires work together and even be good friends, but you have to get past that first instinctual reaction.ā
Ā
Eddie nodded. āYeah, it surprised me because no one else Iāve met seemed to just know what I amā¦well, besides youā¦ā
Ā
āIām an anomaly,ā Buck winced, and Eddie was starting to get the impression Buck was an anomaly in a lot of things. āIf it helps, Maddie didnāt know you were a vampire when you first met, and I doubt Cho or the Ilvermorny lady figured it out either.ā
Ā
Maybe he should tell Buck the school might think they are married? Nah, not important. āWell, good,ā he breathed out in relief at that reassurance. āAnyway, the guy said he could get me a fairer fight and much better pay. He was right.ā
Ā
Eddie looked down and let out a breath. āWell, the pay is great, but well, Iām good, but not great. I think Iāve lost as many fights as Iāve won. Plus, the wolves all want to go up against the vamp, so I think theyāre throwing their toughest at me. But Iāve paid off my debt and put a down payment on a new truck.ā
Ā
Buck whistled, actually looking impressed. āWell, that sounds dangerous, but Iām glad youāre ok. Iām sorry I wasnāt here to help before, but Iām here now. Soā¦letās talk about what we need to do so that you donāt have to keep going back and getting hurt.ā
Ā
Eddie finally looked Buck in the eyes and raised a speculative eyebrow. āBuck, Iām out of the hole, but the blood prices still havenāt gone down yet. And I think I need to buy Chris some introduction to magic things now tooā¦once you tell me what those things are anyway. Like does he need a wand? Not a broom, definitely not a broom.ā
Ā
Buck laughed and just seemed to brush his concerns aside. āDonāt worry about the magic stuff. I was already starting to teach him some skills under the excuse of teaching him cooking and things like that before I left. Iāll just tell him itās for magic school now instead of saving himself from your terrible cooking skills. And, he doesnāt need a wand until he goes off to school.ā
Eddie just blinked. What? Buck had already been helping his son prepare to join the magical world? Well, the last of his residual anger at Buck not telling him things just seeped away. Eddie shook his head though. āNo, I need to save money for his tuition. The meeting was under the guise of a scholarship, but that wasnāt actually what they were offering. They said there was significant financial assistance if we need it, but it wasnāt a complete scholarship.ā
Ā
Buck was already shaking his head. āSeriously, thatās still almost 4 years away. Donāt worry about it, Eds. Magic school is absolutely not going to put you into debt, I promise. Now though, whatās pressing is your need for cheap blood so that you have enough in your paycheck for those new car payments.ā
Ā
Eddie nodded, because yeah, Buck had a point there. āA few bruises are a small price to pay for that.ā
Ā
Buck scoffed. āIām not going to allow you to run into a burning building with broken ribs and bruises. Eddie, you might be immortal, but you arenāt indestructible and pretty evenly matched with a werewolf. In addition to yourself, you put Hen and Chimney and everyone else in danger then too.ā
Ā
Eddie didnāt need to be indestructible. He just needed to be safe and healthy until Chris turned 18, or maybe 20, or at least until he got settled and able to take care of himself. Buck did have a point there about himself and others though. Collapsing in a building fire could still kill him, and the fights were significantly raising his danger of that.
Ā
With Shannon gone, Eddie was all Chris had, so he really should be taking a little better care of himself he supposed. Plus, Eddie would hate to do the same thing to someone else that had been done to him. He didnāt think he would drain one of his co-workers if he was on the brink of death, but he also didnāt want to chance whatever latent vampire instincts he might have.
Ā
Heād been drained out in Afghanistan as a combat medic, and the vampire who did it had freaked out at killing him when he saw they were both Army and then turned him instead. If he was being honest, Eddie could see himself making that same decision if it was Hen or Chimney that he was looking at on the floor, and he was about to be responsible for their death. He really didnāt think heād attack one of his friends, but still, that was a chance he wasnāt willing to take.
Ā
āOk, well, suggestions?ā He asked, hoping that Buck had some ideas since he seemed determined to keep Eddie from going back to the fights. Eddie was floundering here. There were only so many extra shifts he could legally take. āI already tried the club scene, and I really donāt want to go back.ā
Ā
Buck looked at him assessingly as if trying to gauge his reactions. āHow offended would you be if I just gave you money?ā
Ā
Eddie wasnāt sure what his face was doing, but it must not have been positive. Because what in Draculaās fangs?! He was absolutely not going to take any of Buckās money.
Ā
āIām kind of loaded,ā Buck shrugged in response to whatever Eddieās face was doing. āBut I can see you donāt like that idea, so plan bā¦ā
Ā
āWhich isā¦?ā Eddie prompted at the dramatic pause.
Ā
āErā¦so I was bleeding a lot after the whole ladder truck thing,ā Buck actually blushed. Why? That was an odd reaction. āErā¦well, how do I smell?ā
Ā
āWhat?ā Eddie didnāt even know how to answer that.
Ā
Buck huffed and rolled his eyes. āWell, I havenāt really been around a lot of vampires who I wasnāt arresting, so like, my blood, does it smell good, or maybe toxic or gone badā¦?ā
Ā
Eddie just blinked. Ok, was Buck offering what he thought he might be offering. āIt smells good,ā he said slowly. āBut Buckā¦ā
Ā
āHah! Easy solution then! I really was hoping we didnāt have to go to a plan c,ā Buck grinned happily and sat up. Eddie blinked again in surprise when Buck was already pulling his shirt off.
Ā
Eddie held in a gasp and was maybe trying to not swallow his own tongue when Buckās plain blue t-shirt was over his head and his friendās muscles were on full display. He quickly looked away and felt a full-body flush. Again, why couldnāt the stereotypical vampires not blushing thing be an actual thing?!
Ā
Right, so he was probably demisexual, but he was starting to think he definitely wasnāt straight either. And Draculaās balls, but Buck was probably the closest person he had in his life, and it seemed heād developed quite a bit of attraction that heād been exceptionally good at ignoring until that very second. This was extremely inconvenient!
Ā
āDios mio! Buck, why are you taking your shirt off?!ā He asked, not sure where to look now.
Ā
Buck just scoffed and threw the shirt at him, hitting him in the face. It was warm and smelled of Buck. Damn, why did he have to have this realization right then? How had he made it into his thirties without realizing he wasnāt straight?! Oh, yeah, Shannon, and demisexual, and taking care of Chris, and learning to be a vampire, so yeah, that all definitely played a part.
Ā
āWell, I like this shirt, and I donāt know how messy of an eater you are,ā Buck said as if that made perfect sense. āSo, letās do this!ā
Ā
Eddie put the shirt on the coffee table and looked at his friend because of course Buck would just offer his blood at the first sign of Eddie needing food. Hell, heād been buying their groceries for the longest. Eddie paid for them, of course, but Buck did the shopping because Eddie just kind of got tired of looking at human food these days. Well, he could tell Buck was not going to be deterred in the slightest.
Ā
āI can use a vein in your arm just as well,ā Eddie motioned because it still wasnāt necessary for Buck to be half-naked in front of him and was that a lightning bolt scar on his chest? How did he get that?
Ā
He wasnāt expecting Buck to hold out both of his arms with a tight, almost pained look in his eyes though. āYeah, thatās not going to be the easiest.ā
Ā
Eddie held in his horrified gasp at what he saw. How hadnāt he realized Buck had such large scars on his arms before that very moment. He grasped his friendās arms and pulled him closer to look at them.
Ā
āWhat happened to you cariƱo?!ā Right, did Eddie just say that? Maybe Buck wouldnāt noticeā¦?
Ā
āWar,ā he shrugged as if that explained it all, and Eddie supposed it did. He studied the long scars and turned Buckās arms over. He couldnāt hold in the gasp this time at the writing across the back of Buckās hand in his own damn handwriting!
Ā
āHow didnāt I notice these before? Why? What could do even this?ā He knew he was asking too many questions, but what could have caused āI must not tell liesā to be permanently etched onto the back of his best friendās hand?!
Ā
Buck cracked his neck and pulled his arms back, crossing them over his bare chest self-consciously, and Eddie felt really bad about his reaction and the questions then. Ā He hadnāt wanted to make Buck uncomfortable. āYou donāt have to tell me anything you donāt want to,ā Eddie assured him vehemently. Buck had already said he wasnāt emotionally able to open up more that evening after everything heād just been through, and here he was asking for more.
Ā
āErm, Iām really good at wearing long-sleeves and keeping the insides of my arms towards myself if Iām not. Plus, a low level notice-me-not charm around them helps. Usually, no one really looks at the back of your hands in great detail, and we wear gloves a lot at work tooā¦Chris noticed once, but I just brushed it off as another type of tattoo. I didnāt think he should hear about one of my old professors torturing meā¦ā
Ā
āMierda,ā Eddie breathed out. He was starting to think Buckās past was one long nightmare. āIām so sorry, Buck.ā
Ā
Buck just shrugged but in a way that said he couldnāt deal with this right now than actually trying to brush it off. āIt was a long time ago. Now, dinner?ā He grinned teasingly to change the subject and leaned forward, clearly done with the intense conversation. āIf I taste bad, then weāll come up with some new option.ā
Ā
There was no way in hell Buck was going to taste bad, not after the blood Eddie had smelled in the ambulance. Heād never smelled anything so good in his life, and that was including his abuelaās tres leches pre-vampire turning. Regardless, Eddie had a feeling they were about to cross some kind of line that Eddie at least wasnāt going to be able to come back from. He couldnāt just tell Buck he didnāt want his blood though because, Dracula-be-damned, he really, really did. Maybe that line had already been crossed because Eddie felt like heād fallen off some kind of cliff, and he didnāt know how to climb back out.
Ā
āAre you sure, Buck?ā He asked seriously, almost hoping his friend would reconsider. āThis is a littleā¦intimate.ā
Ā
Buckās smile fell slightly, and maybe he hadnāt quite thought this out completely. A second later, and the smile was back though. āEddie, look, I really donāt care what I have to do. Iām keeping you and Christopher safe and healthy. A little blood donation is absolutely nothing on the scale of things Iām willing to do to make that happen. If you donāt want to do this, thatās another story, but I want to help you, never question that.ā
Ā
Eddie found he couldnāt say no to that offer. It was only a little blood and would keep him from having to fight. Plus, the injuries made it to where he needed even more blood than he normally would, so his profit margin wasnāt as great as heād like anyway. So, yeah, he was going to do this even though he had a feeling things were never going to be exactly the same between him and Buck againā¦though, that didnāt have to be a bad thing.
Ā
āOk, get comfortable,ā Eddie pushed Buck back so he was leaning against the back of the couch, and Eddie could scoot up right beside him. āShannon said it was a little pinch and then whatever vampire toxins I have kick in, and itās very pleasant after that, so it shouldnāt hurt.ā
Ā
Buck laughed and shrugged. āPlease, Iām not even concerned,ā Buck assured him, and based on all his scars, Eddie believed him completely. He was a little concerned that Buck hadnāt taken into account just how pleasant it could be though. Shannon had always seemed very turned on even if they hadnāt done anything before or after.
Ā
Eddie just nodded though. Buck would figure it out and then ban him from ever taking any of his blood again. He would come up with some new plan after that. āRight, so Iām not going to take a whole lot, but if you start to black out or feel uncomfortable, just tell me to stop. I promise Iāll stop immediately.ā
Ā
Buck snorted and actually just grabbed the back of his neck and shoved Eddieās nose into his neck. āDude, Iām fine. I know you have the self-control of a saint. Just take what you need.ā
Ā
Eddie may have blacked out for a second when his face was pressed to Buckās warm skin and all he could smell was Buck. He was sugar and ozone and something spicy. Buck was home.
Ā
Eddie let his fangs out and sank them into the soft skin under his mouth. Buck tastedā¦he couldnāt even describe it. If Buck smelled like home, he tasted even better. That first drop of blood on Eddieās tongue, and he didnāt think he could ever get enough. Then Buck gave a little gasp, and Eddie didnāt think heād been turned on so much in his life. Yeah, he was never coming back from this.
Ā
Eddie may have made some kind of whimper in the back of his throat that heād never admit to, and he really hoped Buck didnāt notice. It was justā¦something about Buckās blood made him feel safe and strong and like everything was going to be ok. He had to keep reminding himself of where he was and what he was doing so he didnāt go too far. He couldnāt take too much blood and hurt his friend.
Ā
Buck was decidedly not helping in that he had grabbed Eddieās sides and dug in his fingers almost painfully, holding him close. He breathed heavily but didnāt say anything, and Eddie needed him to say something, say what he was thinking, say if he was ok. Buck shuddered and clutched Eddie a little tighter, and he really hoped he wasnāt hurting Buck.
Ā
It was over too soon for Eddie, but he didnāt want to take too much blood. Buck needed to be fine for work too. He licked the wound closed and couldnāt help a little kiss to the spot that was no longer an open wound but did look suspiciously like a hickey.
Ā
āErā¦sorry,ā Eddie winced. Shannon had never seemed to care about the marks because he made sure to make them low enough to be covered by her shirts, but this one might be a little high on Buckās neck because going lower seemedā¦a little too dangerous for Eddieās mental health. There had to be a way to keep it from marking, he just wasnāt sure how.
Ā
āAre you ok?ā He asked, now really concerned since Buck hadnāt said anything and was still breathing kind of heavily.
Ā
āDamn, Eddieā¦Merlinās saggy bollocks!ā He breathed out with a smile, and Eddie was suddenly so very relieved. Buck lookedā¦well, blissed out was probably the expression as he blinked slowly, almost sinking into the couch. Good, at least he wasnāt freaking out.
Ā
āI didnāt take too much, did I?ā Eddie asked in concern when Buck still hadnāt moved.
Ā
Buck reached up and squeezed Eddieās arm with a smile. āIām fine, I promiseā¦just, wowā¦that felt,ā Buck didnāt seem to be able to find words. āWell, weāre doing that again! Just give me a minute to pull myself together.ā
Ā
I love you. The thought crossed Eddieās mind before he could stop it. No, push it down. Not welcome. He couldnāt freak out his friend. Heād literally just decided he wasnāt straight like fifteen minutes before, he could not be thinking that. And he definitely couldnāt say it out loud.
Ā
āUh,ā he cleared his throat. āDo youā¦do you want to stay on the couch tonight?ā He found himself asking to his own surprise, but he wasnāt so sure he wanted Buck driving in the state in was in currently.
Ā
Buck finally seemed to pull himself together and sit up. āYeah, Iāll make Chris pancakes in the morning. I owe that kid a lot of pancakes for scaring him like I did.ā
Ā
āHeāll love that,ā Eddie smiled and poked at the bruise on Buckās neck. āUh, Iām not sure what to do about that. You have a magical solution or something?ā
Ā
Buck did some kind of funny contortion thing with his head to try to see it. Eventually, he picked his wand up off the coffee table and pointed it at himself. āEpiskey,ā he said with a tap. Nothing happenedā¦
Ā
āWas that supposed to do something?ā Eddie frowned.
Ā
Buck sighed loudly and chuckled. āYeah, but my healing spells are absolute shite. How much grief do you think Chimney is going to give me for this?ā
Ā
Eddie winced. āSorryā¦uh, if we ever do this again, Iāll do it lower or something.ā
Ā
Buck scoffed and gave him that huge smile that had Hen calling him a golden retriever. āEddie, mate, we are so doing that again. Like next week or whenever you're hungry. I can always take a blood-replenisher potion if I need to, and I donāt care how much grief I get for some hickeys. Iāll just say Iām dating someone new or just evade and let Chimney come up with whatever he wants to. Iāll even ask Maddie to brew me some Essence of Murtlap, and problem solved. So, no need to go hungry.ā
Ā
Eddie shook his head in disbelief at just how much Buck would roll with all this. He stood though since Buck still didnāt seem willing to move. āIāll get you some blankets and a pillow. You can borrow some sweats and a t-shirt, but I want them back,ā he pointed at Buck accusingly.
Ā
He friend winced slightly. āYeah, sorryā¦Maddie said she did her yearly take-back of stuff. I donātā¦I donāt mean to. Itās just, I can always find you and protect you if I have something of yoursā¦ā
Ā
āI know,ā Eddie ran his fingers through Buckās short curls before he could stop himself. āThatās why I told her you could keep my shirt, but I do need to keep some clothes here at my place, so you canāt have them all.ā
Ā
Buck grinned and thankfully didnāt say anything about Eddie messing with his hair. Eddie pulled his hand back and cleared his throat. He escaped as quickly as he could to grab those blankets.
Ā
Eddie had to pause in the hallway and take in a breath. Heād never felt so full since heād become a vampire. It was the first time he hadnāt felt hungry in the slightest. He felt even stronger than his considerable strength since becoming a vampire. Actually, he was a little worried he would have to watch his strength more for a little while or else he might pull a doorknob off or break something unintentionally. Just what was in Buckās blood?!
Ā
Ā
Buck had never been so grateful to be back at work in his life! It was his first day back, and as a free man now instead of a fugitive. Still, no one but Eddie knew who he was, but it was a different world just with arrest no longer hanging over his head. Bobby had given him a big hug when he walked in, Hen had got him a cake and balloons, and Chimney had immediately started in on the hickey Eddie had put way too high up on his neck to be covered by his uniform shirt.
Ā
āItās not a hickey; itās a bruise,ā Buck tried, knowing that Chimney was never going to believe him. Heād probably need to give Maddie a heads up about what happened because Chimney was probably going to text her the gossip the first free second they had.
Ā
āSeems an odd place for a bruise,ā Hen added, with a teasing grin, jumping right in there with Chimney.
Ā
They were all in the fire engine speeding towards a kitchen fire just minutes after the shift started. Eddie was looking out the window and clearly not planning on helping him in the slightest. Actually, Buck couldnāt help his dopey grin at Eddie whenever he thought about that night. It was justā¦Merlin, but he loved Eddie so much. It was going to tear his heart out when Eddie found someone he wanted to be with, and it wasnāt Buck. His heart was too far gone to pull away now though. Heād just have to take whatever he was given for as long as Eddie was willing to give it. Heād deal with the epic fallout later he supposed.
Ā
Bobby leaned back from the front seat with a grin. āMaybe attempt to keep any ābruisesā where they are more easily hidden in the future for professional purposes,ā he said, clearly not believing Buck either. Buck held in his eyeroll since apparently Buck 1.0 had done his job too well, and he was never going to live that down.
Ā
āUh, soā¦your parentsā¦they ok? Coming for a visit anytime soon?ā Chimney asked with a whole lot of worry in his tone. Apparently, Maddie hadnāt been helpful in coming up with some kind of backstory to explain his absence, which wasnāt fair since Chimney was her bloody boyfriend.
Ā
āThey are fine, and no,ā he just said tersely, hoping his irritation at Hermioneās parents never visiting her bled through to keep them from wanting to ask questions. āI donāt think weāll see them any time soon.ā
Ā
Eddie met his eyes at that and gave him a little comforting smile. It was so nice to have someone who actually knew the truth now that Harry didnāt have parents and that Hermioneās parents werenāt the best. It was nice to have someone who knew heād been through things that left him with nightmares, scars, and deep trauma. Harry hadnāt realized how tiring it had been over the years pretending that heād had a relatively normal life with little to no trauma besides whatever family stuff his team had assumed from the hints heād dropped.
Ā
Life was looking up for Harry now. He had his job back. He had his family. He had Eddie and Chris. He just needed his son, and Teddy was coming to visit in only three weeks. Life was good.
Ā
Ā
Chimney was not an idiot. Something was going on that his girlfriend and her brother were keeping from him. He just really hoped whatever it was wasnāt what he was starting to assume. The problem with people keeping things from him was that his brain tried to fill in the blanks, and those blanks were starting to look very troubling.
Ā
Maddie had gone a little off the deep end while Buck was away taking care of whatever family situation was going on with their parents in Australia. And Chimney was worried about her. Neither of them wanted to talk about whatever was going on with their parents, and well, Chimney was a little concerned that theyād not had the best childhood at this point. It was concerning that Buck had never mentioned his family once before Maddie randomly showed up a year after theyād met.
Ā
Even when Maddie had shown up, they only vaguely addressed their childhood in terms of it having been a bit wild and dangerous with them both getting into trouble. They talked about people they knew and their friends occasionally. Some guy named Ron seemed to be a shared childhood friend of the two who Buck talked about the most. They also had someone named Neville and George and recently Cho who Maddie had said Buck was visiting along with their parents. They talked about Maddieās ex-husband some too, but really only in terms of āthe exā in that Chimney didnāt even know the guyās name since he was only ever mentioned when Chimney brought him up, which he tried not to do since he worried there was some bad blood there even though Maddie assured him there wasnāt.
Ā
Now though, Buck had been back at work a week, and Chimney had the sneaking suspicion that Maddie hadnāt filled him in on what had been going on while he was away. Chimney absolutely didnāt want to run and tattle on his girlfriend to her brother, but he was worried for her. He also absolutely knew he hadnāt gotten a straight answer he could trust to any of his questions out of her. Itās not that he didnāt trust Maddie with his life and heart, but he found he didnāt trust that she wasnāt trying to protect him from some kind of darkness in her past that she didnāt think he could handle.
Ā
All this led to Chimney knocking on the door of Buckās loft early on a Friday when they were off work. He was surprised that heād never actually been to Buckās loft before, and he wasn't sure why that was. Heād known the address for a long time since Buck had stolen Chimneyās phone and entered it as part of his contact information when Chimney had first started dating Maddie for an āin case of an emergencyā situation. Now though, Chimney realized theyād always ever met at his place or Maddieās or Henās, but never Buckās.
Ā
Buck immediately opened the door, still wearing pajama pants with what looked suspiciously like one of Eddieās old Army shirts and looking half-asleep. āChimney! Is Maddie ok?ā He asked immediately, making Chimney wince because he wasnāt actually sure.
Ā
Chimney raised an eyebrow at the shirt but just pushed his way into Buckās loft. Whatever Buck and Eddie had going on, he was certain they didnāt even know what it was, so he was firmly staying out of it. He might like to hear about the workplace drama, but he didn't want to put himself in the middle of it.
Ā
He whistled at the windows and high ceilings of the apartment, it was nice. Kind of small, but open and airy. He liked it. āLike the place,ā he said and walked over to sit on a stool at Buckās kitchen island.
Ā
Buck closed the door and followed him in. āMaddie is ok, right?ā He was clearly still worried.
Ā
Chimney sighed and leaned against the granite countertop. āSheās fine, but Iām worried. Buck, Iām not sure what sheās told you about what happened while you were away, but you do know she was suspended without pay from work for a few shifts, right?ā
Ā
āWhat?!ā Buck pulled out the stool beside Chimney and immediately joined him. āDid everyone lose their freaking minds while I was away?! It was only two weeks! What happened?!ā
Chimney organized his thoughts and tried to lay out his suspicions as logically as possible. āA woman called 9-1-1, and Maddie answered the call. The woman was clearly in an abusive relationship, but she hung up and didnāt press charges when Maddie pushed for her to get away. Maddie kind ofā¦well, she started stalking the woman to see if she could help.ā
Ā
Buckās eyebrows shot up to his hairline. He let out a shaky breath that seemed to confirm that something had actually happened in their past, and he knew what it was. āWhat happened then? The woman complained?ā
Ā
Chimney nodded. āShe did, but a few days later she did actually ask Maddie for help. She'd shot her husband.ā
Ā
Buck swore and ran a hand down his face, looking paler than Chimney had ever seen him before. āShe killed him?ā
Ā
Chimney shook his head. āNo, Maddie rushed over and was able to stabilize him and get him to the hospital. The womanā¦she went back to him. Maddie just, she shut down and walked away after that. I get it, she couldnāt help anymore, but she seemed angrier at herself than the woman or the situation.ā
Ā
Buck nodded slowly. āYeah, Maddie would think that way. She had to protect herself though. My sister has such a big heart, but she has to learn to better establish some healthy boundaries sooner. Not that I'm one to talk, I know, but still. Maybe it's a family trait.ā
Ā
Chimney was nodding, but now he had to ask his questions as much as he was worried he didnāt want to know the answers. āLook, Iām not asking you to betray your sisterās trust or anything, but I need to knowā¦is she safe? You two never talk about her ex-husband, and after all this, Iām just worriedā¦was he abusive? I just, I need a heads up in case he shows up or something. I want to be prepared.ā
Ā
Buck looked extremely confused, and Chimney was starting to think he might have put the pieces of this particular puzzle together wrong. What had he missed though? āWhat do you mean we never talk about Maddieās ex? And no, he was definitely not abusive! Not at all!!ā
Ā
Chimney did let out a breath of relief at that answer. āThank God! Itās just she seemed so affected by the woman, and it seemed personal, and I was worriedā¦and no, dude, you guys never talk about Maddieās ex. I think Iām the one who usually brings him up.ā
Ā
Buck still looked confused. He frowned and slowly shook his head as if something had family dawned on him, and he didn't like it. āIām sorry, Chimney. I think Maddieās been trying to protect me, and I didnāt realize how much that was affecting you guysā relationship. I didnāt realize that keeping my secrets meant she couldnāt tell you thingsā¦ā
Ā
Ok, so now Chimney was confused. āMaddieās allowed to have her secrets,ā Chimney said, not sure what he was trying to reassure Buck about. āI donāt need her to tell me everything, as long as she knows she can tell me whatever she wants to.ā
Ā
Buck gave him this sappy look that he really didnāt appreciate. āDude, come on,ā Chimney felt like he was going to blush. āIām just happy her ex wasnāt abusive. You donāt need to tell me all her secrets or anything. I just wanted to make sure she was safe.ā
Ā
āIām not going to tell you her secrets,ā Buck smiled sadly and shook his head. āI do think I need to fill you in on some of mine though since my sister seems to be overly protective. First of all, we do actually talk about her ex-husband all the time. Ronā¦my best friendā¦the person who came to spend last Christmas with usā¦maybe we just didnāt make it clear that Ron is the ex?ā
Ā
āOh,ā Chimney breathed out, finally making that connection. Ron, the childhood friend, and Maddieās ex were the same person? Buck was just so much younger than Maddie that heād assumed Buckās childhood friend and Maddieās ex-husband couldnāt be the same person. He supposed Buckās friend must be older than him, which made sense with how close Buck and Eddie were and how Buck had dated Abby who was much older.
Ā
āRight, so I need coffee,ā Buck was up and pouring them both mugs of coffee while he processed that new revelation. He passed Chimney a mug before sitting down again.
Ā
āI donāt even know where to start,ā Buck admitted, looking a little lost. āI guess letās start with our childhood.ā
Ā
āI already figured out it was probably not all loving parents and picket fences,ā Chimney tried to help.
Ā
Buck laughed though and shook his head. āYeah, so I should probably start with the fact that Maddie and I arenāt actually biologically related.ā
Ā
Chimney sat down his coffee and had to let that sink in. āWhat? Uhā¦were you adopted?ā
Ā
Buck shrugged unhelpfully. āIām an orphan. Maddie and I had very different childhoods though probably neither great. I guess Iām adopted in that Maddie and Ron took me on as their brother. They are my family. Maddie is my sister as much as anyone could be a sister, but we didnāt grow up together. I grew up with my abusive aunt and uncle. We just didn't think it necessary to explain all that to people when she first moved here, and I didn't particularly want to go into my shitty past and backstory at all.ā
Ā
Chimney sucked in a surprised breath. Heād been assuming abuse or neglect already, but to have Buck confirm it like that, well, that hit hard. āBuckā¦Iām sorryā¦ā
Ā
Buck just waved a hand as if pushing it aside. āMaddieās parents are the ones in Australia, and they were more roommates than parents while she was growing up, and they sent her off to boarding school at 11 where we met. Honestly, that may have been the best thing for her. They werenāt bad people they just werenāt good parents. They didnāt know what to do with Maddie as a daughter and kind of left her to her own devices.ā
Ā
āThat doesnāt sound like good people to me,ā Chimney disagreed. He was strongly hoping he never met these people, not that heād wanted to meet them before. His own family was complicated too, but at least his mother had been a wonderful mom and loved him so much until her death. āWas it your past then that had Maddie taking the womanās situation so personally?ā
Ā
Buck grimaced, and Chimney was certain he wasnāt going to like the answer. Buck took a slow sip of his coffee before setting it on the counter. āYes, but not the way youāre thinking,ā Buck said, and yeah, Chimney was concerned. āI donāt have the best luck with relationships.ā
Ā
Chimney couldnāt help his snort. Really, he didnāt mean anything bad by it, but Buck had been really self-destructive when heād first started at the 118. Chimney had tried to get him to see how much he was hurting himself in his own way, but Chimney had a feeling his way of trying to get through to Buck probably wasnāt the best. Now though, he was starting to see that all Buck had been going through was probably steeped in more trauma than Chimney could ever have guessed.
Ā
āYeah, my ex was the abusive one,ā Buck let out a breath. āI had to leave to get away from him.ā
Ā
Chimney slowly nodded. It wasnāt where heād thought this conversation was going, but he could see Buck not having the healthiest approach to relationships, especially with how Buck had held onto Abby so tightly when she had obviously left him. He hated there may be a reason for that. āAre you still in danger?ā
Ā
Buck nodded sharply, and Chimneyās concern shot up. āYeah, heāsā¦heās the main reason why Maddie and I donāt talk about our past much. Iām kind of hiding from himā¦heāsā¦well, heās kind of powerful, wealthy and influential you know.ā
Ā
āOh,ā Chimney said yet again, not having expected to have so many of his questions answered and now terrified that they were. He'd had no clue Buck had been in danger this whole time. He wished he'd been there better for his friend.
Ā
āWell, weāre not going to let him find you,ā he said firmly. Not friend, Buck was his brother, and not because he was dating Maddie. Buck had taken the place of brother in Chimās life well before heād even met Maddie. Now, he just needed to make Buck see that.
Ā
Buck reached over and took his hand with a comforting squeeze. Chimney didnāt think heād ever touched Buck besides a few claps on the back and shoves to the shoulder. It made him unexpectedly emotional. āThanks, Chimā¦and just so you donāt freak out, none of this is really a secret anymore. I just donāt want to have to tell everyone,ā Buck smiled at him.
Ā
Chimney scoffed. Yeah, he was terrible at keeping secrets, but he wouldnāt do anything to put Buck in danger. āIām not going to go spilling your life story to everyone, Buck. Iād just like to be able to talk to Maddie about it.ā
Ā
āWhich you can,ā Buck assured him and finally let go of his hand. āEddie knows the broad strokes of what happened, and Josh knows pretty much everything. I just, donāt want to spill my life story for everyone, you know?ā
Ā
āI know,ā Chimney stood, and couldnāt help pulling pulling a surprised Buck into a hug. He let go and frowned. āWaitā¦if Maddieās parents are the ones in Australiaā¦where were you when you were away?ā
Ā
Buck laughed so much he snorted. āYeah, noā¦some secrets I know not to tell the person who blurts out most things that cross his mind.ā
Ā
āHey! Iām not that bad,ā Chimney scoffed, and yeah, maybe he wasā¦
Ā
Ā
It was the next day after Harryās birthdayā¦not Buckās, who heād told everyone was over a month earlier. Anyway, it had just turned August, and that could only mean one thingā¦
Ā
Harry was impatiently almost bouncing around his loft and straightening up things while he waited on the highly illegal portkey Ron had gotten to drop off his kid for a full month of bonding and trying to sell Teddy on moving in once he finished his last year at Hogwarts. Merlin, Andromeda was going to kill him if he succeeded, but worth it! He couldnāt wait to see Teddy again and have him close!
Ā
Harry jumped out of his skin even though he was expecting the crack and then crash of a gangly teenager right in the middle of his kitchen. āMerlinās balls,ā a purple haired teenager swore before picking himself up off the ground.
Ā
Harry attacked him with hugs and kisses all over Teddyās cheeks and ruffling the purple hair on his head. āDad!ā Teddy protested but smiled and laughed all the same.
Ā
āOoo, I like the nose ring,ā Harry noticed the new addition and tilted up Teddyās head to see it better. āIs it real or a metamorphmagus change? I need to know how you did that if itās a change because I canāt have metal jewelry as a firefighter but might want to give magically creating something like that a try.ā
Ā
Teddy slapped his hands off his face, and they got into a small slap fight in the process. āDad! Seriously! Grandma freaked; you arenāt supposed to ask me how to do it. You're supposed to be all old and dad-like.ā
Ā
āSo, you are doing it magically!ā Harry grinned and pulled his godson over to the couch to settle in.
Ā
āYeah, itās finicky but worth it. Now, what all are we going to do for the month Iām here? What all does LA have going for it anyway?ā Teddy challenged him with a grin. "All I hear about is muggle movie stars, and I'm woefully behind on move pop culture, which we are definitely catching up on while I'm here."
Ā
āTedsā¦I got plans, you and me, weāre going to have a blast,ā he said proudly, really excited to show his new town off to his kid.
Ā
Teddy yawned loudly. āAs long as Iām allowed a nap first. I might have portkeyed, but I'm pretty sure I can still get jetlag from that.ā
Ā
āYeah, well, weāre sitting on your bed, so letās get to fixing it up,ā Harry jumped up to transfigure the couch. It was going to be an epic month!
Notes:
Up Next: Josh's bad date...
Chapter 16: Expanding the Family
Notes:
(See the end of the chapter for notes.)
Chapter Text
āSo, how did it go? Do you like him? Was he working on things you want to study?ā Harry impatiently asked Teddy who had literally just walked into the loft and shed his fancy robe.
Ā
Teddy laughed, his brown hair flashing back to a hot pink and the nose ring reappearing. āYeah, I really do, and his work is just brilliant! Even Aunt Hermione was impressed. Also, he had blue hair, dyed, so at least he doesnāt seem like a stuck-up prat or anything.ā
Ā
āGood! We canāt have you apprenticing a stick in the mud,ā Harry said firmly, pulling Teddy over to the couch to sit and tell him everything.
Ā
Heād really wanted to go with Teddy to visit the technomage he wanted to apprentice under after Hogwarts, but it was still too dangerous that someone might recognize him and say something, especially a wizard who definitely knew how to use muggle technology as well as magical means of finding out things. Hermione had gone in his stead, something he was infinitely grateful for, but her advice had been to tone down Teddyās look significantly to be more āprofessional,ā and that just rubbed Harry the wrong way even if Teddy hadnāt seemed too bothered. Teddy should look and be whoever he wanted to be and how he was most comfortable.
Ā
āWell, itās a three-year program, and Iād be working with another apprentice too,ā Teddy began excitedly. āAnd, Dad, if you expect me to move in here, we have to do something about this place only being a one bedroom thatās not even really a bedroom. I mean, I still have to take my NEWTs, apply, and write an essay, but assuming he picks meā¦like, I need a door.ā
Ā
Harry just waved him off dismissively. Heād already thought about that. āTeds, if you move to LA, Iāll sell this place and buy somewhere bigger. Iāll even let you help me pick it out.ā
Ā
Teddy smiled broadly. āYou wonāt believe what Master Ramos is doing with conducting magic through circuit boards!ā
Ā
Harry settled in for an excited babble where he maybe understood one word in ten. Teddy was just brilliant, and he couldnāt be prouder. This Ramos guy would be an idiot not to take on Teddy as an apprentice. Andromeda was going to be upset at her baby moving to a new continent, but maybe Harry could convince her to at least winter in LA with them. So, they should probably look into getting a 3-bedroom anyway.
Ā
āI really need to call Victoire and tell her all about it,ā Teddy said, seeming to finally run out of steam when Harry couldnāt ask probing questions with the very little knowledge he had about technology, which was generally limited to what he needed on the job and video games with Christopher.
Ā
Harry just grinned and patted his leg. Those twoā¦well, theyād see if long-distance would work, but they may need to work out a budget for international portkeys since Ron couldnāt keep providing illegal ones for then. Harry was happy that Teddy found someone he was this excited about so young whether it ended working out for them or not.
Ā
āWell, I need to head out anyway. I told you Iām needed to keep Chris tonight, right? You going to be ok on your own? You know how to order food delivery, right?ā He asked, now wondering if maybe he should have told Eddie he wasnāt available, but heād also been worried that Teddy would feel smothered if he was around constantly when he was off work. Teddy needed space to explore and do things alone too.
Ā
Teddy just waved him off uncaringly. āYes, Iām better at using my phone than you are, and Iām only going to watch some telly and turn in early. It was a surprisingly tiring day. Have fun with my little brother.ā
Ā
Harry choked on his shock at that and didnāt know what to say. Technically, in the magical world, Christopher was actually legally a part of his family now that Harry could process the paperwork with MACUSA, but he was decidedly not Harryās son in any way, and that definitely didnāt need to get back to Eddie. Well, actually after all the paperwork, Eddie was a part of his family now tooā¦as well as Josh, he should probably mention that to Josh at leastā¦
Ā
The silence lasted so long he eventually decided to move on. āWell, er, call Josh if you get lonely or need anything then. Hermione is on a shift tonight; Iām sure she told you.ā
Ā
Teddy nodded, already pulling out his cellphone to call his girlfriend. āJosh has a date tonight, so no bothering him. He showed me the guyās profile pic, and heās cute. Joshās remark was that he could never date someone as famous as you again, but at least this one seemed pretty firmly muggle.ā
Ā
Harry laughed and really did hope this bloke worked out. Teddy and Josh had gotten on like ashwinders and fire, but he hadnāt remembered the two discussing love lives any time theyād all hung out together since Teddy came to LA. āWhen were you and Josh talking about dates?ā
Ā
Teddy shrugged. āWe got lunch when you were working yesterday. Heās a really cool guy. I kinda wish itād worked out with you two, but heās got the new bloke and wellā¦you got the hot vampire dad.ā
Ā
Harry just rolled his eyes. āEddie and I are not dating, but I do need to go now because I canāt send him to work on a shift without me and be hungry. If Iām not there to watch his back, then he should at least not be hungry and at full strength.ā
Teddy gave him an exasperated look that Harry really didnāt appreciate getting from his own kid. āWhatever you say Dad. You just keep telling yourself while you strip down and let him suck on your neck.ā
āYou read too many romance novels,ā Harry accused, trying to cover his blush while he grabbed the video game from his collection that Chris had wanted to play.
Ā
āNot me, Victoire, but she does tell me all about them in extremely graphic detail,ā Teddy grinned widely, and Harry hurried his ass towards the door, not needing any more information about his kidās relationship with his girlfriend.
Ā
āI really donāt want to hear anything about what you and Victoire get up to,ā He shot back before stopping and turning, catching Teddy right before he hit call on the phone. āYou two are being safe though, right? I know we had the talk and all several years ago, but we can do an updated one if, you know, itās more relevant now.ā
Ā
Harry narrowly dodged the stinging hex before snorting a laugh and shutting the door to his loft behind him. Unfortunately, that reminded him that he was probably now on call for Chrisās ātalkā one of these days since he would know the magical information and spells needed, and Eddie wouldnāt. Drat! Heād thought he was done with those.
Ā
Buck knocked on the door to the Diaz house about thirty minutes before he knew Eddie needed to go to work and grinned broadly when Chris impatiently threw the door open. āDid you bring the game?!ā
Ā
āGot it right here,ā Buck handed it over to the excited kid. Chris had been asking for it for months, and Eddie had eventually caved and bought it for him, but heād asked Buck to play through it once to make sure it was age appropriate since it was rated a little higher than theyād normally purchase for the 7-year-old. It was fine, not too much gore or anything, so no problem.
Ā
āYouāre early,ā Eddie said with a soft smile from the hallway where he was pulling on his uniform shirt while walking towards them.
Ā
Buck swallowed at the sight of tanned skin and abs that were quickly covered. Merlin, but he needed to get himself together. Feeding Eddie had become a personal torture for him as well as something he looked forward to. Donāt get him wrong, he wanted to help Eddie, and he really like the feeling of helping him. However, not showing just how much it affected him was tortuous when Buck really wanted to grind up against Eddie and moan throughout the entire process and maybe even return the favor and suck Eddie off at the end.
Ā
Buck had to physically shake those thoughts out of his head because heād gotten there early for a purpose, and he really couldnāt go into this already turned on or heād be in a very embarrassing situation. āHey, superman, why donāt you set up the game and maybe even play through a round without me. I need to talk with your dad about something before he goes to work.ā
Ā
āCool!ā Chris excitedly went ahead to set up the video game in the living room, not caring in the slightest about whatever the adults were up to.
Ā
āWhatās wrong? Did something happen?ā Eddie asked in concern while Buck pulled him by the arm back to his bedroom and shut the door.
Ā
āDude, youāre going to work on a shift without me. Iām not letting you go hungry, and itās been a long time since I gave you any blood,ā he said to Eddie, maybe a little accusingly because Eddie was just incapable of asking for help. āI know you supplement with the blood bank, but you have to be getting really hungry by now.ā
Ā
Eddie frowned and eventually shrugged. āNot really. I mean, Iām maybe a little hungry, but your blood just seems to keep me going much longer than normal. I just havenāt needed as much recently. Do you think itās because you have magic?ā
Ā
Actually, Buck didnāt know in the slightest. He figured that was probably it, but alsoā¦he was the immortal Master of Death, soā¦frankly, he was just glad he was edible and had no clue what was in his blood in the slightest.
Ā
Buck eventually just shrugged. āIāve really no idea, Maddie might know, but for now, letās top you off anyway since Iām here, and you said you could eat.ā Eddie laughed but joined Buck who had sat on the bed and scooted back to lean against the headboard. He was already removing his shirt to give Eddie better access.
Ā
āYou sound like youāre ordering take-out not letting me drink your blood,ā Eddie said wryly.
Ā
Buck sank into the endorphin high from Eddieās venom once his fangs pierced the thin skin of his neck. Actually, while the venom was really great, Buck had a sinking feeling his instant arousal was more because of how close Eddie was to him and that he was holding onto Buck so tenderly. Buck could smell Eddieās shampoo and feel his slightly slower than normal pulse under his fingers. It was sensory overload with everything that Buck ever wanted.
Ā
Ā
Eddie drank in Buckās blood, something he was quickly becoming addicted to. It wasnāt in the he wanted to drink all of Buckās blood and hurt him kind of way, but more as in the blood from the blood bank was starting to be less and less appetizing like cream of wheat in relation to a juicy steak. Plus, it was the one time he could hold Buck the way he always wanted. His hands skimmed over Buckās bare sides and around his back, pulling him closer and getting a small gasp from his lips. It was intoxicating.
Ā
There was a sharp knock at his door before it was shoved open with a creak. āDad can Buck and I order pizza laterā¦ā Chris trailed off at the sight of them.
Ā
Eddie quickly pulled back and frantically wiped the blood from his lips and tried to pull back in his fangs. He hoped Chris hadnāt seen, but it was frankly impossible for him to have missed what was going on. Buck was still blinking dazedly, not able to help at the moment.
Ā
āChris! Iām sorry! Umā¦ā He didnāt even know how to explain this in the slightest. Chris just stood there, balanced between the doorframe and his crutches blinking at them as if assessing the situation in whatever a 7-year-oldās brain would make of all this.
Ā
āIs this some kind of grown-up thing that you two are going to explain to me later, because gross if so, or is Dad actually a vampire?ā He asked, clearly putting the pieces together for himself. Draculaās fangs, but Eddie sometimes wished his kid wasnāt quite so smart.
Ā
Buck laughed loudly, seeming to recover as quickly as he could from Eddieās venom and the blood loss. āMate, I canāt believe you still havenāt told him. Heās a wizard,ā Buck said, slipping back into his British accent with how loopy he currently was.
Ā
āSoā¦vampireā¦cool,ā Chris nodded with a little smile as if it were nothing at all. Eddie didnāt know how to handle that. āAnd why didnāt anyone tell me?ā
Ā
āYouāre seven!ā Eddie gasped out finally, wiping his mouth again just to be sure there wasnāt any blood heād missed.
Ā
āAlmost eight!ā Chris protested with a pout that had Buck laughing again.
Ā
āSee Eds, heās almost eight,ā Buck said completely unhelpfully, but at least he was looking normal again and reached for his shirt.
Ā
āWait,ā Eddie sighed at the movement, and quickly, showing as little as possible to Chris, licked the wound on Buckās neck to heal the puncture marks closed since Buckās healing spells never seemed to do anything to them.
Ā
Chris just stood there, still looking at them. āSoā¦are you two like dating? Because thatād be pretty awesome, you know.ā
Eddieās brain probably stopped working while Buck coughed and seemed to choke on air. āNo, buddy, your dad and I arenāt dating. Iām just helping him out withā¦dinner, you know. I cook for you, and well, I have some extra blood to spare.ā
Ā
Chris and Eddie both raised matching eyebrows of incredulousness at that explanation. Buck rolled his eyes at them and roughly pulled his shirt over his head, messing up his hair in the process. āWhatever, you two are so related. Iāll get you a book on magical creatures so you can read up on vampires and everything youāll be studying in school later anyway,ā Buck told his kid, and Eddie really hoped Chris would share that book, or maybe they could read it together as bedtime stories.
Ā
Eddie looked at the clock and winced. āI really should get to work. I donāt want to just leave like this though. So, quick explanation. Chris, mijo, I was turned when you were just three, and you were too young to understand then. Iāve been meaning to tell you since I learned you had magic, but there was the tsunami and then the school coming to visit and then Buck being arrested, and it was just never a good time.ā
Ā
āUh huh,ā Chris said disbelievingly, and damn but Eddie was probably a bad influence because that sass was all him and not Shannon at all.
Ā
Buck stood and pulled Eddie off the bed behind him. āJust go get to work, you git. Iāll take care of superman here, and you just keep safe and donāt do anything I wouldnāt doā¦and probably avoid a few things I would.ā
Ā
āOh, hey! Dad is like extra strong and not as easy to hurt now, isnāt he?!ā Chris asked with excitement and something of relief in his eyes.
Ā
It was the first time Eddie realized that Chris might actually be worried about him when he went to work and ran into fires and repelled down cliffs. He felt like a terrible dad! Why hadnāt he realized Chris was worried, especially after losing his mom?
Ā
āOh, mijo,ā he knelt down and gave his son a big hug. āYeah, Iām pretty strong now. You donāt have to worry about me. Plus, I have Buck watching my back.ā
Ā
āJust not this shift,ā Buck huffed and made little hurrying motions. āWhich you are going to be late for.ā
Ā
āDad, pizza?!ā Chris called after him with a big grin on his face as if he hadnāt just learned his father was a supernatural creature. What had their lives turned into when this wasnāt world-shattering information and just taken in stride?
Ā
Eddie laughed and grabbed his truck keys. āYeah, yeah, just get some vegetables on it will you.ā
Ā
āDoes pepperoni count as a vegetable?ā Eddie heard his son ask when he closed the front door. He couldnāt help his laugh as he grabbed the mail from the box to look at better when he got time at the station later.
Ā
He quickly flipped through, hoping at least for there not to be any bills and paused and the thick envelope with a complex logo of several magical animals on it with the Ilvermorny school name stamped in the return address spot. Ah, so this must be the school information the Dahlia woman had promised to send along. He went to flip to the next letter and paused again when he saw who it was addressed to. He had to take a moment to compose himself at seeing the letter addressed to: The Potter-Diaz Household
Ā
Great, he was going to have to tell Buck the school really did think they were married. How had the woman even remembered that in the midst of a wanted fugitive being arrested in front of her? This was so going to come back to bite him in the ass.
Ā
Ā
Buck shot up from where heād been asleep on the couch in Eddieās living room at the first ring of his cellphone and with his wand in his hand, ready to attack. It took a second, but he slightly relaxed when it sank in that it was only his phone. Buck glanced at the clock and panicked again when he saw it was only about 3am. No one called at that time for good news. Something was very wrong! He scrambled to grab his phone off the coffee table and panicked even more at the name on the screen. Why was Josh calling him at 3am?!
Ā
āHello!ā He answered frantically. āJosh?! Are you ok?! Whatās wrong?!ā
āBuck?ā Josh gasped out. It sounded like heād been crying, maybe still was. āUm, Iāmā¦ā
Ā
Buckās heart was racing as he waited for Josh to say whatever it was. āAre you hurt?ā
Ā
āYeah,ā Josh finally breathed out in answer. āUhā¦I was mugged.ā
Ā
āMerlin,ā Buck stood up from the couch, not knowing what to do. āWhere are you?ā
Ā
āIām at LA General Hospital,ā Josh said, and Buck let go only a slight amount of his worry. At least Josh was getting medical attention and not calling him from a ditch somewhere. āCan you come get me? They wonāt let me go without someone to take me home.ā
Ā
Buckās brain scrambled since he was at Eddieās house watching Chris. Eddie was on shift, and Maddie was too. What did he do? He couldnāt leave Chris, and he couldnāt take him to the hospital if Josh was in as bad of a shape as he sounded like he was in. Teddy could easily watch Chris, but Eddie hadnāt met Teddy yet, and asking someone to watch a kid when the parent hadnāt met them was not done. But also, Buck didnāt want to send Teddy to the hospital because he couldnāt drive, and Josh might not be in good enough shape to apparate. He felt like there were no good options.
Ā
A painful sob ripped through Buckās heart from the other end of the line. Josh was part of the Potter family now and Harry had a responsibility to him. Hopefully, Eddie would forgive him. āYeah Josh, Iāll be there in just a little bit. Iāll be right there,ā he said, coming to a quick decision at the sound of that sob.
Ā
āThanks, Buck,ā Josh said, and his heart broke again. āI knew youād come.ā
Ā
When Josh hung up, Buck immediately called Eddie and prayed heād pick up the phone. The call went to voicemail so they must be out of the station at an emergency. Buck swore and hoped again that Eddie would one day forgive him.
Ā
āEddie! Iām so sorry. Josh was mugged, and heās at the hospital. He called me to come get him, and Maddieās on shift like youā¦and I need to go. I canāt leave him there when heās scared and in pain. Iām going to have Teddy come watch Chris. I promise Chris is in good hands. I trust Teddy with my life, and Iām so sorry. I know you havenāt met him yet, but heās really good with kids and babysits his cousins all the time, and I swear heāll keep Chris safe. Iām so sorry!ā
Ā
Buck ended the call and did a little spell, copying the coordinates into a text message he sent Teddy. He then called his godson and hoped to Merlin he picked up. āDad, whatās wrong?!ā Teddy asked in just as worried of a tone as Buck had answered the phone before.
Ā
āJosh was mugged,ā Buck said quickly. āI need you to apparate to Eddieās house and watch Chris for me while I go pick him up and handle whatever is going on with the hospital and police.ā
Ā
Teddy swore colorfully, and Buck heard shuffling to indicate he was getting out of bed and probably throwing on jeans. āJosh was on a date tonight,ā Teddy reminded him, getting a swear from Buck this time in response. This whole situation was starting to sound worse and worse. āI have to disconnect to apparate, hang on.ā
Ā
The line went dead, but just two seconds later and a crack of apparition had Buck stumbling backwards. He really should have realized Teddy was going to appear right where heād done the spell to get the coordinates. Teddy looked around the room with frantic eyes.
Ā
āWhereās the kid?ā He asked, getting right to business. āYou need to introduce me before you leave so I donāt scare him in the morning.ā
Ā
Buck nodded firmly. Teddy was such a good kid, really, Andromeda had done an amazing job raising him. āThis way,ā Buck led the way to Chrisās room and shuffled in to kneel beside the bed.
Ā
Buck softly shook Chris awake, getting a grumble and a sleepy blink. āDad?ā
Ā
āNo, buddy, itās just me,ā Buck smoothed his hair back while Chris tried to focus on him while being mostly asleep still. āMr. Josh was hurt tonight, and I need to go pick him up from the hospital,ā he said.
Ā
āOh,ā Chris tried to sit up, clearly planning to climb out of bed and go with him.
Ā
āNo, Chris, you stay here. I just wanted to tell you Iām leaving my son Teddy here with you to take care of you while Iām away. See, thatās Teddy. Heās really nice and has been wanting to meet you for a long time,ā Buck motioned to the teenager who was smiling and waving from the doorway.
Ā
Chris just blinked blearily between them. āYou have a kid?ā
Ā
Buck was confused for a second at the question. He was sure heād talked about Teddy before. Though, he supposed heād probably mentioned him as his godson. He couldnāt exactly explain away a 17-year-old kid when he was only supposed to be 28, and Teddy was actually his godson anyway, so it wasnāt a lie.
Ā
āYeah, Teddyās my godson,ā Buck explained, hoping that would do for now. Chris was asleep enough still that he didnāt question it at least. āI donāt know if Iāll be back before you wake up or your dad gets home, but Teddy will stay with you until one of us gets here, ok?ā
Ā
āYeah, ok, Buck,ā Chris sank back into his pillow, clearly not really awake at all. Buck just hoped he remembered all this when he actually woke up and wasnāt scared by Teddy being there. āTell Mr. Josh I hope he feels better soon.ā
āI will, love,ā Buck kissed his forehead and stood, positive that Chris was already asleep again.
Ā
He followed Teddy out of the room and closed the door behind them again. āI really hope he remembers youāre here in the morning. Iāll try to get back as soon as I can, but Eddie will be here pretty early after his shift if Iām not.ā
Ā
āI got it, Dad. Iāll take good care of him,ā Teddy assured him firmly and pushed him towards the door. āIāll call if I need anything, and Iāll send a patronus if you donāt answer and itās important.ā Buck gave Teddy a quick, fierce hug, knowing his son was exceptionally capable; heād trained Teddy himself.
Ā
āThank you! Love you!ā He ran out the door to his jeep.
Ā
Ā
Eddie tiredly jumped out of the back of the ambulance when Hen parked it back in the apparatus bay of the fire station. It had been a frustrating accident theyād been called out to, but at least it seemed like everyone was going to be ok. Theyād had one call right after another all night though, so he was dead on his feet at this point. Actually, it was an odd feeling because he still felt strong and had a lot of energy with Buckās blood running through his veins, but he was more mentally tired than anything else.
Ā
Finally, he was able to sit down though and just rest up in the loft with a cool glass of water. He pulled his phone out to check to see if Buck had sent any more pictures of his and Chrisās evening. Heād already gotten one where it looked like Chris was pretending to be a vampire, one of all the pizza theyād ordered (which definitely didnāt have a lot of veggies on it), and one where clearly Chris had beaten Buck at the new video game and was gloating.
Ā
He frowned at seeing a voicemail from Buck instead. No one ever left voicemails except for telemarketers. His anxiety skyrocketed as he hit the play button. He had to listen to the message twice before it sank in what Buck was telling him. Who the hell was Teddy?
Ā
Eddie was hitting Buckās contact information and calling before heād even processed anything. After two rings, it connected. āEddie! Iām so sorry! There wasnāt anyone else I could call. I swear Chris is fine, and I trust Teddy completely. I know I should never leave your kid with anyone you donāt know, but reallyā¦ā
Ā
āBuck!ā Eddie cut him off before the rant could spiral any further. āItās fine. I trust you. If you say this Teddy person is trustworthy, then I believe you. How is Josh though? Is he ok?ā
Ā
āNo, but he will be,ā Buck breathed out in clear relief. āHe was beaten up pretty badly. Weāre waiting on the doctor to sign him out right now, but itās taking forever, and the cops want to talk with him again before he leaves.ā
Ā
āAny idea who did it?ā Eddie asked, now much more worried. This sounded really serious.
Ā
āErā¦yeah, but hey, Iāll talk to you later about it,ā Buck said evasively. Eddie got the picture that he was probably sitting with Josh right then and didnāt want to go over it again in front of him. Josh shouldnāt have to keep reliving what happened over and over again.
Ā
āIām going to take Josh to my place and get him settled in there until I can do a check on his wards and make sure theyāre as strong as possible. I might not be back before you get home. I promise Chris is fine though, and I made sure and gave Teddy your phone number too in case he needs anything. I really am sorry, Eddie.ā
Ā
āItās all good, Buck. I told you, I trust you. You just take care of Josh,ā he assured Buck. They hung up after that, and Eddie ran a hand down his face. It seemed even someone as normal as Josh with a low danger job wasnāt even immune to catastrophes happening. Theyād all been hit with way too much recently. Eddie wished their little family could catch a good long break.
Ā
Rationally, Eddie knew why Buck had been frantic about what Eddieās response would be to his leaving Chris with someone else. If it was literally anyone else, Eddie would have been spitting mad at them for asking someone to watch Chris who he didnāt know. That was just unconscionable. However, It was Buckā¦Buck wasā¦Dios, but Buck was Chrisās other parentā¦
Ā
The school envelope addressed to the Potter-Diaz household burned in the back of his mind. He wasnāt upset because he trusted Buck to make the same decisions for Chris that Eddie himself would make. He trusted that if Buck said this person was safe and trustworthy then they were. Heād been right before; heād already fallen off a cliff with Buck and there was no going back now.
Ā
Ā
Eddie pulled up to his home and everything looked perfectly fine on the outside, not that he expected anything to not. He was more than a little nervous to meet this new person though. Knowing what he knew of Buck, this Teddy person was probably a friend of Harry Potterās and another wizard if he had to guess. Eddie was still getting used to this whole supernatural world, so he wasnāt exactly sure how to navigate the situation when another magical person was introduced into their lives.
Ā
He unlocked the door and stepped in his house to hear cartoons playing on the TV in the living room, and his son chatting with someone in the kitchen with what smelled like French toast, if he had to guess, wafting in the air. It smelled really good even for a vampire who only kind-of liked human food at this point.
Ā
āChris, Iām home,ā he called out.
Ā
āDad!ā Chris yelled back from the kitchen. āCome have some French toast! Teddy makes it with strawberries on top!ā
Ā
Eddie blinked in surprise at the pink haired teenager with a nose ring who was plating up some delicious-looking French toast for him in his kitchen. āHey, Mr. Diaz. Iām Teddy,ā he smiled and handed the plate over. Eddie had been right about one thing, the kid had a British accent, so he definitely knew Buck as Harry, not Buck. āDid you have a good shift?ā
Ā
āUhā¦yeah, um, and call me Eddie,ā he said. He wasnāt sure what he was expecting, but maybe an adult with normal hairā¦or at least someone who didnāt immediately smell like wet dog.
Ā
āYouāre a werewolf,ā he said when the scent finally registered, and he immediately tensed. It wasnāt the same as the people heād been fighting before, but it was very close.
Ā
āSeriously?! Thatās awesome! Why didnāt you say anything?ā Chris enthused around a full bite of food.
Ā
Teddy laughed, and ruffled Chrisās hair fondly. Eddie stiffened even more, some ingrained response to a werewolf being that close to his son. He forcibly pushed it down though, knowing it was only a fear response to the kidās species. The teenager himself didnāt look dangerous in the slightest.
Ā
āActually, Iām not. Iām only half-werewolf. I donāt transform or anything,ā Teddy explained and sat at the table across from Chris. Eddie wasnāt sure what that meant about only being half-werewolf, but it explained why the kidās smell wasnāt exactly the same.
Ā
āAh man! Itād be so cool if I had vampire dad and a werewolf brother. That sucks,ā Chris pouted, and what? Eddie was pretty sure he hadnāt heard that right. He tried to process, but it just wasnāt processing. He was literally still standing there in the kitchen holding a plate of French toast and just staring.
Ā
āDad called about an hour ago,ā Teddy addressed him with a small smile. Eddie made himself sit at the table with his plate and try to follow who the kid was talking about. āHe said Josh is at the loft and sleeping now. He doesnāt have any broken bones, but heās pretty bruised and cut up. Aunt Hermione is stopping byā¦ā Teddy looked at the clock. āProbably right about now to speed along his healing with some spells and potions.ā
Ā
Eddie nodded slowly. That was good to hear about Josh, but⦠āUhā¦Dad? Who?ā
Ā
āYeah,ā Chris swallowed this time before speaking at least. āTeddy said that since heās Buckās son, and Buck is basically my second dad, then we get to be brothers now! Isnāt that awesome?!ā
Ā
āOf course, little bro,ā Teddy gave Chris a fist bump that was probably pretty sticky with syrup.
Ā
āWaitā¦hold onā¦youāre Buckās son?!ā Eddieās brain finally processed enough to ask.
Ā
He wasnāt even going to address Chrisās belief that Buck was his second dad, because yeah, heād already figured that out himself at like stupid early that very morning thank you very much. But how the hell hadnāt he known Buck had a son?! Like all those times when he thought Buck was so good at being a parent with Chris when heād never had a kid before, and low and behold there was a kid there the whole time!!
Ā
Teddy shrugged as if this wasnāt making Eddie think through his entire relationship with his best friend since the moment theyād met. āWell, yeahā¦Harry, but yeah,ā he said, not helping Eddie process at all.
Ā
āBut, youāreā¦how old was Buck when you were born?!ā Eddie stuttered out because he was pretty sure his guess at about late teens for the kidās age was correct. That didnāt realistically add up.
Ā
Teddy laughed and stood to refill Chrisās empty glass with more milk from the fridge. āWell, first of all, us mages age a little slower than normal humans once we hit our majority, so like 200 is kind of old age for us.ā
Eddieās brain might have broken a little right then. His eyes snapped to Chris because that meantā¦that meant heād have longer with his son. Some dark knot of anxiety he hadnāt even realized was there loosened slightly in his chest. āOh, okā¦but Buckā¦ā
Ā
āIs actually my godfather, not my biological father,ā Teddy finished, actually making a lot more sense now. Now that he said thatā¦Buck might have mentioned a godson. āMy bio dad was the werewolf, and he was best friends with Harryās dad growing up. Harry raised me with my grandma though when my parents died in the war. Iāve been in boarding school for a while now, but before, I lived almost as much at his house as Grandmaās.ā
Ā
Eddie still didnāt know what that meant for how old Buck had been during the war and when heād taken his son in. Buck still would have had to have been really young, unless⦠āWait, is Buck not actually 28? You said mages age slowerā¦ā
Ā
Teddy didnāt meet his eyes and instead took a bite of his toast. He slowly chewed and swallowed. āErm, wellā¦so Dad might be a little older than that, but you really should talk with him about that though.ā
Ā
āIs Buck older than me?!ā Eddie sputtered out, not seeing that revelation coming. Yeah, it was more shocking that apparently Buck had a kid that heād never mentionedā¦ok, yeah, Eddie was now actually sure Buck had mentioned a Teddy before now that he thought about it, but not in a way that would have led Eddie to realize how big a part of Buckās life the teen actually was. But stillā¦how old was Buck?
Ā
Teddy frowned and stared at him. āErm, mate, youāre a vampireā¦you kind of donāt age, so Iām not even going to try to guess how old you might be.ā
Ā
āWhat? Dad doesnāt age?ā Chris asked through another mouthful of food. āThatās awesome! I need that book on magical creatures!ā
Ā
āChew and swallow first,ā Eddie reminded him before taking a bite of his own food. It was actually really good. Buckās kid was a decent cook, not that Eddie would have expected anything else when Buck was such a good cook himself. āThis is really goodā¦and yes, Chris, I stopped aging at 28 even though Iām 33 now.ā
Ā
Teddy grinned at him, and Eddie was suddenly sure he wasnāt going to like the answer. āDadās 36,ā he said, and he had Eddie just laughing right there at the table. Buck, who he thought of as a kid a lot of the time when heād first started working at the 118, who was supposed to be 27 then, was actually older than him! Now he wondered how old Maddie was!
Ā
āTeddy was telling me all about magic school,ā Chris changed the subject while wiping the sticky from his face with a napkin.
Ā
āYeah, but I go to Hogwarts in Scotland, Iām sure youāll go somewhere more local,ā Teddy said. āI know thereās a day school in LA. Iām trying to get an apprenticeship with a technomage here in LA once I graduate, and he said heād gone to a school here.ā
Ā
āUhā¦a what?ā Chris frowned and looked at Eddie who shrugged having no clue either.
Ā
āHeās a wizard who studies the interaction between magic and technology,ā Teddy explained with an excited grin, clearly this was something he was really interested in. āMost mages just assume technology doesnāt work around magic, but Master Ramos is working on blending the two fields and helping bring the magical world to the 21st Century. Itāll be brilliant to have access to things like the Internet and smart phones in magical spaces if we can find a way to blend them with magic.ā
Ā
āThatās so cool!ā Chris enthused even though Eddie was pretty certain his kid still didnāt know what Teddy was talking about in the slightest, but Teddy was a teenager with a nose ring and a weird hair color, so therefore he was probably Chrisās favorite person now.
Ā
āDad, can Teddy and Buck come over for dinner later?ā Chris asked him with his patented puppy dog eyes.
Ā
āI donāt know, mijo,ā Eddie chuckled. Actually, he thought heād like to talk to Buck alone first. They needed to clear the air a little more from all the secrets theyād been keeping. Dinner wouldnāt be the worst idea though. āI think it depends on how Mr. Josh is doing. Iāll ask, but donāt be upset if they canāt tonight. How long are you here in LA, Teddy?ā
Ā
āJust over two more weeks,ā he said. āSchool starts back on September 1st.ā
Ā
āWell, then, weāll definitely have to have you over for a movie night before then,ā Eddie offered with what he hoped was a welcoming smile. If Buck was going to be as big of a part of his life as heād become, then Eddie knew he needed to get to know Buckās kid. He understood why Buck hadnāt talked more about Teddy when he was trying to pretend to be younger than he was, on the run from the law, and Teddy was off at school anyway, but now that Eddie knew, he should probably welcome in Chrisās new brotherā¦uh, best friend, yeah, friendā¦
Ā
Ā
It had been a long time since Harry had been an auror hunting down criminals for a living. The skillset had never left him though as ingrained as it had become from his own childhood. Now, he had an excuse to call forth those skills once more.
Ā
Josh had been attacked by his own date, and he was in pain and terrified, and Harry was not going to let that slide. Plus, it didnāt sit right with him that the attacker had taken Joshās wallet but had then left it in a location where it was easily found, and nothing was missing. Something was wrong with that. Why would he take the wallet, but then leave it behind in such a way it couldnāt be missed by a police sweep? There had to be a bigger plan at work here. At least, Harry kind of hoped there was a bigger plan and that this wasnāt just a senseless assault on his friend. Something about that would hurt worse.
Ā
Harry ignored the text message from Eddie asking if he and Teddy wanted to get dinner at their place that evening. Heād respond in a little bit. He was still worried about leaving a half-werewolf at a territorial vampireās house, but Eddie and Teddy were both good people, and it sounded like itād all worked out if they were talking about dinner at least. Harry knew he owed Eddie a long explanation since heād purposefully not mentioned Teddy much over the years heād been at the 118. Heād make that explanation happen just as soon as this was handled.
Ā
Right now though, Hermione was currently with Josh and needed to get home eventually. If Harry was going to catch this guy before the trail went cold, he needed to get to work now. He wanted to be able to report back to Josh that his attacker was in custody and not able to hurt him ever again. By taking Joshās wallet, the guy would have Joshās address from his ID. Harryās wards about Joshās apartment were basically Gringotts level of paranoid, but still, he didnāt want Josh to be looking over his shoulder whenever he left his apartment to go to work or go shopping or whatever.
Ā
Joshās attacker wasnāt magical from what Josh had explained of their interactions, but Harry was still able to isolate his biological signature from Joshās wallet that he was currently holding in his hand with a tracking spell making it glow a soft yellow. Heād stood in the park where the attack had taken place and cast a tracking spell. A competent magical criminal would have known to block themselves from this spell, but a muggle, well, Harry was currently outside of an abandoned warehouse and watching a group of people in front of a table with plans laid out and talking over them.
Ā
There was a bigger plan here. Harry still wasnāt sure what that was, but the guy clearly wasnāt working alone. What could they have needed from Josh for whatever they were doing though? He was only a 9-1-1 dispatcher, well, a supervisor, but still, itās not like he worked at FBI headquarters or something. No matter, Harry was almost certain none of the people in the warehouse were magical. Even if they were, well, he wasnāt going to give them time to react. Josh was his family and responsibility now. The House of Potter did not let attacks against them slideā¦even if the House of Potter had only been Harry and Teddy until only just recently. The Elder Wand slipped into his hand, and Harry stepped into the building.
Ā
āSo, which of you arseholes beat up my friend last night?ā Harry asked the group. Guns whipped out and pointed at him. āRight, so weāre doing this the hard way thenā¦ā
Notes:
Up Next: Bobby and Athena host a party...
Chapter 17: Found
Notes:
(See the end of the chapter for notes.)
Chapter Text
Harry was just erasing his fingerprints and magical signature from everything in the room when a pop of portkey travel sounded behind him. āHarry, you know Iām based out of New York, not LA, right?ā Cho sighed good naturedly even as she immediately began to assess the scene.
Ā
Harry put his wand away and smiled. āYou and Adam could move to LA. Iād help you find a place and even take you to dinner. I think youād like it here,ā he suggested as a joke but actually meaning it. Adam was a good bloke, and heād missed Cho.
Ā
Cho didnāt look amused though and motioned to the unconscious and bound group of people on the floor of the warehouse. āWhy am I here? What did you do this time?ā
Ā
āWell, I couldnāt exactly reach out to a LA auror now, could I?ā He huffed. āI might not be wanted for crimes here anymore, but Iām supposed to be lying low.ā
Ā
āWhich this is not,ā she glared, pointing a finger at him warningly. āI guess the better question is, what did they do?ā
Ā
āThey attacked a member of my family,ā he said, stubbornly crossing his arms and standing firm on this. āAs the head of the Potter family, itās my right to defend my family and investigate threats to them, even as a private citizen.ā
Ā
Cho nodded slowly, stepping closer to the people and starting to look around, investigating the situation and logging evidence with short waves of her wand. āYes, I got your stack of paperwork for new family members. The Potter family has grown significantly recently. If Iād known I was going to end up as your personal auror, I may have thought twice about vouching for you,ā she looked up with a smile that thankfully said she really didnāt regret it. āNow, was it the vampire or the squib they attackedā¦wait, it wasnāt the kid or Teddy, was it? Is Teddy ok?!ā
Ā
āTeddy is fine,ā he assured her vehemently since Cho was definitely getting very concerned at the thought.
Ā
While Cho had probably never met Teddy in person, that he knew of anyway, everyone who had known Remus and Tonks were understandably a little protective. Harry winced because he was more than a little concerned that if it had actually been Teddy or Chris that heād be asking Eddie if there was a vampire system for getting rid of bodies over calling in an auror. Thankfully, they werenāt there though and hopefully never would be.
Ā
āIt was Joshā¦the squib,ā he said with a grimace, knowing that was a terrible way of describing his new family member, but itās not like Cho knew him or anyone else in his āfamilyā besides Teddy.
Ā
Cho nodded and then cocked her head to one side in confusion. āHarryā¦there are no wands here or any magical itemsā¦these are muggles. Why the hell am I here?ā
Ā
āErā¦ā
Ā
āYouāre a firefighter,ā she looked up and pinned him with another glare. āYou know muggle cops. This is their jurisdiction, not mine.ā
Ā
āWellā¦about thatā¦ā
Ā
Cho growled in frustration. āRight, so Iām guessing none of these people will have any idea of who you are or why they are currently unconscious, will they? And I suppose you have an excellent idea about what all was going on here and their plans too, hmm?ā
Ā
Harry shifted his weight guiltily. āAs a private citizen, obliviating and casting compulsions on muggles is very illegal. I am well aware of that.ā
āHarry,ā Cho put her hands on her hips and just glared.
Ā
āHow much trouble am I in?ā He winced. This had better not violate his deal with MACUSA because heād have to go on the run again, and heād just settled into the belief that those days were behind him. He didnāt want to go back.
Ā
āYouāll be in more trouble if you donāt tell me exactly what you did and what you learned from them,ā she pulled over a rickey folding chair to look at the plans on the table while listening to him. āSo, tell me a hypothetical story, Harry Potter.ā
āAh,ā so that was how they were going to play it. Well, he could work with that. āSo, hypothetically, these imbeciles were planning an art heist. Also, thereās one member of the crew not currently here, who I can give you their name and location.ā
Ā
āYes, because you overheard them talking about this person,ā Cho added in with a smirk and shake of her head.
Ā
āOf course,ā he smiled and motioned to the plans. āThey attacked Josh because heās a supervisor at 9-1-1 dispatch, and they needed to clone his credentialsā¦Oddly enough, itās just coincidental that heās a member of my family. I was concerned heād been targeted.ā
Ā
āWhatās 9-1-1?ā Cho looked up at him with wide, confused eyes.
Ā
Harry just blinked. āOh my God, Choā¦please tell me youāre kidding?! Youāre a bloody auror in America!ā
Ā
She snorted a laugh before erupting in giggles. āIām sorry, but you had to have seen your face right then,ā she pulled herself together with another smirk at him for good measure. āI liaise with the muggle police often. Iām aware of their emergency systems. Why did they need your Joshās credentials though? What good would that do to an art heist?ā
Ā
Harry rolled his eyes but continued. āHypothetically, I may have learned they planned to take over the dispatch center to have control over where the police and emergency services were deployed during their heist.ā
Ā
Cho raised an impressed and concerned eyebrow this time. āThat would have been catastrophic. Taking over all the emergency services for a city the size of LAā¦the damage they could have causedā¦ā
Ā
āI know,ā he winced, well aware of how important dispatch was to his job and all emergency services. The damage to LA could have been horrifying, but Hermione worked there in the office too. He couldnāt imagine what he would have done if Hermione and Josh both were being held hostage somewhere, probably much worse than some stunners, compulsion spells, and obliviation.
Ā
Cho stood and transfigured her auror robes into a smart suit. āRight, so Firefighter Buckley, do you happen to know a police officer here in LA who would be willing to help a lone federal agent who happened to have stumbled upon this heist in the course of investigating a separate crime?ā
Ā
āOh, thank Merlin! And you Cho! I owe you!ā He said with as much feeling as he could put into it.
Ā
āYeah, yeah, Iām holding you to owing me this time, Potter,ā she smiled. āNowā¦I need that other criminalās name too.ā
Harry nodded and wrote down the information the woman heād compelled to spill all her secrets had told him about. The guy was already working as a guard in dispatch, so they needed to get him out quickly. āSergeant Athena Grant is your cop for this, but you need to keep my name out of it, both names if possible.ā
Cho nodded and took the paper in one hand while conjuring handcuffs with the other to place on the idiots before removing Harryās stunners. āHarryā¦this isnāt laying low. You need to do a better job than this if weāre going to keep you safe,ā she warned while Harry helped her secure the prisoners.
Ā
āItās still just you all at MACUSA who know about me, plus my family. As long as you keep me out of this report or only loop in Auror Barclay, I donāt think thereās anyone else who could leak the information,ā he said, hoping all the aurors heād been around in New York could keep their mouths shut. Thankfully, they didnāt know the name āEvan Buckleyā or that heād originally been arrested in LA though. So, even if the information did get out, he should still be relatively safe. The United States was a very big place.
Ā
āYouāre forgetting Dahlia,ā she said with a wince. āThat woman means well, butā¦ā
Ā
Harry had forgotten about her. āSheās only a teacher at Ilvermorny, and thereās really no reason for me to be connected to Chrisās records right now when heās not even attending, so I donāt really see what she could do.ā Regardless, there wasnāt anything they could do about it at this point.
Ā
āI hope youāre right,ā Cho sighed. āNow, get out of here so I can call your Sergeant Grant and do some liaisingā¦I think Iāll be Homeland Security this time, no one really knows what they do or questions their presence.ā
Ā
āHave fun!ā Harry grinned and turned on the spot.
Ā
Harry stumbled a step into the Diaz living room and took in his kid and wellā¦his kid playing Mario Kart on the couch. āSoā¦Iām guessing those two meeting went well?ā
Ā
He looked over at Eddie sheepishly who crossed his arms and gave him a dangerous glare. āEvan Buckley, you are going to come over here and fill me in on your son and why I havenāt heard anything about him before today.ā
Ā
Buck drug his feet but walked over to the kitchen as if to his doom. āOooo, Dadās in trouble!ā Teddy teased, getting a giggle from Chris who looked to be winning the game, of course.
Ā
āIn my defense,ā Buck tried. āI did mention Teddy, several times, itās not my fault that people donāt assume youāre actually raising your godson with their grandmother.ā
Ā
āUh huh,ā Eddieās glare held for a second longer before his entire face softened and he reached out to pull Buck into his arms. āHey, I get it. You were a fugitive, and he seems like a good kid. I could have used a heads up that heās part werewolf though. My fangs were a little itchy at that realization when I walked in this morning.ā
Buck melted against his friend and let the comfort soak in. Heād been on high alert ever since his phone rang and was just recently in a situation where he was dodging bullets and attacking art thieves. It had been a very long day.
Ā
āHowās Josh?ā Eddie asked and unfortunately let him go.
Ā
Buck felt his anxiety wash right back over him. āHeās not good. Heāll healā¦actually after Hermioneās potions and spells, heās mostly physically healed already, but I have a feeling itās going to be a while before he ever feels safe again, even with me strengthening his wards.ā
Ā
āWhat about his attacker? You said he knew who it was?ā Eddie prodded.
Ā
āErā¦so about thatā¦Iām pretty sure Athenaās arresting them as we speak,ā he gave Eddie what he hoped was a very innocent look.
Ā
āHow many pieces are they in?ā Teddy unhelpfully asked out from the couch.
Ā
āAll their pieces are still unfortunately attached,ā Buck rolled his eyes. It had been a temptation to give them a taste of what theyād done to Josh, but he didnāt want to press his luck with how much Cho would be willing to cover for him.
Ā
āDraculaās fangs, Buckā¦I keep forgetting that youāre actually a fighter,ā Eddie ran a hand over his face like he was constantly having to reassess who Buck was, and yeah, that was fair.
Ā
āSorry,ā he shrugged, not being much help there. He wasnāt the best at opening up to people, even those closest to him, but he would try for Eddie.
Ā
āOoo, can I swear by Dracula now too since Dad doesnāt let me swear by God?ā Chris actually paused the game to ask with a wide smile.
Ā
āOnly because your bisabuela would box your ears,ā Eddie shook his head with a fond smile.
Ā
āNo, little bro, youāre a wizard now. Itās Merlin we swear by,ā Teddy corrected with a nudge to Chrisās shoulder.
Ā
āI hear Houdini is popular for you Americans too,ā Buck added, playing up his British accent just a little for effect.
Ā
āIs there a famous werewolf?ā Chris asked starting the game again, and ignoring the adults once more.
Ā
Teddy grimaced, and Harry felt the pain. Vampires were definitely not as discriminated against as werewolves in their society. Greyback was a large reason for that even this far removed from the war.
Ā
āThe famous ones are more infamous than revered,ā he explained. āBut still, youāre a wizardā¦oh, you can definitely swear by Helga Hufflepuff thoughā¦ā
Ā
āHeās not going to Hogwarts,ā Buck rolled his eyes and tossed a balled-up napkin at Teddyās head from the kitchen. āAnd heād be a Gryffindor if he was!ā
Ā
āYou wish!ā Teddy ducked and his character fell off the screen, losing him the race. āMy little brother is so a Hufflepuff with me!ā
Ā
Buck snorted indignantly and looked back at Eddie who had some kind of expression on his face that Buck just couldnāt read. āHey, Iām sorry about the whole little brother thing. Teddy has always wanted a sibling, but Iām not sure why heās going so strong on this now,ā he tried to explain to keep Eddie from freaking out or whatever.
Ā
āWhatās a Hufflepuff? Thatās not like a magical drug thing, is it?ā Eddie asked instead of addressing whatever this situation was. Buck was so very relieved.
Ā
āNah, you see thereās this house system in our boarding school to basically keep all the teenagers in line and sorted into smaller groupsā¦really, I think itās pretty arbitrary, but that doesnāt mean Iām not still a proud Gryffindor,ā he began.
Ā
āGryffindork!ā Teddy shot back from where he was already losing a new match on the game.
Ā
Ā
Athena Grant ticked off another item on her extensive list for the cookout she and Bobby were hosting for their 118 family and the extended family that came with them like Maddie and Karen and the kids. It had been a rough year for the 118 as a whole with the ladder truck and the tsunami and it was only now October.
Ā
While heād bounced back from all heād been through and had been back at work a while now, Buck had seemed more down than usual since early September, or at least thatās what her husband had said. This get together was desperately needed for some time they could all relax and de-compress. Plus, it was Halloween, and a good occasion to dress up and eat way too much sugar, then the kids could all go trick-or-treating together. Ostensibly, the whole cookout excuse was to celebrate Halloween together since they were off shift, but really, Athena and Bobby both were hoping it would boost Buckās mood from whatever it was that was bothering him.
Ā
The decorations were in the trunk, Mae was picking up the costumes, Bobby was on food, Chimney was bringing ice, drinks were next on her list. Athena pulled into her normal go-to store for a few good bottles of wine in addition to all the non-alcoholic options for the kids and Bobby. She liked this place because they employed a sommelier to give advice on food pairings and taste. She really liked wine, but sometimes she just ended up buying a bottle with an interesting label if she couldnāt find the pinot noir she normally bought. Plus, this was a special occasion, they could use something a little nicer.
Ā
It didnāt take long for the sommelier to find her while she browsed the shelves. āCan I help you find a wine today?ā The woman asked, a slight British accent marking her words. She was extremely well dressed, and Athena had to wonder how much being a sommelier at a small wine shop could pay. It was a nice place though, so possibly pretty well.
Ā
Athena smiled thankfully at the woman. She didnāt recognize this employee, but she could be new itās not like Athena was at the store weekly or anything. āYes, please, youāre a lifesaver. Weāre grilling out for Halloween and doing burgers, jerk chicken, and grilled vegetables,ā she explained. āAny suggestions for something with a lower alcohol content that would work with that? I donāt particularly want my guests sloshed.ā
Ā
āI am happy to help,ā the woman smiled brightly, her perfect white teeth flashing in a little too fake of a smile before she turned and motioned for Athena to follow her. āI have just the bottle.ā
Ā
Ā
Buck sat in his jeep for a moment after parking at Bobby and Athenaās house. He really was looking forward to being around all this friends and family, but this was just a rough day every year. Normally, he would be on shift and busy, and that actually made it easier to handle. Itās just that Halloween had never been a good time for him with his parents dying, the troll, the chamber being opened, Sirius going off the deep end and scaring everyone, the Triwizard Tournament, and so on and so forth over the years. He could fake excited for the kids though and pretend he wasnāt traumatized by the day as a whole.
Ā
He just needed another moment to gather himself.
Ā
A sharp knock sounded on his window, making Buck jump. He breathed out a laugh at Eddie smiling at him from outside. āThatās how you get yourself cursed,ā he smiled and laughed at Eddieās vampire costume complete with cape and fake, plastic fangs.
Ā
āChris insisted,ā he shrugged and took his fake fangs out of his mouth to flash his real ones with a wide smile.
Ā
āWhereās your costume, Buck?ā Chris asked, clearly going the werewolf route with his costume. That odd sibling relationship had developed to where Harry was taking and dropping off weekly letters at the owl office between Chris and Teddy now that Teddy was back at Hogwarts. It was very cute.
Ā
āThis is my costume, you know that little man,ā he held his arms out and spun around, making Chris laugh.
Ā
āYeah, guess so,ā Chris nodded and pulled him by the hand towards the house.
Ā
Eddie looked very confused at their exchange. Bollocks! He hadnāt told Eddie he was a metamorphmagus yet, had he?! There seemed to be no end to the things he was constantly having to fill Eddie in on, and he just never seemed to cover everything. He thought it was just the whole House Potter situation and the metamorphmagus thing left, but heād actually forgotten that Eddie didnāt know he was changing his looks, so it was entirely possible Buck was forgetting something else too. Oh well, theyād get there eventually. Shite! Yeah, Master of Deathā¦heād forgotten that too. Maybe heād hold off on that a lot longer though.
Ā
āThe Buckley-Diazes!ā Chimney called out with wide smile from where he was standing with Maddie just inside Athena and Bobbyās house.
Ā
āHa, ha,ā Buck rolled his eyes and felt Eddie put a hand on his back as he was steered inside the house.
Ā
Ever since theyād worked out their system for Eddie to drink Buckās blood, Eddie had been a lot more tactile with him. It made sense after theyād broken down a lot of normal friendship boundaries, but it was driving Buck crazy. He loved it so much, but it was getting to the point that he and Eddie were going to need to have a talk before he just screamed in frustration. Eddie was going to either need to back off a little bit or shag him senseless. Buck didnāt want to lose what they had, but it was getting to where his mental health needed either more or less boundaries at this point. He was putting off that conversation for as long as possible though.
Ā
āHarry!ā Chris called out before hurrying off to play with Athenaās son. Every time, Buck reacted to the name, even when he knew he shouldnāt.
Ā
āHey, sis. Is Josh coming?ā Buck asked, throwing an arm around Maddieās shoulder.
Ā
āHeās on shift, unfortunately,ā she smiled and leaned into him. āHeyā¦how are you holding up?ā She asked in a whisper.
Ā
He looked off and shrugged. āI know the day isnāt actually cursed, but that doesnāt keep me from fully believing that anyway.ā
āI know the feeling,ā her lips thinned as they both looked at their gathered family in concern, hoping that this was one of the low-key Halloween years.
Ā
Ā
The Halloween party was fun. The kids played all kinds of party games that Buck joined in on, Hen and Chimney set up a karaoke set and sang a duet, Bobbyās burgers were smelling amazing, and Eddie and Maddie were chatting and laughing together over by the appetizers. He didnāt want to trust it, but it was starting to seem like that might make it through this unscathed.
Ā
āBuckaroo, would you mind grabbing me the balsamic vinegar? I left it in the kitchen,ā Athena asked him while she tossed a salad on the table overly laden with food.
Ā
āSure, Athena,ā he smiled and wandered into her kitchen. Heād been in the Grant-Nash home many times over the years, but heād never had occasion to have to find something in the kitchen before, so he had no clue where she kept the balsamic vinegar since it wasnāt on the countertop.
Ā
Buck opened a few random cabinets and the pantry. He reached up to open an upper cabinet by the fridge and paused. There was a ward around the cabinet. It wasnāt strong, and felt like a low-level muggle repelling wardā¦maybe?
Well, itās not like he could avoid opening that particular cabinet now. He'd never been known for ignoring his curiosity. But seriously, why in Merlinās name would there be a ward around anything in Athena and Bobbyās home?! So, yeah, he was definitely giving this cabinet a look.
Ā
He opened the cabinet door and just stared at the supplies. He and Maddie both had similar cabinets in their homes, well-warded and containing potion supplies. There was a small pewter cauldron and glass vials of potion ingredients he was very familiar with and a few he didnāt recognize in the slightest. Wellā¦ok, so who was magical in this home?
Ā
Buck looked at the cabinet door and saw a series of runes etched into the wood, so the ward wasnāt a spell but a runic ward. That was interesting. Mages didn't tend to use runic wards when a spell would be stronger. This was clearly why it was so low-powered. It would do the job though to keep a muggle from thinking to open the cabinet, but even a highly motivated muggle would still have broken through it.
Ā
He slowly closed the cabinet door and just stood in the middle of the kitchen, trying to make sense of this new information. What the hell?! It probably wasnāt the kids, but Bobby? Athena? Buck really didn't think it could possibly be Bobby or he would definitely have caught Buck doing some of his mostly hidden magic around the station. If it was Athena though, surely Bobby would have opened this cabinet at some point since he did the cooking and the ward wasn't strong enough to keep him out forever. Eventually, he'd wonder what was in that one cabinet he'd never opened and go for it even being mildly repelled.
Ā
Harry ran into the kitchen, looking like he was about to try to get away with something, and stole a cookie off the cooling tray with a wink at Buck to not tell on him. He took a big bite with a little laugh. Buck loved that he was the adult most trusted not to tell on the kids...even though he did sometimes when necessary. Now though, looking at the kid and think of his name, the coincidence slammed into himā¦was it a coincidence?
Ā
āUmā¦Harry,ā he asked slowly, not knowing if he wanted to know the answer or not. āDo you knowā¦who were you named after? I was just wondering if it was a family name or something?ā
Ā
Harry downed the rest of the cookie and shrugged, clearly not Buck's question suspicious at all. Apparently adults were weird and not worth putting too much thought into. āNah, some famous dude Mom likedā¦I think he fought in a war or something. She said sheād tell me more about it when I got older.ā
Ā
Soā¦maybe not a coincidence. Buck really did his best not to grimace at the very real possibility this kid may have actually been named after him. Merlin, but this was wild! Was Athena a witch? But howā¦that didnāt seem likelyā¦
Ā
āUh, do you know where your mother keeps the balsamic vinegar?ā He asked instead of all the questions that he probably shouldnāt bombard the kid with.
Ā
Harry just sauntered over and opened a cabinet that Buck had definitely looked in before but had completely missed the bottle right there, plain as day. Harry just grabbed two other cookies after Buck picked up the bottle. āThese are for Chris and Denny,ā he winked.
Ā
āSureā¦you guys donāt ruin your dinner,ā he warned, sounding so much more parental than heād planned for. Harry rolled his eyes and ran off again to wherever that group was currently causing mischief.
Ā
Buck wondered back out to the back yard in a daze and handed over the balsamic vinegar Athena had asked for. āThanks, Buck. You're a sweetheart,ā she smiled and squeezed his arm. āHey, I got a new bottle of wine yesterday, you want to give it a try with me? You used to be bartender, right? So you can give me an honest assessment about if I should buy it again.ā
Ā
Buck shook off all his questions and curiosity because now was not the time. He probably did need to talk to Athena at some point about the cabinet and what that could mean, but not in the middle of a party. āYeah, sure, Iād love some,ā he smiled and leaned against the table while she opened the bottle. He'd maybe need to come clean about never having been a bartender too, oh well.
Ā
āHow are you doing being back at work? Is your leg giving you any problems?ā She asked, looking at him in concern.
Ā
Everything had been fine. It was just, Teddy had gone back to school, and Buck knew he wasnāt as excited and happy as he usually was. It had been a while since heād gotten to spend a significant amount of time with his kid, and he missed it so much. Teddy being there for a month and then gone again, almost ripped out his heart once more. Heād seen the looks from Bobby and Hen, and really didnāt want them to worry.Ā
Ā
So, he tried to shrug it off. āEverything is great, Athena. My leg is perfectly fine, I promise,ā he tried to assure her.
Ā
āAnd your parents, any update on what was going on with them?ā She asked, now pouring two glasses of the wine. Buck distinctly felt like he was being interrogated, but benevolently at least.
Ā
Buck also had a feeling she and Bobby talked about the āBuckley parentsā behind his back. Ever since Bobby had seen Buckās scars, heād gotten that pinched look of concern he did so well anytime someone brought up parents around Buck or Maddie. Buck wasnāt exactly sure what Bobby had assumed had happened to them as kids, but heād bet it was closer to his actual childhood with the Dursleys than Hermioneās childhood with the Grangers.
Ā
āNothing new. They're fine too,ā he brushed it off and took his glass. āSo, what am I drinking?ā He asked to change the subject.
Ā
āItās a Riesling,ā Athena began even as Buck took a large swig of the drink. He needed some alcohol to get through this (definitely) cursed day. Athena snorted in amusement at him. āYouāre supposed to smell it and let it breathe first. Some bartender you are.ā
Ā
Athena sniffed hers and swirled it, and Buckā¦something was very wrong. There was a pain in his chest and it was starting to get difficult to breathe. He wheezed when Athena raised the glass to her lips.
Ā
Buckās arm shot out, and he smacked the glass away from Athena. It crashed to the ground and shattered. āBuck? What?ā She asked in surprise.
Ā
Buck was beyond able to answer though. He choked and gasped for air. It felt like he was drowning again. He coughed, and oh, Merlin, was that blood?! He really hoped the kids werenāt around to see this. He made it a point to clearly think out into the world that he wasn't ready to be best mates with Death just yet, so keep his grubby little bony hands away.
Ā
Ā
āBuck!ā Athena screamed, and Hermioneās head shot up from where sheād been talking with Eddie about some of her past research when she had still been a practicing healer.
Ā
Only sparing the thought of āof course something was happening to her brother,ā she ran over to where Athena seemed to be trying and failing to catch her much larger brother who was falling to the ground. There was so much blood! Harry coughed, and it poured from his mouth. Hermione hadn't seen something like this outside of extremely dark curses, but it was only there family in the backyard...
Ā
Eddie was right there with her, quickly assessing the situation and trying to clear Harry's airway. āWhat happened?ā She asked Athena frantically.
Ā
āI donāt know!ā Athena wrung her hands, usually so calm in any crisis situation but looking devastated now. āHe knocked the wine glass out of my hand and then started coughing up blood!ā
Ā
Hermioneās eyes shot to the bottle of wine, and she jumped up immediately. She grabbed the cork and slammed it into the bottle while pulling out her cellphone and dialing 9-1-1. There was no one in attendance who they didnāt know, so barring Polyjuice, it was a good bet the wine was somehow poisoned. Also, Hermione would wager all her gold that Harry had placed a Polyjuice ward around the Grant-Nash house since that was one of his standard ones he always put up for friends and family.
Ā
The phone rang and a very familiar voice answered, ā9-1-1 whatās your emergency?ā
Ā
āJosh!ā She breathed out, thankful it was their friend who knew about the magical world, and did her best to pull it together and clinically explain the address and situation.
Ā
Eddie had been joined by Chimney now who had turned Harry on his side now to keep him from choking more and suffocating. This time, Harry could actually get help from a healer. She knew whatever this was wasnāt going to kill him, or at least heād come back. However, there could be permanent damage, and Hermione was going to do everything she could to prevent that, even if it meant dealing with the magical world once again.
Ā
āAnd Joshā¦I need you to make sure the ambulance is routed to Cedarās Sinai and alert the St. Gertrude ward,ā she concluded. Joshās voice held all the concern and worry over Harry she felt, but he did his job and made the call. What was concerning though was how Athenaās head snapped up at her at the mention of the St. Gertrude ward. Now that was shocking and more than a little concerningā¦
Ā
Ā
Harry painfully clawed himself awake, blinking up at an overly white ceiling that usually signified a hospital somewhere. Of course he was in hospital, it was Halloween. His chest hurt and his throat was on fire. With a grunt he looked over and felt a hand immediately clutch his arm.
Ā
āHey, take it easy, hereās some water,ā the voice said and gently put a straw in his mouth.
Ā
After taking a few sips that didnāt do much at all for his throat, Harry was finally able to focus on the person beside his bed in a chair that definitely screamed hospital. āJosh?ā He asked, glancing around in confusion.
Ā
āHey, youāre ok, or at least you will be,ā Josh brushed long strands of black hair off his face, and damn, he hadnāt held his changes. āYouāre in the hospital, the magical ward more specifically.ā
Ā
Oh, yeah, now Harry saw the diagnostic spell flashing beside him instead of the normal monitors, and he didnāt have any IVs connected to him or anything. That was nice at least. āHermione? Is she ok?ā He asked in concern since she would normally be the person there when he woke up, not that he didn't appreciate Josh, but Maddie was just always there.
Ā
Joshās face did some combination of amusement and exasperation. āBuck, it seems that your sister isnāt actually listed as part of your family, but somehow I am. Care to explain that confusing situation?ā
Ā
He was in too much pain to deal with this. āI was going to tell you, but then you were attacked and dealing with all that, and then I waited so long it seemed awkward.ā
Ā
Josh chuckled and raised a disbelieving eyebrow, still comfortingly brushing Harryās hair back, just being there for him. āIt was awkward to tell me that youād adopted me into one of the most famous families in the magical world? I could be wrong, but I feel like that was something you should have tried to push through and tell me anyway.ā
Ā
Harry just gave him a painful shrug and what was hopefully an innocent smile. āIt doesnāt change your life any; it just gives you extra protection in case you ever have a run-in with aurors or really anyone magical. You know how squibs are treated in the magical world. I know your aunt would look out for youā¦but wellā¦Iām Harry Potter,ā he said, not saying it arrogantly in the slightest. It was what it was, and even if that wasnāt a good thing in Britain right now, it meant something in the United States again.
Ā
Josh shook his head, but really didnāt look angry, more fond and exasperated than anything else. That was good, Harry could work with that. āSo, Iām guessing itās me and Teddy in your family. Iād bet a yearās worth of Florean Fortescueās ice cream that a certain vampire and no-maj born are with us too.ā
Ā
Harry gave him an embarrassed smile. āYeah, it was awkward to tell them tooā¦ā
Ā
āOh huh, so now you know the reason why Iām the only one allowed into your hospital room,ā Josh snorted a laugh. āWhen they refused Maddie, she immediately grabbed me and shoved me towards the healers saying I was allowed. Let me tell you, all your 118 family out there are going to have a lot of questions for you about why I'm legally your family when we broke up a long time ago.ā
Ā
He winced, yeah, that was not going to be fun. Heād asked Hermione about legally joining his family too, but the Granger last name was respected in its own right after the war and Hermione's publish research. Sheād built a name for herself, and Harry understood not wanting to give that up after all her hard work. If he was in any other ward of the hospital they would have just looked at her ID and not questioned it, but actually, shouldnāt she be allowed here too?
Ā
āBut Hermioneās my personal healer,ā he said, wondering why she wasnāt allowed still.
Ā
āWho doesnāt have privileges at this hospital,ā Josh answered his questions. āI would wager she will by the end of day today though. You know your sister.ā
Ā
That he did. āWas it a spell or a potion? I thought it might be the wine,ā he asked, hoping he was the only one dosed. He was certain heād kept Athena from taking a sip.
Ā
Josh nodded. āPotion in the wine. It would only have affecting people with magic, so it was definitely aimed at you. It caused blood clots to form in your lungs. Youād stopped breathing just as the ambulance reached the hospital when the healers took over. They said it was a miracle they got you back. With this potion, usually when breathing ceases, thereās no coming back from it, but you just took another breath right when they were about to call it, so they were able to give you an antidote.ā
Ā
Yeah, so heād definitely died. That was not something heād needed to know. And thank Merlin Athena hadn't taken a drink since she most likely had some kind of magic! And Hermione and Eddie were there too! Suddenly, Harry dying was starting to look like best case scenario!
Ā
Pushing those troubling thoughts aside for now, he motioned to his head. āSo, how much did the healers freak out when Harry Potter suddenly appeared?ā
Ā
āMaddie filled them in once you were out of the no-maj section of the hospital. She made sure to tell them youād been cleared of all charges and to call MACUSA if they didnāt believe her,ā he said. āThe healers have taken secrecy oaths as part of their job, butā¦ā
Ā
He sighed. āIt seems someone leaked the information already though. I've been found. Iād ask if the aurors have found out who did this, but I have a pretty good guess whoās behind it, though I doubt Kingsley came all the way out here to do it himself. This is all a little too sneaky for him anyway. He probably sent someone or paid someone.ā
Ā
Josh sighed and ran a hand over his face. āBuckā¦no, we donāt know anything definitive yet, but Cho is here, and sheās questioning Sergeant Grant now. I donāt know what MACUSAās official story isā¦ā
Ā
āIām pretty sure Athena is somehow connected to the magical world,ā Harry told him his suspicions after finding the cabinet and even added in her sonās name. "I'd guess that Cho will figure all that out and fill Athena in. They've met in passing."
Ā
Josh just shook his head and laughed. āWell, Iām sure Auror Xiao will find out what happened, so let's let her do her job. Now all you have to worry about is getting better. Youāre awake and can see visitors, so can you please put your sister on your approved list so she will stop driving all the healers crazy out in the waiting room?ā
Ā
Harry laughed and nodded. āIāll put Hermione and I guess Athena too, butā¦ā he motioned to the clearly magical room.
Ā
Josh just nodded. āTheyāre going to move you to a no-maj friendly room shortly, then everyone else can stop by. What about Eddie, he knows?ā
Ā
Harry shook his head and concentrated enough to change his appearance back since Athena would definitely be visiting as soon as Cho was done with her. āNo, best not let the healers know heās a vampire. There is still prejudice there. Iāll let him in when the rest of the 118 is allowed.ā
Ā
āOh, and add your friend Ron,ā Josh said, passing over the parchment that had been left for Harry to add his visitors to. āMaddie said heāll be here in the next few hours.ā
Ā
Harry scratched Ronald Weasley as first on the list. He was wondering how long it would take before all the healers in the St. Gertrude ward were sticking their heads in his door to see the war heroes. At least no one was going to arrest him. Merlin, but he owed Cho so much by this point, maybe she and her husband would want to join House Potterā¦it was worth asking at least.
Notes:
Up Next: Athena and Buck have a much needed conversation, and everyone worries...
Chapter 18: The Intervention
Notes:
(See the end of the chapter for notes.)
Chapter Text
Now that Buck was awake, there was a steady stream of visitors to his room, and he hadnāt even been moved to the muggle friendly one yet. Josh left when Maddie was eventually let in, then Maddie left to fill in the rest of the 118 when Athena stepped into his room with a scolding look on her face.
Ā
āUhā¦hi,ā he said sheepishly even as Maddie just chuckled and kissed his forehead when she stood to leave. He wanted to ask her to stay and save him because no Death Eater scared him like a disappointed Athena Grant, but no, someone needed to fill in the 118.
Ā
āPlease remember his lungs are still recovering, so he shouldnāt run away from you,ā Maddie told Athena with a teasing laugh.
Ā
Athena rolled her eyes but reassuringly patted Maddie on the arm before she left. āTalk later?ā She asked Maddie.
Ā
āOver margaritas!ā Maddie huffed out a laugh before she left them.
Ā
āYou know it,ā Athena smiled, and Buck was hoping that meant maybe he and Athena would be ok too if she wasnāt mad at Maddie.
Ā
āFirst of all,ā Athena started with her intense look completely now on him. Buck winced at whatever was coming. āI am so very sorry, Buck! Itās all my fault! Iām so sorry!ā
Ā
Athena let go of everything in a sigh when she slumped into the chair beside his bed. Buck was very confused. āI donāt understand,ā he frowned at her having expected to be told off for keeping secrets. āYou didnāt do anything wrong.ā
Ā
āI poisoned you,ā she gasped out, throwing her arms in the air. āI almost killed you!ā
Ā
Well, that just wasnāt right. āNo, you didnāt. Someone else poisoned me, you just poured me a drink, one that Iām pretty sure would have also poisoned you if youād taken a sip of it, which you were about to,ā he corrected.
Ā
āPlus, Iām still alive. Iām pretty hard to kill, just ask my sister,ā he ended with a wry smile.
Ā
Athena leaned on his bed with her head in her hands. āSo, letās start from the beginning, youāre a wizard?ā She summed up from where she wasnāt looking at him. āA British one?ā Now she did look up with a disbelieving quirk of her eyebrow.
Ā
Buck was wondering how much Cho had told her. Cho would probably stop by his room at some point to fill him in, but she was most likely running down any leads first before whatever magical trails that might be left disappeared. āIām sorry I didnāt tell you all sooner, but I had a good reason. I donāt know how much Auror Xiao told you,ā he said, dropping the fake American accent.
Ā
Athenaās eyes widened, but then she just nodded, accepting it. He and Athena had that in common. They had both seen enough crazy in their lives to just roll with things now. Heād always liked that about the woman.
Ā
āShe didnāt say much, but I can extrapolate quite a lot from what she did say. My understanding is that you got yourself into some kind of trouble back in England and moved here to get away from it. Somehow, youāve been found, and an attempt was made on your life,ā Athena concluded correctly.
Ā
āEr, yeah, thatās about it,ā he nodded, shifting in his bed to get a little more comfortable.
Ā
āI have so many questions,ā she chuckled wryly. āFirst of all, boy, youād better not have married Josh Russo and not invited me to the wedding!ā
Ā
Buck couldnāt help his disbelieving snort. āAthenaā¦you and Bobby didnāt exactly invite me to your impulse wedding either. However, no, we didnāt get married. We broke up, remember?ā
Ā
āRight yeah, donāt be a hypocrite, got it,ā she shook her head and laughed. āSo, just why is Josh your family and Maddie isnāt then?ā
Ā
āMagic,ā Buck waved a hand vaguely, and Athena clearly wasnāt amused. He sighed. āJosh is a squib, so when the danger seemed like it had lessoned for me at least in this country, I legally added him to my family for protection. If he was ever in trouble in the magical world, I wanted him to be able to get help, and his family were shite when they learned he didnāt have magic.ā
Ā
āAh,ā she nodded firmly.
Ā
āErā¦I hate to ask, but you areā¦?ā Buck trailed off, hoping she would fill in the rest of the sentence.
Ā
āNot a squib,ā she smiled fondly and patted his hand. āIām a hedge-witch, same as most of the women in my family line. Mae too. We have more magic than a squib but less than a witch such as you are used to. My kind are much more common here in the Americas than in Europe.ā
Ā
āIāve heard of your kind. Thatās so awesome,ā Buck smiled broadly.
Ā
That was just brilliant really! It also explained the runic ward in her kitchen. Athena couldnāt exactly cast spells, but potions, runes, and ritual magic would work very well for her. There were many debates over if hedge-witches were even a type of witch or their own kind of being, but Athena probably wouldnāt appreciate him going off on that tangent right now when she was trying to get answers.
Ā
āWait,ā he paused as a thought came to him. āDoes Bobby know?!ā
Ā
Athena laughed loudly and patted his leg. āOh, he knowsā¦to an extent,ā she shook her head. āAs in I told that man exactly what I am, but I think he just believes Iām āspiritualā like into New Age things. Itās not like I can make the table levitate to prove it to him. That idiot got me crystals for my birthday. What the hell am I going to do with crystals?ā
Ā
Buck laughed because yeah, that actually did sound like Bobby. āIām sure there are some rituals that crystals would help withā¦plus, theyāre pretty.ā
Ā
She rolled her eyes with a scoff. āWell, I suppose it was the thought that counts. Now, back to you, Buckaroo. What are we going to do with you? Auror Xiao seemed to recognize the person who sold me the wine when I showed her my memory. In the midst of a litany of curses that spent way too much time on Merlinās anatomy, she said the name Pansy. Do you know who she was talking about?ā
Ā
Buck growled in frustration, wanting to throw something or break something. Why? Just why? āYes, I know Pansy bloody Parkinson. Of course she was the one he sent,ā he ground out. āLast I heard, Pansy was working as an aide in his office, so she was right there and with a grudge against me still all these years later.ā
Ā
Athena nodded and leaned back, absorbing the information. āI know the name Parkinson from your war. You would have been very young at the time, but is any of this connected to what happened in England with your dark lord?ā
āNoā¦yes, not really,ā he floundered. He didnāt know what to say without telling her everything, so it looked like there was someone else he needed to let in. He really didnāt want to run again. If anyone could figure out a way for him to stay, it would be Sergeant Athena Grant. He had been completely serious when heād thought way back when he didnāt know Athena had any connection at all to the magical world that she and Hermione could take over easily if they ever decided to give it a try.
Ā
āRight, so Iām a metamorphmagus,ā he just jumped into it. āIf I show you what I really look like, will you promise not to freak out?ā
Ā
Athena looked surprised for one second before she crossed her arms and called him an idiot with her eyes. āBuckaroo, you could be purple with neon orange hair, and youād still be our Buck. Boy, you know youāre family by this point!ā
Ā
Actually, he hadnāt known that. Heād hoped he was Athena and Bobbyās family, but actually believing that to be true was setting himself up for too much heartache. He couldnāt let himself believe that, not yet.
Ā
Harry sighed and let go of the magic holding him in his currently form. Athena sucked in a surprised breath as her only indication that she recognized him. She put one hand on his chest and reached out the other to cup his cheek, right under the famous scar. āOh sweetheart, Iām so sorry. Iām so, so sorryā¦ā she trailed off.
Ā
He was confused once again. āAthena, you didnāt do anythingā¦ā
Ā
āBut you were a child,ā she sniffed, looking at him as if she really did see him, like she saw him all those years ago when he was eleven and facing Voldemort in the back of Quirrellās head. āAll you went through, and you were only Harryās age at the start.ā
Ā
She gave a sharp laugh. āOh sweet Hecate, I named my son after you!ā
Ā
He put his hand on hers and smiled. āI was wondering about that. I, uh, well this isnāt about the war, but as you can imagine, I still have a lot of enemies willing to come after me with very little incentive needed.ā
Ā
āYes, but this was different. I keep up to date on MACUSA activities, and you were labeled a fugitive until recently. I saw the notice of MACUSA rescinding your arrest warrant, but nothing was explained,ā she said with a frown. āI was worried it was true back when it was first announced, but Iām old enough to have followed and remember all the news from Britain during your war. You were a hero, then a dark lord, then insane, then a terrorist, then the savior, and I wasnāt going to believe anything until I could ask you personally by that point, soā¦Harry Potterā¦ā
Ā
Buck waited, but she didnāt ask. Athena just eventually shook her head. āNo, I know our Buckaroo. I donāt even need to ask. Who are we hiding you from then, baby?ā
Ā
He just gasped in sheer relief. He held back the tears pricking at the corners of his eyes. āAh, baby, donāt you dare think that we donāt have your back here,ā she patted his cheek and reassured him. āYour auror friend talked about moving you somewhere else, but I told her that weād raise hell to keep you here. Iāll call every magical person I know, plus all you know, and weāre going to get you safe, no matter what, you hear me.ā
Ā
Now he really was crying. āMy ex-boyfriend,ā he gasped out. āThe Minister for Magic. Heās the one after me.ā
Ā
Athena gave a humorless chuckle. āWell, I never said you did things by halves, now did I?ā
Ā
He shook his head and laughed. āNo, I never haveā¦oh, and Maddie, sheās Hermione Granger.ā
Ā
āAh, that makes senseā¦and why she wasnāt legally your family,ā Athena nodded firmly. āHer ex is Ron Weasley, correct? Who is still an auror?ā
Ā
āYeah, heāsā¦damn, heās probably almost here,ā Harry said, looking at the time. It didnāt seem to take Ron long at all to obtain illegal portkeys. There were some definite advantages to being a magical cop and knowing where all the criminals hung out.
Ā
āGreat, then Iāll liaise with him and Auror Xiao,ā Athena said as if the decision were made. āYou have a couple hedge-witches, three war heroes, and a squib who is tough as nails behind you. We can handle this.ā
Ā
Harry just smiled widely.
Ā
Athena sighed at him. āRight, who else?ā
Ā
āEddie is a vampire,ā he said, finally getting an actual shocked reaction out of the woman.
Ā
āEdmundo Diaz! Butā¦he has a kid!ā She choked out.
Ā
āBaby vamp,ā he shrugged. āHe has ridiculous self-control. Turned in a warzone, so you can imagine.ā
Ā
āHecateās blessings,ā she shook her head. āWell, that canāt hurt our chances. Does he know about you?ā
Ā
āYeah, he does,ā Harry assured her. āAlso, I have a small deal with the Sidhe for limited legal protections if that matters any at all.ā
Ā
Athena closed her eyes and just seemed to give up. āOf course, you do. Have any werewolves on your side? How about goblins?ā
Ā
āEh, the goblins definitely hate me, but my son is half-werewolf and a lord in England if that helps,ā he added, now just messing with her.
Ā
Athena swatted his arm. āWhy havenāt I met this son? Buck! How old is he?ā
Ā
āLegal adult, Athena! Ow! Iām injured,ā he protested. āMy godson, Teddy Lupin-Black. Iāll have him visit next time heās on break from school.ā
Ā
āYou better,ā she finally let up after the promise. āNow, Iām going to let you rest while I track down Auror Xiao again. You donāt go anyway. Weāre going to figure this out.ā
Ā
āYes, Maāam,ā he agreed, finally allowing himself to believe that. If Athena said sheād figure it out, then she absolutely would.
Ā
Athena held his hand for a minute before her face went shocked once more. āHecateās cats! You were a cop! How in holy hell was that mess of a boy I met three years ago a cop?!ā
Ā
Buck winced. āSoā¦about thatā¦I may have made some mistakes while trying not to make friends with the 118ā¦Iāll never claim Iām not a mess thoughā¦ā
Ā
Ā
The rest of Buckās time in hospital saw him in a muggle-safe room and surrounded by the 118. Talk of aurors and tracking down magical assassins necessarily had to stop. The going story seemed to be that heād had a pulmonary embolism caused by the recent damage to his leg. While that didnāt make any logical sense because there wasnāt any damage to his leg anymore, it was the easiest way to explain why heād randomly coughed up blood without completely breaking the Statute of Secrecy and explaining potions.
Ā
Eddie had gotten the real explanation the first chance Buck had alone with him, and Eddie had been on the phone with Athena and Maddie whenever he could to get updates. It seemed Cho had lost Pansyās trail though, and knowing magical transportation, she was probably already safely back behind her desk in the ministry and answering letters for Kingsley once again.
Ā
A bright spot in the entire experience was Ron back beside him where he belonged. Plus, a very confused Chimney who walked in and just stared at the redheaded man who had one arm around Maddie and the other holding Buckās hand. āWhatā¦. Arenāt you the guy from the Christmas tree place? Why are you here in Buck's room?ā Chimney surprisingly remembered.
Ā
āRonald Bilius Weasley!ā Maddie elbowed him viciously. āDid you scope out my boyfriend all the way back at Christmas without telling me?!ā
Ā
āOi! Woman! Those elbows hurt,ā Ron fake rubbed his side. āYeah, I did, but your new bloke was spilling his life story within two minutes of talking, so I figured he wasnāt likely to be keeping any dark secrets.ā
Ā
Chimney flushed and looked embarrassed while Hen almost fell over laughing from where sheād entered behind him. āHeās got you there!ā Hen pointed at her best friend.
Ā
āItās not my fault if secrets make me itch!ā Chimney protested.
Ā
āThatās right, babe, thatās a good thing,ā Maddie stood and put an arm around him to steer him around Buckās bed. āHoward Han, meet my ex-husband and sometimes best friend, Ron Weasley.ā
Ā
āChimney,ā the man nervously gasped out when he reached out a hand to shake.
Ā
āItās a pleasureā¦again,ā Ron said, gripping his hand a little too hard. āJust donāt ever think youāll get away with hurting her.ā
Ā
Chimney gulped. āNever.ā
Ā
āGreat!ā Ronās grip lessened, and he enthusiastically shook Chimneyās hand then. āBrilliant! If weāre all going to be living here, weāre going to have to get along and be friends, right."
Ā
āRon?ā Buck asked in surprise at that. āWhatās that mean? What do you mean, living here?ā
Ā
āWell,ā Ron finally let Chimney go to walk back to Harryās bed. āIt seems all the fun is happening out here in LA now. After what just happened to you, even Mum was packing my bag and telling me to get my arse out here to look after you. So, I just tossed my resignation letter on Robardsās desk and moved continent. Your couch better be comfortable while I find a place to stay.ā
Ā
āI have a guestroom,ā Josh spoke up from where he seemed to have been trying to disappear into the corner of the room. āBuckās couch isnāt that comfortable.ā
Ā
āBrilliant! Thanks, mate!ā Ron sauntered over and threw an arm around Josh next. āNow, I bet youāve heard some strange calls with your job, I want to hear all the stories!ā
Ā
Josh looked at Ron incredulously. āYouāre a copā¦ā
Ā
āEh, I still bet LA is stranger than rainy England.ā
Ā
āOh, it is,ā Buck assured him firmly. āLet me tell you about my first full moonā¦ā
Ā
āNot with the babies again!ā Chimney groaned and sat down beside Buckās bed.
Ā
āSo. Many. Babies,ā he told Ron seriously.
Ā
Ā
āI heard your ex-brother-in-law has moved to town,ā Bobby said conversationally when he was on his shift with Buck. Merlin but were they never going to let him leave hospital?! Like, yeah, he was minor medical miracle, but they were mages, they saw miracles all the time!
Ā
Buck looked at the clock but nodded. āYeah, apparently Iām way too accident prone, so heās coming to keep me in line.ā
Ā
Bobby ran a hand down his face, and Buck finally noticed just how exhausted he looked. Buck had died not long ago, but Bobby may just look worse. āHey, whatās up Cap?ā
Ā
āItās just a lot, Buck,ā he said, leaning back in the chair. āThere was the bomb, then the tsunami, now this. Maybeā¦maybe you shouldnāt come back to work right away.ā
Ā
Buck just blinked in confusion. How did this equate to him not coming to work? Heād been cursed with a slashing curse, bleeding on the floor, and still in the ministry filling out paperwork when he was an auror. A little poisoning and death was nothing in his lifeā¦and yeah, he knew how that sounded, but it was actually true.
Ā
āThe doctors were able to fix me up, they said itās not a recurring thing. Once Iām off their meds, Iāll make a complete recovery,ā he told Bobby the lie they were using to cover up the poisoning.
Ā
He really hoped none of the 118 did any deep google searches on anything theyād said. Buck was pretty certain the lie had gotten more convoluted every time one of the healers told a muggle. They may be used to dealing with muggles, but they were clearly not used to dealing with muggles who understood what they were saying. Hen was studying to be a doctor, so he winced every time someone said something around her already.
Ā
āI donāt think youāre ready to come back,ā Bobby said firmly instead. āI think you should take some time.ā
Ā
Buck didnāt understand. āUhā¦the doctors said Iām fine. I donāt understand. Theyāve cleared me to go back to work next week.ā
Ā
āI have to sign off on it though, and I don't think you're ready,ā Bobby dug in, and this had to have some deeper meaning right? Did Bobby not want him on the team anymore? But Athena had said he was family.
Ā
āOk, so why do you think Iām not ready then?ā Buck asked as calmly as he could. Heād already been off work so long when he wasnāt even injured before. He didnāt want to take off any more time.
Ā
āBuck, youāve almost died three times recently,ā Bobby began. Ok, so yeah, he actually had died twice there, but no need to say that out loud. āI think you need to see someone to talk about all this. Talk about your mental health.ā
Ā
āLike the last person you sent me to see?ā Buck couldnāt help saying. It slipped out before he could think better of it. Bobby blanched and his mouth audibly clicked shut. Buck wasnāt sure how to fix this now, so the silence dragged on.
Ā
āI donāt think youāre ready,ā was the final response.
Ā
Buck wasnāt going to accept that. He didn't want to lose what he had at the 118. āReally? Are you sure youāre not the one who isnāt ready?ā He asked instead. āLook, Iāll go see someoneā¦a different mental health professional if you insistā¦ā
Ā
And this one would definitely be a mind-healer now that he wasnāt a wanted fugitive. A mind-healer he would make sign a secrecy contract and make a magically binding vow. But yeah, if Bobby insisted he had to, then he would. He did actually trust Bobby, but he didnāt think thatās what this was about.
Ā
āBut is that whatās really going on?ā He asked before Bobby could jump in again.
Ā
There seemed a fight going on in his captainās mind as doubt and worry and fear crossed his face. āBuck,ā he finally gasped out. āI canāt watch you die again. I saw you under that truckā¦and coughing up bloodā¦and I justā¦I canāt do it again!ā
Ā
āHey!ā Buck grabbed Bobbyās hand in both of his and held on. āHey, Iām ok right now. Iām going to get better. And Bobby, I hate to break it to youā¦but Iām just as likely to die in my everyday life as on the jobā¦ā
Ā
Bobby snorted and opened his mouth to protest.
Ā
āI wasnāt working during the tsunami,ā he countered. āAnd I was alive over two decades before you met me. Iāve never lived a safe life even when I wasnāt a firefighter. Now, I have people watching my back though. You all pulled me out from under that truck, Hen took care of me after the tsunami, Eddie cleared my airway when I was choking, there was always someone there. There hasnāt always been someone there in my past. Iād trade safety any day to know that someone would be there for me if and when I need it.ā
Ā
Bobby held Buckās hands to his own forehead and breathed out something almost a sob. āI canāt lose you kid.ā
Ā
āAnd you donāt have to,ā Buck assured him. āThe only way youāll lose me is if you push me away.ā
Ā
āYou canāt promise that,ā Bobby shook his head, still not looking at him.
Ā
Well, he could, but the man didnāt even believe his own wife was magical, so Buck wasnāt about to step into that. āI also canāt promise you that I wonāt get struck by lightning, but Iād rather have you there after if I did.ā
Ā
āHow aboutā¦how about being man behind for a few shifts?ā Bobbyās misty eyes finally met his. āJust a while.ā
Ā
Buck smiled at him. āA week.ā
Ā
āTwo.ā
Ā
āOne week, and Eddie gets to do the rope rescues for two weeks after that,ā Buck countered with a grin that finally got a smile in return from his captain.
Ā
āAnd youāll see a therapist? A different one this time?ā Bobby winced again.
Ā
āIāll think about it,ā he said because that was all he could really offer. He really would think about it. He wasnāt sure he was ready again yet, but he would actually consider it.
Ā
āThatās all Iāll ask then,ā Bobby smiled and squeezed Buckās hand. āNowā¦when did they say we could spring you from here.ā
Ā
āNever, I think Iām their new lab rat,ā he groaned dramatically. āCall Athena to rescue me!ā
Ā
Ā
It turned out Ron didnāt actually need to move into Joshās guestroom even though he already had because Buck found himself led into the Diaz home just as soon as he was allowed to leave hospital. What met him in Eddieās living room looked much more like an intervention than a welcome home party though.
Ā
āWhatever you think I did this time, I promise I didnātā¦unless it was stealing something of yours, and if so, Maddie can get it for you,ā he smiled at the assembled group when Eddie ushered him into the empty armchair.
Ā
āNot an intervention, mate. Although, maybe it should be,ā Ron answered. āHey āMioneā¦he still taking things?ā
Ā
āYeah, but itās fine, I give them back to people periodically,ā Hermione waved him off.
Ā
Harry glowered at her, but Athena crossed her arms. āIs that where my earrings went? I didnāt think Iād left them in Maddieās car!ā
Ā
āThey were costume, not worth anything,ā Harry protested. āPlus, you got a nice ward around your house out of it. Youāre welcome.ā
Ā
āThank you, and donāt take my things without asking,ā she pointed a finger at him. āAnd I want to know all the wards currently around my residence.ā
Ā
āYou really donāt want to know. I think my brain exploded a little when he listed the ones he put on my place,ā Josh told her with wide eyes. That just wasn't fair. Harry had put a very reasonable amount of wards around Josh's apartment, then maybe a few unreasonable ones after he was attacked, but still...rude.
Ā
āThis is a keep Buck alive intervention,ā Eddie interrupted their bickering. āEveryone here knows you are Buck Buckley and Harry Potter, so weāre here to brainstorm what to do to keep your psycho ex from trying to murder you again.ā
Ā
āI think we have a plan, me and my supervisor anyway,ā Cho walked into the room from the kitchen, making Buck and Eddie both jump.
Ā
āDraculaās fangs! When did you get here?ā Eddie asked.
Ā
āRon invited me,ā Cho sat on the couch, now drinking one of Eddieās beers.
Ā
āWell, we only have three hours before I have to pick up my kid from school, so letās get going,ā Eddie waved her to continue even as he paced, looking more anxious than anyone else in the room.
Ā
āWeāre going to make him more visible,ā Cho said firmly. āNot like out his exact location but make it very known that he is in fact in the United States and under the protection of MACUSA. Weāll present our evidence to the ICW if questioned but leave it at that if not. The higher ups aren't exactly willing to cause an international incident for you, even if you are Harry Potter, but they are willing to slightlyā¦and I mean slightly, stick their necks out for you.ā
Ā
āHow will that stop this Kingsley guy from sending someone else though?ā Josh raised a hand to ask.
Ā
āShacklebolt is actually a good minister,ā Ron said and had to raise both hands in the face of the backlash from everyone.
Ā
āHeās right,ā Harry said above them, getting silence once again. āKingsley is a good minister even if a shit person. He will have to pause and rethink his strategy. Clearly his earlier attempt was foiled and now MACUSA is stepping up and paying more attention.ā
Ā
āPlus, I moved here,ā Ron added. āAnd I might not be the Harry Potter, but Iām the next best auror they had.ā
Ā
āThatās right,ā Harry reached across to bump his fist. āSo, heāll have to take a different approach because heāll also be avoiding an international incident. Staying minister is his goal first, making me pay is second to that. An assassin is a witness and someone he canāt trust not to turn him in now that MACUSA is backing me.ā
Ā
āWhile all this sounds well and good,ā Athena cut in. āHeās still going to make another attempt.ā
Ā
āMost likely,ā Harry shrugged, not really worried about it.
Ā
āDefinitely,ā Hermione added.
Ā
āWhat if he tries to take someone in England to make you come to him to rescue them there?ā Josh asked, and yeah, that had always been something heād been concerned about.
Ā
āIt would be too visible,ā Hermione answered with a shake of her head. They'd discussed that when he'd first left. āAgain, Kingsley is currently the media darling, and he canāt jeopardize that.ā
Ā
āPlus, literally everyone whoās friends with Harry are also war heroes,ā Ron smirked. āAn escaped Death Eater went after our Herbologist friend, and they had to pick the guy up in pieces after Neville was done with him.ā
Ā
Cho whistled. āMerlin, I need to give Nev a floo call soon.ā
Ā
āWhat about Teddy?ā Eddie asked, pausing to look at Harry in concern. His heart melted at Eddieās care and concern for a kid heād only met a few times before he had to go back to school.
Ā
āTeddy is at Hogwarts and safe behind the wards,ā Harry started.
Ā
āLike you were?ā Athena asked seriously.
Ā
āNo, not like me at all. Headmistress McGonagall has gone a little overboard in ensuring student safety after the war,ā Harry shook his head firmly. āAnd this is me saying sheās gone overboardā¦ā
Ā
āYeah, that place is a fortress,ā Ron nodded. āPlus, Harryās trained Teddy in hand-to-hand combat, defensive magic, evasion, stealth, and everything else he could think of since the kid was tiny, so againā¦piecesā¦ā
Ā
Eddieās eyebrow shot up. āRight, so thatās why you swore up and down Chris was safe when he babysat. I should have realized when you said safe you mean protected by the equivalent of a professional bodyguard.ā
Ā
āAw! Eddie got to meet him, and I didnāt!ā Athena fake pouted at Buck, causing him to laugh.
Ā
āHeāll visit over Christmas, so you can meet him then,ā Buck assured her.
Ā
āWhat about his food and drink?ā Eddie cut in again. āAnything could be tampered with. Is there a spell, or maybe I can smell everything for him or something?ā
Ā
āEw, please donāt sniff all my food,ā Buck wrinkled his nose. āIām usually good at testing all my food magically before eating it, but I didnāt think to test the wine since Athena uncorked it in front of me. Remember the LSD brownies that I didn't eat.ā
Ā
āSo, test packaged food now too,ā Hermione instructed him.
Ā
āFine,ā he groaned, not liking this entire conversation. It reminded him way too much of the war and everyone talking about his safety. And itās not like he could die anyway!!
Ā
āCan I kick you all out now, even though this isnāt my house?ā He pouted at Eddie to make them leave please.
Ā
āYou heard the man. Out,ā Eddie stood back and motioned to the door. āIf anyone hears anything, Iāll start a group text. Auror Xiao, give someone your number.ā
Ā
āDonāt worry about me, Weasley here is interviewing for an auror position here in LA next week, so Iām sure heāll take over the case soon enough anyway,ā Cho threw an arm around Ron. āPortkeys from New York all the time are killer on the digestive system.ā
Ā
āI told you; you can move! Ron did!ā Buck called, getting a rude hand gesture before she strode out of Eddie house.
Ā
Ā
Life moved on even in the midst of Eddieās anxiety over his best friend. Through sheer stubbornness, heād gotten Buck from the hospital to his house, and he wasnāt letting him leave until he was sure Buck was completely recovered. It still didnāt help his fear and nightmares from seeing Buck choke on his own blood. At least Chris had been in the house and was saved that image.
Ā
āI can sleep on the couch. Iām basically all healed,ā Buck complained while Eddie shoved him towards the bedroom with Christopher laughing in the background.
Ā
āInvalids sleep in the bed. Iām on the couch,ā Eddie disagreed. He even dug his second softest Army shirt (that Buck hadnāt stolen yet) out of a drawer for him to put on to sleep in.
Ā
āYou could have at least let me stop by the loft to get clothes,ā Buck caught the shirt with a little smile at it that belied his words. Clearly Buck liked wearing Eddie's shirt as much as Eddie liked seeing him wear it, and maybe that was messing with Eddie's mind a little bit.
Ā
āUh huh, then youād say you should just stay there, and Iād never get you out,ā Eddie put his hands on his hips, making his mind get back on the subject. āIāll take you tomorrow after dropping Chris off at schoolā¦just to get clothes. Heās expecting you for pizza and movie night tomorrow night.ā
Ā
Buck gave him a little smile that said so much about how much it meant to him that Eddie and Chris let him into their lives. Eddie saw it, but he didnāt know how to make that look permanent. He didnāt know how to make Buck know he was always welcome. Heād said it, but he could see even now that Buck didnāt believe it.
Ā
āWell, I canāt disappoint Chris.ā
Ā
āOf course not,ā Eddie nodded with a smile because that always worked.
Ā
Buck shifted his weight and cleared his throat. āErmā¦so, Iām a little low on blood right nowā¦ā
Ā
āBuck no!ā Eddie shook his head and reached out, but then he wasnāt sure if Buck would want him to touch him, so he ended up aborting the motion and standing there awkwardly.
Ā
āIām fine. I have plenty of blood from the blood bank,ā he said as firmly as he could manage because that was the truth. He was doing so much better now. He could breathe, and Buck had made that happen. He wasnāt living paycheck to paycheck anymore.
Ā
Buck just shrugged though. āBut, er, if you get hungry, Maddie said she could spare a couple pints. Ron says you have to buy him dinner first though.ā
Ā
Eddie snorted a laugh. āWait? Seriously? No, absolutely not!ā He didnāt know why that was unacceptable, just that it was. They offered, and it was like getting the blood from the blood bank, but stillā¦that wasnātā¦noā¦
Ā
Buck shrugged and flushed bright pink. āI think Ron was actually serious. Heās been taking this time away from us to āfind himselfā and he seemsā¦much lighter, looser, freer. It looks good on him, but yeah, he may have actually been serious about the dinner bit, so erā¦maybe go with Maddieā¦ā
Ā
Eddie sputtered but just shook his head. āBed. Now. Iām not hungry,ā Eddie pointed to the bed and then left the room.
Ā
Buck was driving him completely insane. He was just too open and generous and gorgeous and funny and loving and a marshmallow covering a stiletto blade dipped in poison. Eddie might be a little in love.
Ā
But life went on, and Buck was finally going to be back at work the next day after a week off. Eddie was stealing a pillow from the bed to make up the couch for what might be the last time since he couldnāt reasonably argue Buck wasnāt completely healed when he was back on duty. It had been nice. Theyād fallen into a comfortable routine, the three of them, over the last week when Buck had been with them.
Ā
Eddie paused in taking his pillow off the bed and pulled a long, black hair from Buckās pillow and held it up. What? He ran through everyone they knew with long, dark hair.
Ā
āHey, Buckā¦has your sister come to visit in last few days?ā He called to where Buck was brushing his teeth in the bathroom.
Ā
His friend spit. āNo, not since you allās misguided intervention.ā
Ā
Eddie just frowned at the hair more. How could it have ended up there then? Did Buck invite someone over when Eddie was on shift and Chris was at school? Auror Xiao had long, black hair, but she was married. And Eddie really couldnāt believe that Buck would bring someone back to Eddieās house. Buck justā¦he wouldnāt so thatā¦
Ā
Eddie just walked to the bathroom in a daze and held up the hair. He couldnāt come up with an answer, so maybe Buck could. āBuckā¦any idea how this got on your pillow?ā
Ā
Buck looked at it passingly but just washed his mouth out and spit again. āYeah, mate, thatās mine.ā
Ā
Eddie couldnāt help reaching out to hold the long hair up against Buckās short, blond locks. āWant to try that again?ā
Ā
Buck looked at him and seemed to not understand in the slightest. āMerlinā¦have I really not told you yet?ā
Ā
āTold me what?ā Eddie asked with a frown and still holding the mystery hair.
Ā
āWellā¦itās probably best to just show you,ā Buck smiled widely. āIām something called a metamorphmagus. Teddy is too, but that means we can change our appearance.ā
Ā
āOkā¦ā Eddie wasnāt following this in the slightest.
Ā
āWell, itās how Iāve stayed hidden even while Iām so famous,ā Buck said, and then his appearance changed dramatically.
Ā
Gone were all the tattoos on Buckās arms and the cute birthmark on his head, gone was the curly blond hair, gone were the gray/blue eyes. Eddie gasped and dropped the hair. Buck wasā¦Buck was⦠Buck was Harry Potter. As in the warrior people kept explaining to Eddie that heād never quite believed. Seeing the scars now though, he believed it, more even than with the ones heād seen on Harryās arms before.
Ā
Harry shrugged. āErā¦so, yeahā¦Itās really just the hair, eyes, and scars.Ā I have to turn back at night to rest my magic, but Iāve kind of gotten used to the other look now.ā
Ā
Eddie knew he needed to say something.
Ā
āSo, erā¦you donāt like?ā
Ā
Eddie wasnāt sure heād ever wanted to jump a person and make out with them more in his life. āUh, yeahā¦I like,ā he lamely cleared his throat and escaped to the kitchen to pretend to get water and really shove his head in the refrigerator and try to calm his raging arousal down because Buck was hot, but Harry was everything Buck was and also showed more of who he was as a person underneath it all, and Buck was even more beautiful underneath.
Notes:
Up Next: The well...and Ron makes friends...
Chapter 19: Confessions
Notes:
(See the end of the chapter for notes.)
Chapter Text
āSoā¦theyāre literally not dating each other? Like not even keeping it secret or going slow orā¦whatever other nonsense they might come up with?ā Joshās new roommate asked with complete disbelief in his tone.
Ā
āNope,ā Josh sighed and rolled his eyes, passing a beer to Ron. It was kind of nice having someone else in the apartment. Josh had been jumpy since the attack, and even though he assured everyone he was fine and past it and stop worrying already, he wasnāt really past it at all. It was nice knowing he had an auror in his guest bedroom who would take on anyone, no-maj or mage, that tried to break in, not that he was going to admit it.
Ā
āBut thatāsā¦thatās just ridiculous,ā Ron concluded with a frown. āWhy the bloody hell arenāt they dating? Are they both just bloody oblivious?!ā
Ā
āYep, even Hen and Chimney agree with you, and they donāt know about all the blood drinking and magic of it all,ā Josh snorted a laugh before joining Ron on the couch to watch their show. Mages were all sorely lacking in pop culture knowledge, so Josh was taking it on himself to introduce Ron Weasley to all things cultureā¦such as Drag Race, Golden Girls, Law and Order, and Marvel. Now they were on the wonder that is Golden Girls.
Ā
āHarry is such a Rose,ā Ron concluded firmly, passing the popcorn to him as if that were the definitive word on the matter.
Ā
Josh laughed but had to disagree. āReally? I think heās more a Sophia.ā
Ā
āNah, youāre our Sophia since youāre all world-wise knowing both the magical and muggle worlds. Hermione can be Dorothy, and I guess that makes me Blanche,ā Ron grinned widely at that conclusion. āIām fine with that.ā
Ā
Something about being lumped right in there with a group of famous war heroes had Josh pause in his popcorn consumption, and Ron actually considered him world-wise! That wasā¦well, that was both shocking and very flattering.
Ā
He took another handful of popcorn and cleared his throat. āWell, I think Teddy and Christopher and trying to parent-trap them or something. I donāt think itās going well with them being on separate continents right now though.ā
Ā
āTeddy got that apprenticeship with the technomage master here in LA, so heās moving next summer,ā Ron said with a wide grin. āIf our idiotic friends still arenāt together by next summer, I give Christopher and Teddy a week. I havenāt even met this Chris yet, but Iāve heard enough stories to think those two are going to be unstoppable together.ā
Ā
Josh snorted a laugh. āVery trueā¦do you start work tomorrow or do you have a few more days?ā
Ā
āNo, not for a few more days. They want me to start at the first of the month. Iām playing basketball with Chimney in the morning though,ā Ron looked him up and down. āWant to join?ā
Ā
āI have a shift,ā Joshās eyebrow rose as high as it could. āAnd what the hell makes you think Iām a person who would willingly play a sport?ā
Ā
Ron laughed loudly and bumped his shoulder with a fist. āWell, I wasnāt going to assume, and I donāt rightly know what basketball is myself, so you do you. Iām trying to be a good ex-husband and make nice with the new boyfriend thoughā¦plus, heās kind of fun. As much as he will literally spill any secret, I still canāt get the story of his nickname out of him! Itās now my new goal in life.ā
Ā
āYeah, I donāt know the story either.ā Josh tossed a kernel of popcorn at the manās head to get him to look at him. āYou donāt know what basketball isā¦and youāre going to go play it?ā
Ā
Ron grinned and shrugged, not seeming concerned in the slightest. āIāve learned playing the very British card excuses every oddity with you Americans from my limited experience here. Iāll be fine.ā
Ā
āYou thought my hair dryer was a gun,ā Josh reminded him. As a pureblood wizard, Ron wasnāt the worst Josh had seen, but yeah, it was a little noticeable over time.
Ā
āYouāre American, donāt all of you have guns?ā He retorted teasingly.
Ā
āStereotype,ā Josh glared right back and started the episode: season 1, episode 16, The Truth Will Out.
Ā
Once the intro music started playing, Josh looked back over at the man beside him. He was just so curious about Ron Weasley. Heād heard a lot of things from Maddie, Buck, the biography heād snuck from his auntās bookcase, but he wasnāt sure what was true, what wasnāt, and all the other behind the scenes things that had gone on. He had so many questions.
Ā
āSo, besides starting a job as an auror here, what are you planning to do?ā Josh prodded, hoping to learn more about the guy. āMaddie said you were on a finding yourself quest recently. Is there going to be a lot of going out and meeting people or is this more of an internal thing? Iād offer to show you around but the only bars I know are full of first responders, and the only clubs I know are gay clubs. My circles are very limited.ā
Ā
Ron turned more towards him and quirked a small smile. āI might be into those circles. Besides Harry of course, the fireman are kind of hotā¦and the clubs might be fun.ā
Ā
āOh really?ā Joshās eyebrows shot up because he hadnāt gotten an inkling Maddieās ex wasnāt extremely straight. What was it with his gay-dar and these British wizards?!
Ā
Ron paused the show and let out a short breath of resignation. āOk, J-Man, Iām going to tell you something because Iām going to burst if I donāt tell someone, and youāre the only person who would maybe understand and who I donāt think would be all judgy with me.ā
Ā
āOk,ā Josh said slowly wondering where this was going. Was Ron about to come out? Did something happen? Why would Maddie and Buck be judgy?
Ā
Ron nodded and took another sip of his beer. āRight, so first, what all do you know about our pasts? The war and school and all? Has Harry told you anything because you do kind of need a little context here?ā
Ā
āI read his biography,ā Josh answered with a small blush. Yeah, he probably shouldnāt have read it, but he was just so curious! And it wasā¦invasive was the best way to put it.
Ā
Ron winced strongly. āYeah, that was written by Dennis Creevey, so youāre very well informed. Right thenā¦soā¦ā he took another sip of his drink and breathed in quickly. āIf you tell Harry or Hermione what Iām about to tell you, then Iām going to unleash my entire arsenal of Weasley Wizarding Wheezes items on your person with no mercy.ā
āWow, ok, yeah, what are roommates for I guess,ā Josh put down his beer and readied himself. Whatever this was, was going to be serious. āLet me have it.ā
Ā
āSo, a few weeks ago, I was out in London getting pissed after work,ā Ron began. āNot like finding myself and I happened to get drunk but more lonely and missing my best friends drunk.ā
Ā
Josh felt that deeply. Those three seemed exceptionally close, so this distance had to have been really hard on the one left behind. Heād never had friends he was that close toā¦although, he was getting there with this group. Maybe it was just Harry/Buck and everyone in his orbit that got pulled in. Regardless⦠āI definitely understand.ā
Ā
āAnd I ran into an old schoolmate of ours who was similarly lonely and off-again in an on-again/off-again relationship and well, we were both drowning our sorrows,ā Ron raised an eyebrow to impress the seriousness. āNo tellingā¦ā
Ā
āNo tellingā¦ā Josh leaned forward, wondering which war-hero was about to grace this story. He didnāt want to admit it, but he was excited to hear the drama between these famous people he really shouldnāt know but now lived in his guestroom and were integral to his life.
Ā
Ron let out a breath and turned red. āMate, so I ended up drunkenly making out with Draco Malfoy,ā he said all in one breath. āLike just snogging nothing else, and it was such a mistakeā¦but alsoā¦kind of really goodā¦ā
Ā
Josh didnāt think heād blinked in a really long time while he let that sink in. Yeah, he knew that name, not a war-hero, but the other side. Werenāt Ron and Malfoy in particular supposed to be mortal enemies? There had been a picture in the book heād read thoughā¦
Ā
āHe is quite good looking,ā Josh offered to hopefully soothe some of Ronās embarrassment. It seemed he chose correctly since Ron seemed to suddenly lose all the tension in his body and just laughed.
Ā
āHeās a right git, but also a brilliant kisser, though we will never talk of this again nor have a repeat performanceā he said, still laughing. āSo yeah, now that I donāt only have eyes for Hermione, I might not be the straightest bloke around.ā
Ā
Josh smiled and nudged Ronās shoulder. āSoā¦youāre like a baby queer just launching himself onto the world trying to figure out your bears from your twinks.ā
Ā
āDonāt make me sound like one of your muggle missiles,ā he grimaced and started the show again with a chuckle. āLaunching!ā He laughed again.
Ā
It only took through the opening credits before Josh made a decision that he felt comfortable with. He could probably actually make himself go out again with Ron going with him. It would be safe. He would finally feel safe again to go out into the world. Buck would have gone with him, but the lights and noises of clubs freaked him out, and Josh didnāt want to put him through that. But Ron seemed gameā¦
Ā
āOk, Iāll do it,ā he said with finality, getting a curious look from Ron at the sudden exclamation. āIāll be your gay-Yoda and introduce you to queer culture here in LA.ā
Ā
Ron smiled widely. āBrillā¦but, erm, whatās a Yoda?ā
Ā
āHoudini save us! Seriously?!ā Josh coughed around the sip of beer he was choking on. āDude, Iām adding Star Wars to your pop culture list of must sees.ā
Ā
āShhh!ā Ron held out a hand dramatically. āBlanche is talking, and we must listen.ā
Ā
Ā
āDude, Maddieās ex is never allowed to join our pick-up game,ā Chimney was telling Eddie emphatically in the back of the fire engine on the way out to some farm in the middle of nowhere.
Ā
āThat bad?ā Eddie asked. He had a feeling that British wizards didnāt play a lot of basketball. Buck had said there was a whole magical sport or something on brooms which he still thought sounded overly dangerous.
Ā
āThat good!ā Chim exclaimed instead. āIāve never seen someone so quick at blocking! Heās so on my team if he ever joins, I call dibs.ā
āRon played Keeper in school,ā Buck replied from where heād been looking out the window. He clearly spoke before he could censor that he probably shouldnāt say that by the wide-eyed look he shot to Eddie. āItāsā¦uhā¦a soccer position, yeah. Itās all about blocking the goal.ā
Ā
āOh! That makes sense!ā Chimney laughed. āI was worried he was hustling me, saying heād never played before but then breaking out those skills.ā
Ā
āSo, it went well, you hanging out and all?ā Buck asked, clearly nervous about the answer. Eddie leaned over to touch his shoulder to Buckās in solidarity. So, far, things had been going ok with Ron moving to LA and the aurors making their bluff to keep Buck safe from his ex. At least they hadnāt run into any more assassins in the past couple weeks, and everyone was making an effort to get along.
Ā
āYeah, itās giving me a bit of a complex though since heās such a cool dude,ā Chimney huffed.
Ā
āYouāre cool too,ā Hen tried to be the good best friend she was even if she was scrolling on her phone and only half listening.
Ā
āThanks, but my girlfriendās ex takes down terrorists and assassins on the daily, and I get thrown up on at least twice a week,ā Chim sighed. Eddie wanted to reassure him, but he actually wasnāt wrong.
Ā
āDonāt worry, Chim,ā Buck said instead. āRon was absolutely not always this cool. Personally, Iām not so sure Iād call him cool nowā¦but I suppose thatās debatable. Actually, I think I can scrape up a picture of the fifty-years out of style dress he wore to a Christmas dance at school if you want to see.ā
Ā
āSee, thatās even cool!ā Chimney pointed at Buck, not deterred in the slightest. āHe wore something that horrible and just went with it, thatās cool. Plus, a dressā¦very breaking down gender barriers there!ā
Ā
Buck snorted and rolled his eyes. āYeah, pretty sure that wasnāt the first, second, third, or even last thought he had on that one. Plus, he did throw up on me once, if that makes you feel any better. There was this whole accident thing at school, and it made him spill his guts for like an entire day.ā
Ā
āMaybe,ā Chimney finally allowed. āDid he throw up on Maddie though?ā
Ā
Buck thought about that for a second. āNo, but only because she was faster at dodging.ā
Ā
āWeāre here!ā Bobby called out when the fire engine pulled to a stop. āDispatch says that a boy fell into a covered over well on the property. Everyone out to assess the scene. Eddie, Buck, grab the harnesses and ropes. Eddie, youāre still on rope duty.ā
Ā
āBut Bobby!ā Buck protested.
Ā
āYou still have one week of Eddie doing ropes rescues as per our agreement,ā Bobby shot back with a glare. Eddie couldnāt help this triumphantly teasing look at Buck. They always fought over the rope rescues since they were the absolute most fun and dangerous. Eddie personally knew he was much more durable than Buck if something were to happen, even if Buck had magic, so he wanted to take as many dangerous assignments as he could to keep his friend safe.
Ā
āPlus, Eddieās a father, so itāll be easier for him to connect with the kid and keep him calm,ā Bobby added off-handedly.
Ā
Eddieās mouth shut with a frown at the comment. That wasā¦not something he wanted someone to say in front of Buck who did actually have a kid who was off at school and couldnāt live with him for various reasons. That had to hurt. Buck just huffed and went to grab the ropes, seeming to brush it off even if Eddie didnāt think he did as good of a job at brushing these things off as he pretended.
Ā
āYou ready for this?ā Buck asked, helping him into his harness and securing everything.
Ā
āAlways,ā Eddie grinned widely and reassuringly. They were going to get this little boy out of the well, and then Eddie would take Buck home with him to hang out with Chris to maybe help him miss Teddy just a little less.
Ā
Ā
Harry was physically digging in the mud with his bare hands, screaming and breaking down like he hadnāt done since the warā¦not since Sirius and the veil. Eddie was down there though, buried under a ton of mud and debris that had fallen just as soon as the kid had been pulled to safety. Eddie was buried alive, and there wasnāt anything he could do about it.
Ā
āBuck! Stop! Stop!ā Bobby tried pulling him away, but Harry wasnāt listening.
Ā
He shoved his magic into the ground, feeling the tendrils snake deeper and deeper. There was an air pocket or tunnelā¦it felt more like a tunnel or branch off the well. Eddie was definitely in it though. He was alive, he wasnāt dead yet if the slight pulse of the inherent magic that made up vampires was anything to go by.
Ā
āYou canāt help him here, come on Buck,ā Bobby pulled him again, and Harry left the ground, but only to find another option that would be less useless.
Ā
He glanced around, and there were news cameras everywhere. A magical rescue was out of the question, even if he knew a way to dig down there magicallyā¦which he didnāt really, but he would damn well improvise if he had to. Eddie was a vampire though; Buck had to keep telling himself. Eddie could survive much longer than a normal human with very little air, even in water. It was then Harryās job to make sure no one gave up on the rescue until someone much hardier than a human was beyond saving.
Ā
But he wasnāt going to let it get to that anyway. Harry pretended to trip and fall to the ground to push more of his magic into the soil, trying to map out where that tunnel went. It had to lead to some kind of body of water in order to feed the well. He might not be able to dig, but he could send Eddie some light.
Ā
āGive me a minute, Bobby,ā Harry brushed off his captain who tried to bodily lift him up. āJust give me one damn second!ā
Ā
āOk, weāre right there at the tent, working on a plan,ā Bobby motioned to where everyone was trying to come up with some way to safely get down to Eddie. āCome over when youāre ready to help.ā
Ā
Harry nodded distractedly since he was focused on his magic instead. He needed a wand, and the Elder Wand appeared in his hand from wherever heād left itā¦probably at home. āLumus,ā he softly cast into the ground. This was absolutely not how the spell was intended to be used, but he was hoping that a combination of the Elder Wand and sheer desperation would make it work. Harry hoped he sent fractured light down to light the waters in the tunnel towards the attached body of water. If Eddie could see it and follow the light to safetyā¦he didnāt need a lot of air, so hopefully he would have enough to make itā¦
Ā
Harry slipped his wand into his pocket and stood, going over to join the rescue efforts. Maybe they had a solution better than his. Heād try everythingā¦breaking the Statute of Secrecy was definitely the last option, though it was still on the list.
Ā
No one had good ideas though as the argued back and forth. Nothing anyone was saying would actually work. āHeāll be out of air before weāre able to dig in horizontally!ā Hen yelled at that suggestion.
Ā
āHeyā¦you all looking for me?ā A voice sounded behind Harry that almost had him collapse in relief. Instead, he spun around and did catch Eddie who collapsed into his arms.
Ā
āSwamā¦tunnel,ā Eddie coughed out, still coughing up some water from his lungs.
Ā
āHere, bring him to the ambulance,ā Chimney motioned, and Buck pulled the freezing cold, wet man closer to him. Eddie was shaking so much it was making Buckās teeth rattle.
Ā
āI got you,ā Buck said, wandlessly casting a warming charm around his friend. He held most of Eddieās weight as he carried/dragged him towards the ambulance.
Ā
āI didnāt think I was going to make it for a minute,ā Eddie coughed and spit out some water, clutching Buckās turnouts. āThe lightsā¦ā
Ā
āShhā¦I sent those,ā Buck said quietly to convey he shouldnāt talk about that where just anyone could hear. āIām sorry. I didnāt know what else to do.ā
āSaved me,ā Eddie held him closer while Buck and Chimney helped him onto a gurney.
Ā
āWe need to start hypothermia protocols, and no telling what was in that water he inhaled,ā Chimney began, pulling out a body-heat reflective blanket.
Ā
Ā
Everything was happening for Buck in a daze where he was doing his best to stay present and not break down. Theyād gotten Eddie to hospital, he was checked over, given fluids, and finally released. Buck then took him straight home. Bobby had let them both off work as soon as Eddie had been admitted at the hospital, so they were getting home just about the same time they normally would from their shift.
Ā
When Buck opened the door and helped a still shivering Eddie inside, Carla looked up from where she was reading a book on the couch. Her face fell, immediately knowing something was wrong. āEddie? What happened? Are you ok?ā
Ā
āJust a little accident at work, Iām fine,ā Eddie tried to brush her off even with his teeth chattering. A muggle vampireās vitals didnāt look too much different from a normal humanās to a casual medical exam, so long as they didnāt take blood. But Eddie had a harder time maintaining his body heat regularly, let alone hypothermic, so he wasnāt recovering as fast as the doctors said he should.
Ā
āPlease tell me Chris didnāt watch the news tonight?ā Buck asked next in fear, hoping he hadnāt seen.
Ā
āNo,ā Carla stood and said firmly, shaking her head. āI never let him, especially if firefighters are on it. Heās already in bed asleep. Do you want me to stay? I can warm you up something to eat.ā
Ā
āI got him, Carla,ā Buck assured her, already shoving Eddie towards the bathroom for a hot shower. āThank you though. We just need to get him warmed up and a good night of sleep. He should be all well tomorrow.ā
Ā
āThis is payback from me taking you home from the hospital, isnāt it?ā Eddie joked weakly.
Ā
āYep, and Iām going to Florence Nightingale you right back into health,ā Buck glared, pushing him into the bathroom.
Ā
āIs he really ok?ā Carla asked, standing by the door and worriedly wringing her hands.
Ā
Buck breathed out some of his anxiety. Eddie was ok. He would be fine.
Ā
Eddie might be ok, but Buck was pretty sure he wasnāt going to sleep at all that night. The nightmares were already dancing behind his eyes whenever he blinked. āYeah, Carla. He rescued a kid from a well, but then lightning struck our equipment and it caused the well to collapse. He was able to swim to a connecting pond though,ā he explained as concisely as possible. āHeās mainly just cold right now.ā
Ā
Carla put a hand on his arm and squeezed it comfortingly. āYou call me if either of you need anything, ok? You hear me Buck? Anything.ā
Ā
He smiled and walked her out to her car. āI will, and Iāll take good care of them. Drive safe.ā
Ā
Once Carla was gone, Buck went back to the house and pulled blankets out of the closet and a pillow off the bed for himself to sleep on the couchā¦or well, pretend to sleep because he really wasnāt even going to give sleep a fighting chance to catch him that night. Then, he looked through the fridge and threw himself a sandwich together which he inhaled in just a few bites. Eddie didnāt need human food right now to get better, but Buck would in order to be able to give Eddie what he really did need.
Ā
The door opened from the bathroom, and Buck heard shuffling, then the bed creaking with a sigh. He made his way into Eddieās room and joined him on the bed, feeling odd still wearing his work shirt and pants when Eddie was ready for bed. Eddie was wearing sweats and an LAFD t-shirt and still had heat radiating off his skin from the shower. Maybe Buck should have checked just how hot heād turned the water before letting him get in.
Ā
āYou can sleep in here if you want. I know my couch isnāt that comfortable,ā Eddie offered, and Merlin, but Buck wanted to take him up on that. That was if he actually planned to sleep at all, which he didnāt.
Ā
āYou said it yourself. The injured person gets the bed,ā he reminded Eddie before he unceremoniously pulled off his shirt, wishing heād had time for a shower because he was pretty certain he reeked after that shift. āYou need blood to heal. Itāll help more than anything else right now.ā
Ā
Eddie frowned at him sadly, and Buck wasnāt sure what that look was for. āBuckā¦itās not your job to take care of me. Itās not your job to make sure I have blood. Thank you for helping when I really needed it, but I can afford the blood bank now.ā
Ā
Well, that just didnāt make any sense at all. Buck scooted closer to Eddie and pulled him in because he was started to shiver again. āFirst of all, blood from a cold refrigerator is going to be counterproductive right now. I can both warm you up and heal you. And, as youāve said before, my magic gives the blood a little extra boost, right?ā
Ā
āWell, yeah, but I donāt want you to think that I onlyā¦you knowā¦ā
āWant me for food?ā Buck snorted a laugh because that was so ridiculous. Why would Eddie even think that?
Ā
Eddie blushed though. āWell, yesā¦I know I donāt talk about Shannon a lotā¦ā
Ā
And oh, yeahā¦that made sense. āAnd I never talk about Kingsley,ā Buck cut in because it was definitely not the same thing at all, but it showed how he really wouldnāt judge Eddie for having a past that still caused him insecurities and doubts. Eddie just pulled back from his arms with a worried look on his face though.
Ā
āBuckā¦ā
Ā
āLook,ā he tried again with a sigh, still not getting the words right. āIām not Shannon, and I know you donāt want me around just for my blood. You were putting up with me for a hell of a long time before then,ā he smiled tiredly.
Ā
Eddie patted Buckās arm that was holding onto him. āI never āput upā with you. Chris and I have always wanted you here. You belong here.ā
Ā
Buck wasnāt going to cry. Heād been holding back tears since the moment heād seen Eddie was safe, but he was going to break down eventually. He just really wanted to break down once Eddie was asleep, and he could escape back to the living room.Ā
Ā
āAnd, Eds, I want to take care of you,ā Buck said emphatically. āItās nice. Itās not like a bad experience or anything. So, just let me. Weāll heal you up, and youāll be all better by morning.ā
Ā
āYou sure?ā Eddieās mouth was already at Buckās neck though, sending a shiver down his spine.
Ā
āIām always sure of you Eds,ā he breathed out as sharp fangs pierced his skin.
Ā
It was probably the least arousing of all the times Eddie had drunk from him, but it was absolutely the most intimate. Buck held him close, feeling Eddieās heartbeat and, trying to push his own body heat into Eddie who had a hand in Buckās hair, almost petting. It was soft and quiet, and it was love. Harry loved Eddie with all his heart, and maybeā¦just maybeā¦he wasnāt completely alone.
Ā
Ā
Waking up after surviving something that would definitely have killed a normal human being never ceased to amaze Eddie. It had happened a couple times since heād been turned, but this timeā¦this time it had been too close.
Ā
What if Buck hadnāt been able to send the lights to show him the way? What if the tunnel had been longer and lack of air finally caught up with him; he did need to breathe some at least? What if the well had collapsed completely inward, and heād been buried in mud? He couldnāt have survived any of those situations even with his extra strength and durability.
Ā
Eddie stood from his bed and cracked his back, feeling much better than he had any right to. He always felt this good after feeding from Buck though. Something about his blood Ā in particular was like drinking pure sunshine or a steak to a starving man orā¦Draculaās fangs he was starting to sound like sap! It was too early for poetic thoughts. Seeking out the smell of coffee in the air, Eddie shuffled out of his bedroom and towards the kitchen.
Ā
āTell me, whatās the difference between dicing and slicing?ā Buckās voice asked quizzingly, like a homework assignment.
Ā
Eddie looked into the room and had to pause at where Harry was helping Chris cut up what looked like strawberries. And it was Harry, not Buck, since his long, black hair was pulled up in a bun on his head and a plethora of scars were visible from the sleeveless undershirt he must have slept in.
Ā
āDicing you cut it into small cubes and slicing is thin slivers,ā Christopher answered, very seriously and slowly using the knife to cut a strawberry under Harryās sharp gaze. Eddie leaned against the doorway and just took it all in. His son was so concentrated, and Harry was smiling, encouraging him but there in case he needed help.
Ā
āGood answer! Youāre going to be so much better at Potions than I was when you start magic school,ā Harry laughed and took the knife to finish up the chopping when Chris was done with his strawberry. āNow, turn on the burner for me, and Iāll start on a pancake as soon as I finish this.ā
Ā
āI got you, Buck,ā Chris turned on the burner before turning around and giving Eddie a huge grin. āMorning Dad! Buck is teaching me Potions!ā
Ā
āI saw that. Good morning you two,ā he said, standing back up to fill a mug with the coffee Buck had made.
Ā
āSleep well?ā Harry asked, looking over his shoulder with eyes that clearly were assessing how Eddie looked and if he was in any distress or still cold.
Ā
āIām perfect, Buck, I promise,ā he said in all seriousness. He really never felt better than after drinking Buckās blood, and the night before had beenā¦it had been different, closer. Theyād already crossed so many lines, but it had felt like one more, and a significant one at that.
Ā
Harry finally turned back to the stove and poured batter into the now hot pan. āOh, you left your phone on the counter last night, and your parents have called a few times. I donāt know if they saw the news or if this is about something else,ā Harry told him with a sympathetic look.
Ā
Eddie grimaced but picked up his phone. He had missed two calls from his mom and one from his dad. This was not good. The well collapse must have made national news then.
Ā
āIām just going to step outside to call them. Iāll be back in a minute,ā he kissed Chrisās head before stepping out the backdoor with his coffee in one hand and his phone in the other.
Ā
He stood there for a second, pulling up his contacts. He knew what his parents would say. Theyād say his job was too dangerous, and he should move back to El Paso. Or that he should let them take care of Chris. They had never supported Eddieās decisions. They had been so against Shannon, then against him being a firefighter, moving to LA, even his capability to be a father. He didnāt need to tell them to know they couldnāt handle him being a vampire. Theyād forcibly take Chris.
Ā
Eddie paused where his finger hovered over his momās contact. How would they take Chris being a wizard? They would never help him learn Potions. His mother would say that Chrisās fine motor skills werenāt good enough to hold a knife, and sheād never let him try. Dios, but they probably wouldnāt even let him go to magic school! Theyād definitely never let him learn to fly on a broom (ok Eddie was still working on that himself), and noā¦he couldnāt let that happen.
Ā
There had really been a moment the night before where Eddie wasnāt sure heād make it, and he couldnāt let Chris go to his parents. With Shannon dead though, there was no other family. Sheād lost her father as a child and her mother only a year ago.
Ā
Eddie looked through the window back to the kitchen. Harry was flipping a pancake and laughing at something Chris was telling him. The two of them were comfortable together, free to be their true selves. Harry would help him with magic, would make sure he was ready for school, would never tell Chris he couldnāt do something because of his disability, and damn, but Harry had raised one really good kid who loved Chris already.
Ā
Eddieās thumb scrolled through his contacts determinedly until he found the number for the family law office he and Shannon had used for their divorce. He hit the number, knowing he would never regret this decision.
Ā
āYes, hello,ā he said to the woman who answered the phone. āMy name is Edmundo Diaz. Iām an old client of Ms. Benningtonās. Could I make an appointment to set up a will?ā
Ā
Ā
It had been a week after the well, and Buck still hadnāt left the houseā¦not that Eddie was complaining in the slightest. Buck seamlessly fell into their lives whenever he was over. It was justā¦Eddie knew he needed to tell his friend what heād done. It was important, even though he knew Buck would go along with it.
Ā
Theyād gotten off their shift late the night before and crashed. Needing less sleep, Eddie had rolled out of bed and taken Chris to school, leaving Buck asleep on the couch. Now he was home though with breakfast sandwiches from that fancy farm-to-table place Buck liked and nervous about how this was going to go.
Ā
āSoā¦um we need to talk,ā he started and already regretted his choice of words.
Ā
Buck paused in where he was chewing and looked terrified. āYou want me to go, right?ā He finally concluded once he swallowed, and damn Eddie felt bad. āIām sorry. I was just really worried and thought if I stayed for a little whileā¦ā
Ā
āNo, Buck, I donāt want you to leave,ā he said as quickly as he could to jump into his friendās spiraling. āYou are welcome to stay here as long as you want.ā
Ā
āOhā¦ok,ā Buck put down his sandwich but still looked worried. āSo, what is it?ā
Ā
āI did a thing,ā he winced. āAnd just, hear me outā¦remember when my parents called?ā
Ā
āErā¦yeah,ā Buck fidgeted with a hair tie on his wrist, eventually pulling his hair back into it. āDid they say something?ā
Ā
āThey didnāt have to. I already know all they ever say,ā Eddie sighed at that truth of that. āAnyway, I realized that I may be immortal, but I can still die, and the well came really close.ā
Ā
Buck lost all color in his face as he nodded. āI would have figured something outā¦I justā¦there were all the news camerasā¦ā
Ā
āI know,ā Eddie reached out to grab Buckās hand. āIām not saying you should have done anything, but I know. What Iām saying is that something could happen, and I realized I donāt want my parents to raise a wizard. Hell, I donāt want them to raise Chris even if he didnāt have magic, but especially now.ā
Ā
āOh, yeahā¦you think theyād be scared of him?ā Buck asked with wide eyes. āMy aunt and uncleā¦they were scared of magic.ā
Ā
Ok, yes, they were definitely going to dig into that sometime very soon since it sounded exceptionally concerning, but Eddie had to keep this on track. āMaybeā¦but they would never support him, not like he needs regardless, but I know you will,ā Eddie told him emphatically. āI met with a lawyer two days ago and changed my will.ā
Ā
Buck didnāt look like he understood. Right, so Eddie needed to spell it out. āI gave you Chris,ā he said firmly. āIf anything happens to me, I want you to take care of my son.ā
Ā
āOh,ā he breathed out, looking more stunned than Eddie had expected.
Ā
āYou can refuse to take himā¦ā
Ā
āI wouldnāt,ā Buck interrupted firmly.
Ā
āI know,ā Eddie just smiled back. āI know you would raise him like your own, because you already do.ā
Ā
Buck let out a deep breath and scrubbed a hand down his face. He looked agitated, and Eddie hoped he hadnāt overstepped. āMerlin, now Iām going to have to come clean, arenāt I?!ā He laughed.
Ā
Eddie held in his own laugh. āWhat did you do?ā Because of course Buck had done something.
Ā
āOk, so there are all these magical banks and legal systems and the education system and a whole world thatās hard to navigate as someone coming from a non-magical family, or even someone whoās the kid of a vampire,ā Buck began. āThere is also a lot of prejudice out there, even if things are hopefully getting a little better.ā
Ā
āIām starting to get the picture that Iām a little in over my head without you and Maddie helping out,ā he agreed.
Ā
āAnd my family name is important,ā Buck continued. āThe Potter family is well-respectedā¦maybe not in Britain right now, but definitely here in America. Andā¦as head of the family, I can add people, especially squibs and muggleborns. It means nothing besides protection and that you can throw around my name if you run into any of that prejudice.ā
Ā
It took a minute before what Buck was saying started to sink in. āBuckā¦have you already adopted my son somehow in the magical world?ā
Ā
Was he supposed to be mad about this? Maybe he would have been a year ago, but now that he was thrust into this magical world and saw the danger and complexities, now that he knew Buck, or rather Harry Potter, he was more curious than anything else. No, he wasnāt mad, but he did need an explanation.
Ā
āNot exactly,ā Buck said unhelpfully. āAnd, youāre kind of part of my family too. Like, legally, you and Chris and even Josh are under my protection if something happens in the magical world where you need help. Thatās why Josh could see me in hospital. They would have let you back too.ā
Ā
Ok, that was actually kind of nice. Maybe heād ask Josh to explain more later, but for now, that wasā¦actually really nice. āYou didnāt have to do thatā¦ā
Ā
āAnd one more thing,ā Buck winced. Eddie was worried again. āPlease donāt get madā¦ā
Ā
Eddie crossed his arms and braced for impact. āJust spit it out.ā
Ā
āWellā¦Iām like really wealthy,ā Buck said, and Eddie knew he had money. Itās not like theyād talked about it, but Buck had let some things slip, so he assumed. āLike old family money from two different families, plus I made some very lucky investments, plus some money because of some legal stuff with the warā¦so like really wealthyā¦ā
Ā
āI donāt know where this is going,ā Eddie said because he was following, but couldnāt see the end.
Ā
āTeddy has a trust fund for his education, any apprenticeship program he wants to do after school, and some money to get him started in a career,ā Buck said, and Eddie was starting to get worried he knew exactly where this was going. āSo, I kind of just did the same thing for Chris when I learned he had magic. I know this world, and it can be difficult. I just wanted him to have every opportunity, and I wanted to help with that.ā
Ā
Eddie let his head sink to the table where he hit it a few times, trying to make sense of all this. In his mind, it made sense for him to put Buck in his will to take Christopher. Eddie could even sort-of see the vague family protection thing Buck had done as making a kind of sense. The trust fundā¦that didnāt make sense. That wasnāt something you do for your friendās kid. That was something you did for your own kid and no one else. But Buck had always been a part of their family ever since the earthquake well over a year before.
Ā
Eddie looked up at Buckās flushed and worried face and everything started clicking. āAre we really the two most oblivious people on the planet?ā He finally said, not knowing where this certainty was coming from, but it was slamming right into him.
Ā
āBuckā¦You adopted us into your family and set up my sonās futureā¦I gave you my sonā¦I trust you more than anyoneā¦ā Eddie looked into Harryās green eyes with every ounce of love in his body. āI donāt know how else to say I love you, so maybe Iām just waiting for you to say it back now.ā
Ā
There was a beat of silence that held all of eternity in it.
Ā
āI love you too,ā Buck said, something like magic behind those words that hit Eddie right in the heart.
Notes:
Up Next: The return of the ex...
Chapter 20: Train Crash
Notes:
I'm not getting through the last of my outline nearly as fast as I thought I would, so I've added a couple chapters to the chapter count. I think this is much more reasonable now.
(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)
Chapter Text
Buck was pressed into the couch, well into a make out session with his best friend before he realized he may be assuming a lot more than he should. In his defense, the blood wasnāt currently in his brain right now, and he also wasn't running this show surprisingly enough. It took more than a little effort to de-tangle his tongue from Eddieās mouth and pull back just a little to say what he needed to.
Ā
āUh, Eddieā¦you knowā¦I love you,ā he started, trying to get some air back into his lungs too. Merlin, but vampires not having to breathe as much was both wonderful and a little awkward!Ā
Ā
āWeāve already established that,ā Eddie kissed him again, and Buck heroically pushed him back just slightly, getting an adorable pout he was certain Eddie didnāt realize he was doing.
Ā
āJust give me a minute,ā he closed his eyes to try to form words. āI love you, and I want to be with you in whatever way youāre comfortable with.ā
Ā
āGreat,ā Eddie grinned as his hands wandered under Buck to his arse and was so very distracting.
Ā
āWhat Iām trying to say,ā he gasped. āIs that I thought you were straight up until like half an hour ago, and I know youāre demisexual, so we donāt have to do anything if you donāt want. Just because I would really like to have sex with you, doesnāt mean we have to do that. I just want to be with you, whatever that looks like.ā
Ā
Eddie gave some sort-of choked off laugh and plopped his head on Buckās chest. āBuck, seriouslyā¦ā he laughed again.
Ā
āWhat? Iām trying to do this the right way!ā He said, doing his best to ignore the fact he was painfully hard and could feel Eddieās erection pressing against his own, so he knew Eddie was at least a little turned on, but that still didnāt mean they had to do anything.
Ā
Eddie ground down, and Buck really lost all thought and maybe a few brain cells for a moment. āBuck, Iām literally the one on top of you right now,ā Eddie said in a chuckle, his mouth pressed lightly against Buckās own. āIām clearly not completely straight, and Iāve come to terms with that and am cool with it and have moved on.ā
Ā
āAwesome, brilliant,ā He allowed his hands to grab back onto Eddie and pull him even closer.
Ā
āAnd I may be demisexual, but itās not like I donāt know you Buckā¦and Iāve definitely had time to establish some very strong feelings if you can't tell,ā Eddie assured him, his hands how unbuckling and unzipping them both with ease.
Ā
There was one more thing though. Buck gasped and grabbed both of Eddieās hands in his own to make him listen for one second. āIām all for this, and Iām here, Iām all in,ā he told Eddie firmly because he didnāt want to be misunderstood. āButā¦ā
Ā
āBut?ā Eddieās eyes widened with a spike of fear. āGod, Buck, we can stop. I didnāt thinkā¦If you donāt want toā¦ā
Ā
āNo, I do,ā he sighed because this confusion was what he was trying to avoid. āLookā¦I trust you so much, but I have to tell youā¦I havenāt been with a guy since Kingsley. Merlin, but I havenāt even been with a woman since Abby, and I have some hang-ups where sex is concerned now. I'm not exactly sure how I'm going to react actually.ā
Ā
āOh,ā Eddie sat up, not really helping the situation since that was more friction, but he stayed there on top of Buck and waited, listening, and thatās really all he needed.
Ā
Buckās heart swelled and he took his friendā¦his loveās hand in his and kissed it. āI just want to be very clear that I may freak out at some point, and just, let me work through it. Itās not about you. If I donāt, then cool, but I needed to warn you in case it happens,ā he said, seeing Eddieās eyes soften. āYouāre also a lot stronger than me. I need you to not hold me down.ā
Ā
āYeah, of course, I canā¦ā Eddie tried to get off of him, but Buck put his hands on the vampireās hips and held him there even though Eddie could easily get out of his hold.
Ā
āThis is fine, itās good, just donāt pin my arms, ok?ā He asked with what he hoped was a reassuring smile. āI need to feel like I can summon my wand if I need to. I wonāt, but I have to be able to feel that itās an option.ā
Ā
Eddie put a hand on the side of his face then traced the lightning bolt scar branching across his forehead. āWe can take this slower. Itās not like I planned this at all, and we donāt have to jump to the physical the very first day weāre together.ā
Ā
Buck snorted a laugh. āEddie, weāve been taking this glacially slow. I think weāve done literally everything relationship-wise already before the physical.ā
Ā
Eddie nodded but leaned back again to Buckās disappointment. āWell, that doesnāt mean we have to jump right into sex at this very moment,ā he concluded. āChris is in school until 3, so we have time. How about we start with a shower, then we move this to the bed instead of the couch, then we decide how we want to do this because Buckā¦Iām literally up for whatever you are. Iāve never attempted a blow job before, but Iām willing to learn, or it might be nice if you want to fuck me this time, I mean, that would have to be easier for you, right?ā
Ā
Buck chuckled but nodded. āMerlin, Eds, Iām so glad we have today off work.ā
Ā
āAll day, thenā¦weāll have to figure out what to tell Chris,ā Eddie frowned, seeming to just then realize the situation they'd face that evening.
Ā
āWe donāt have to tell him anything until youāre ready,ā Buck sat up and looped his arms around Eddie better. āI do think it important to note that he and Teddy have definitely been trying to set us up though, so I donāt think heāll be upset.ā
Ā
āMaybe a little too excited,ā he laughed wryly before tangling his hand in Harry's long hair. āHow about we keep this to ourselves just for a few days? I havenāt come out to my family yet, and if we tell Chris, then he may say something to Pepa or Abuelaā¦ā
Ā
āRight, yeah, I didnāt think,ā Buck nodded quickly. āHow do you think theyāll take it? I mean, you donāt have to tell them for meā¦ā
Ā
āAbuela and Pepa will be fine,ā Eddie rolled his eyes and kissed Buck lightly. āTheyāre very open-minded for their ages at least. I just want them to hear it from me and not someone else. My parentsā¦well, thereās a reason I want you and not them to take care of Chris if something happens to me. If this is what pushes our relationship over the edge, Iād rather it be because Iām romantically involved with a man than them learning Iām a vampire at least.ā
Ā
Buck winced. āYeah, that might be best. I can obliviate them of the information if they take it poorly though, just let me know if you want me to.ā
Ā
āMagic is cool and definitely scary,ā he chuckled before leaning back and looking a little embarrassed. āOh, um this reminded meā¦so, small thing I neglected to tell youā¦ā
Ā
āOk, lay it on me,ā Buck grinned because apparently, they were laying it all out there before the sexy times it seemed, and he was very motivated to keep this moving.
Ā
āSo, that day you were arrested,ā Eddie winced. āYour auror friend and the school lady were talking about having to obliviate anyone who knew about Chrisās magic who wasnāt family, and then Chris said you are my partnerā¦and well, I may have let them draw the wrong conclusion at the time to maybe keep them from wanting to wipe your memory.ā
Ā
Buck blinked as all the comments Cho had made since them about them finally slipped into place in his mind. āOhā¦they thought weāre married?ā
Ā
Eddie nodded. āThe school sent a letter not long ago addressed to the Potter-Diaz household, and well, I know youāve kind of adopted us, sort of anyway, but it seems the school definitely believes weāre togetherā¦which I guess we kind of are nowā¦ā
Ā
Harry was frowning though because neither the Sidhe nor MACUSA would have told Ilvermorny about his adoption of the Diazes, so he hadnāt taken into account that the school would have officially associated them in their records. And that made a horrifying note of senseā¦
Ā
āGive me a quick second,ā Harry grabbed his cell phone off the coffee table and hit a contact that had recently become very well used. The call connected and Harry immediately put it on speaker so Eddie could hear too.
Ā
āHarry, you better not be calling me out to a warehouse full of unconscious art thieves again,ā Cho grumbled in what Harry hoped was fond exasperation. āYou have Ron there for that now.ā
Ā
Eddie raised a questioning eyebrow, but Harry just laughed and shook his head. āNo, but I think I have a lead for you on how Kingsley found out Iām in America.ā
Ā
āOh, great because Iāve cleared all the aurors you interacted with here in New York, and I'm scrambling for another options,ā she said in sudden interest.
Ā
āIlvermorny and the Herbology lady,ā he said. āApparently Eddie maybe let you all assume weāre married, and she formally put me down as a parent for Chris.ā
Ā
Cho swore, and Eddie looked upset that this was what had led to Harry being found. Harry put his hand on Eddieās neck and gave it a little comforting squeeze to hopefully reassure him. āSchool records of muggleborns are shared between governments to establish how many and from where they are coming from. Heād have to have asked about you in particular though,ā Cho said.Ā
Ā
āHe probably assumed Iād transfer Teddy at some point, and had someone looking at all the major schools for my name specifically in whatever list it come up in,ā he concluded, knowing how Kingsley thought. It was also a reason he hadnāt asked Andromeda if they could transfer Teddy. That and Teddy had friends and was comfortable at Hogwarts.
Ā
āIāll look into it Harry, but I donāt think thereās anything we can do at this point,ā she concluded. āI assume you have the Diaz home warded?ā
Ā
āCho,ā he said because she really didnāt even have to ask.
Ā
āI know, I know, but I had to ask. Iāll loop in Ron, and he can let you know what I find.ā
Ā
āThanks Cho,ā he said before they said goodbye and hung up.
Ā
āBuck, Iām so sorry,ā Eddie began, emphatically.
Ā
āNo, you did nothing wrong,ā Harry corrected, kissing him to stop the self-flagellation. āYou were trying to protect me, and he was going to find me eventually anyway. And this all led to me getting asylum and not having to hide anymore, so it's not completely a bad thing. Iāll just keep checking for poison in my food, and Iām going to give Chris a portkey just in caseā¦but Kingsley wouldnāt send anyone after a kid. Heās a bastard, but even he isnāt that bad. He protected me as a kid, and he hasnāt once questioned Teddy. He may be a horrible excuse for a human, but he's not a dark lord or anything, and actually a decent minister.ā
Ā
Eddie nodded and looked worried, but seemed to be letting it go. āI still find it a little hard to believe that me and Josh are on the list of your exes with a literal leader of an entire country.ā
Ā
āAnd a professional athlete, and a top auror, and an assassinās sonā¦ā Harry trailed off as a thought occurred to him. It was maybe a good idea. āI wonder if I should ask Blaise if his mum could ask around to see if there are any hits out on me? I think she'd tell me if she was asked directly.ā
Ā
Eddie shook his head and chuckled. āSo, you have a decent ex who is the kid of a literal assassin, but the world leader is the bad one?ā
Ā
Harry blinked at that conclusion. āNo, Blaise cheated on me repeatedly in our less than one month relationship, so I wouldnāt call him a decent ex, but at least the breakup was fairly amicable and didnāt come to blows. Ginny and Cho are the only exes who are decent, and Cho and I really only ever went on one date.ā
Ā
āWell, I only have Shannon,ā Eddie winced, and Harry squeezed his arm. āSo, no skeletons in my closet.ā
Ā
Harry kissed him and got an enthusiastic response. āHow about we give up talking for a bit since I was promised a shower and sexy times?ā
Ā
āHell yeah!ā Eddie jumped up.
Ā
āCan I amend the plan to include a little lunch for the vampire,ā he tapped the side of his neck excitedly. āYou have to realize how difficult itās been for me to keep from humping you every time you feed, right?ā
Ā
Eddie just grinned wider. āI could eat.ā
Ā
Ā
Buck and Eddie had only been together a few days, and Buck was having a very difficult time keeping from giving it away to their coworkers just from how much he wanted to look at Eddie and smile all day. He couldnāt believe how lucky he was. They were keeping it a secret just a little longer though, so he was trying to be good and keep his hands to himself. Eddie had dinner with his abuela the day before, and apparently it had been anticlimactic. It seemed that Abuela had believed they were already together and had been for almost a year surprisingly. It turned out this was why she'd made it very clear to Eddie that she was good with "the gays" so vehemently whenever it came up.Ā
Ā
Abuela was going to tell Eddieās Aunt Pepa (who she was certain already thought they were together as well), and he and Eddie were going to take Chris to the zoo and tell him on their next day off. Then, Buck would be free to tell Ron, Maddie, and Teddy. Thenā¦then they could fill out the stupid HR paperwork with the fire department and tell the rest of the team. He could already hear the teasing from Chim and Hen they were going to get. It was so worth it though. Heād never felt this way about anyone. This relationship, he could already tell it was so much healthier than any he'd ever been in. He didn't even need to ask Ron and Hermione if this was a 'Norberta' situation. He would still ask though because they'd agreed to that, but he could tell, this one was a good one.Ā
Ā
Bobby broke into Buckās thoughts from where he was sitting at the table in the fire house loft and trying his best not to stare at where Eddie was playing a video game with Chimney. Bobby sat and slid a mug of coffee in front of him. āOh, bless you!ā Buck grinned at the man and took a sip (after surreptitiously checking for poison). āI was just thinking I needed more caffeine.ā
Ā
āHow are you feeling?ā Bobby asked, sipping his own coffee and getting comfortable beside him at the table.
Ā
Buck raised an eyebrow at his captain. āIāve been back at work for weeks. Iām fine. Eddie was the one in the well.ā
Ā
Bobby nodded slowly. āYes, but I think the well might have impacted you more long-term than even Eddie. Buckā¦I saw you when it collapsed,ā he said quietly, leaning forward. āSo, be honest. How are you feeling, kid?ā
Ā
It always made Buck smile when Bobby called him ākid.ā It was mainly because he liked how Bobby had pushed himself into that paternal role against all Buck had done to discourage that even when he craved it so very much. On a more humorous level, he was way too old to actually be Bobbyās kid and had much more life experience than the man. It was nice though because if he had a parental figure, he wanted it to be Bobby. No one else had tried as much as Bobby had in the time they had known each other, not Remus or Sirius or anyone.
Ā
āI talked with Eddie after what happened,ā Buck reassured him. āIām fineā¦weāre fine. Iām sorry I freaked out on you so much.ā
Ā
Bobby clapped a hand on his back and rubbed it comfortingly. āBuck, itās not bad to have emotions. We do have to hold things together and be calm and professional in emergencies all the time, but when itās one of us, we all know thatās different. Have you given any more thought to talking with someone though?ā
He actually had to his own surprise. Eddie had rolled over on top of him in his sleep just the night before when Buck had stayed over, and heād freaked out when he felt himself trapped. Thankfully, he had only panicked and didnāt through any curses or even wake Eddie up when he slid out from under him. However, he realized when he'd calmed down and found himself curled up on the floor in Eddieās closet that he couldnāt keep repressing everything that had happened to him until it slammed into him and made him pay attention. He also realized that he needed to set a good example for Teddy and Chris and get help when he needed it.
Ā
āYeah, I have,ā he breathed out, knowing that getting help from a therapist was actually one of those problems itself.
Ā
āI think Iām going to give it another try. Maddie should be able to get me a list of some good therapists.ā Well, Hermione could get him a list of mind-healers in LA, ones he could require to make a magically binding vow of secrecy. So, yeah, he was going to go the mind-healer route this time.
Ā
āGood, Iām proud of you,ā Bobby smiled at him kindly, and Buck felt the love behind it. āYou canāt keep using my AA meetings as therapy when you never drink more than a couple beers at a time and don't have a problem with it. Plus, their coffee really is bad.ā
Ā
āSo bad,ā he chuckled. āI might still go with you some if you donāt mind though. I like being there for you.ā
Ā
Bobby just squeezed the back of his neck and smiled. āI like being there for you too, kid.ā
Ā
They sat there beside each other for a minute before Bobby leaned forward and smirked at him. āAnd, just so you knowā¦there are a few forms for HR Iāve already pulled for you and Eddie when youāre ready,ā he said quietly.
Ā
Buck snorted a laughed and shook his head at the irony. āIāll take that into account,ā he assured the man who could somehow accurately catch onto their very new relationship but who still didnāt quite believe his own wife had magic.
Ā
āHey, Buck,ā Hen called out, coming up the stairs to the loft with a box in her hands. āA delivery guy dropped this off for you. Why did you have something delivered to the station?ā
Ā
Buck frowned and caught Eddieās quick look and almost supernaturally fast hurry to his side. āI didnāt,ā he said, very concerned about what this could be. He stood and took the very light box from Hen and let his magic sink into it through his hands.
Ā
He couldnāt cast any detection spells, but his magic wasnāt snagging on anything like there were spells or curses or anything else magical in the box. He also caught Eddie sniffing beside him, clearly trying to be stealthy about it. Eddie just shook his head with a worried shrug. He couldnāt detect any magic, and mages would be unlikely to build a muggle bomb or anything like that. Eddie would have caught a bomb with his sense of smell too. Still, this was stupidly suspicious though.
Ā
Chimney had made his way over to them by then too. āWell, open it. Maybe itās a gift or something.ā
Ā
āHere,ā Bobby pulled a pocketknife out of his pocket and passed it over for Buck to cut the tape.
Ā
Slowly, so that he could hopefully catch anything before it was disastrous, he slit the tape and put the knife on the table. Buck slowly opened a flap, and didnāt see anything dangerous. He opened the other and frowned at the furry thing within. Nothing looked dangerous at all.
Ā
Ok, so what was this? Buck pulled out what seemed to be some kind of plushie and looked at it better. His blood ran cold.
Ā
āWhat is it is, Buck?ā Eddie asked, but his voice sounded like it was coming from the other end of a long tunnel, echoing from a great distance away.
Ā
āOh, thatās cute,ā another voice said, probably Hen, but he couldnāt process it.
Ā
He was panicking, and he knew he shouldnāt. It was only a toy. It was only a toy. It was onlyā¦it was a snowy owl plushieā¦one that looked exactly like Hedwig.
Ā
āBuckā¦just breathe, itās ok, just talk to us, kid,ā Bobby was saying from wherever the team were outside of his consciousness.
Ā
Harry did breathe though; he took in a breath and rushed over to the trash can. He opened it and shoved the toy inside of it, slamming the lid closed again. He felt like heād just run a mile with snatchers on his tail as he tried to breathe and calm down.
Ā
āSoā¦not just a stuffed animal?ā Hen asked, her voice coming through clearly now from where the three members of the 118 Harry was closest to stood by and looked at him with clear concern.
Ā
āIt was from him, wasnāt it?ā Chimney asked, catching on when Harry really wished he wouldnāt. āIt means something to you.ā
Ā
āWhat?ā Bobby asked, looking at Hen who similarly had no idea and Eddie who was fuming even if he didnāt understand the significance. āWho sent it? What does the owl mean?ā
Ā
āIt means he know where I am, how to get to me, and those I love arenāt safe,ā Harry told Chimney who ran a hand over his face before walking right up to Harry.
Ā
āIām going to hug you, ok? Can I?ā Chimney held out his arms, but waited and let Harry take that last step forward.
Ā
He and Chimney hardly ever hugged, but he fell into the other manās arms and held on tightly because he desperately needed it. Everyoneās houses were warded probably stronger than Azkaban against hostile magical people and creatures, but Harry couldnāt ward the fire station. Kingsley might have to wait and reevaluate his plans after MACUSAās clear support, but he wanted Harry to know that he wouldnāt forget and knew exactly where he was.
Ā
āI should leave,ā Harry whispered into Chimneyās neck, something he didnāt want to think about, had thought he was past now, but the thought was firmly right back into his mind.
Ā
āNo, you shouldnāt because heāll just find you again, and we wonāt be there next time,ā Eddie said, his vampire hearing picking up the whisper.
Ā
āListen to Eddie,ā Chimney patted his back and held on even tighter. āHe doesnāt know where you live if he sent it to the station, and no one is going to let anyone get to you here.ā
Ā
Everyone at the station were muggles except for him and Eddie though, so they really couldnāt stop Kingsley from getting to him at the station if he tried. Chimney did have a point though. Kingsley couldnāt openly attack him at the station because of the Statute of Secrecy and causing an international incident. So, for now, he was safe at his home and safe at the station. Heād just need to be extra careful everywhere else. He was definitely going to add so many more wards to everyoneās homes thoughā¦there was a Sidhe one he wanted to try that he would need to get Darraghās approval for. It was possible no one would get any Amazon packages after that though, so maybe he should look into it firstā¦
Ā
āWho are we talking about?ā Hen asked in confusion. āAre you in danger, Buck?ā
Ā
He breathed in and steadied his heart, ready to let go of one of his tightly held secrets for two more of his coworkers. Eddie took Chimneyās place and put his arm around Buck's shoulders, holding him together to admit this. It would be ok though, he knew Bobby and Hen, and he knew he could tell them and they would be supportive.
Ā
āI was seeing a man before I came to work here...before I came to LA,ā he told the two of them. āYou all know I moved around a lot before I settled here in LA. He was why I moved so much and didnāt stay long in one location.ā
Ā
He could see the implications settle in Hen and Bobbyās eyes. āIt was an abusive relationship, and I had to run,ā he said as bluntly as he could because he just needed this over with. āThe owlā¦the owl had to come from him. I already knew he recently learned where I am, and thatās why Ron moved here.ā
Ā
āOh Buck,ā Hen gasped, putting her hand over her mouth. She looked like sheād be hugging him if Eddie wasnāt already there.
Ā
āIām calling Athena,ā Bobby had his cellphone in his hand instantly, clearly needing to do something to fix this when he couldnāt fix anything about it at all.
Ā
āShe already knows,ā Buck told him. āWell, not about this, but about him finding me. She and Ron have been looking into it.ā
Ā
āThen she needs to know about the owl,ā Bobby dialed anyway.
Ā
The sirens sounded loudly, and Bobby hung up with a frown. āDo you need to stay back?ā He asked.
Ā
āNo,ā Buck firmly shook his head. āIām good. It just took me off guard.ā
Ā
Bobby nodded firmly, his look telling Buck he trusted him before they all hurried down to the engine. The information came in over the speakers as they grabbed their gear. Merlin, it was a train derailment! They jumped in and pulled out of the station, ready for a what promised to be a horrifying tragedy.
Ā
Ā
Eddie stayed as close to Buck as he could while they jumped into doing what they could at the site of the train derailment. They were first on scene, so Bobby was IC and barking orders to all the other companies, and thankfully, he knew to keep Eddie and Buck together. Buck was nothing but exceptionally professional though, not that Eddie expected anything different, but he still wanted to be there and be supportive after the shock heād had back at the station.
Ā
The accident itself was worse than heād thought it would be. One of the passenger cars was on its end at almost a right angle to the ground, and they werenāt sure how to go about getting everyone out. Buck ran a saw over to Chimney while Eddie assessed the situation more.
Ā
A redheaded woman almost plowed into him, trying to get past him to the train. āMaāam! Maāam! You have to stay back!ā He blocked her, noticing a cut on her forehead and how covered in dust she was, she must have been on the train when it crashed. āLetās get you looked over.ā
Ā
āI have to get to the train!ā She tried to push past him again.
Ā
āIām sorry, Maāam, but you canāt.ā
Ā
She paused in trying to get past him, and her eyes caught on his coat and hat. Good, maybe she would realize he was a firefighter here to help and listen to him now. āYouāre from the 118!ā She said, recognizing the number instead.
Ā
āYes,ā Eddie was so confused. Why would she recognize the firehouse number.
Ā
āBuck! You must know Buck then!ā She held onto his coat.
Ā
Eddie suddenly had a sinking feeling. The feeling was confirmed by:
Ā
āAbby?ā A voice heād know from anywhere said from behind him.
Ā
āAbby! Were you on the train?! Are you ok?!ā Buck hurried over and grabbed onto the woman who rushed at him.
Ā
āI have to get on the train, Buck! I have to find him! Help me get on the train!ā She said frantically.
Ā
āWoah, woah, who?ā Buck stopped her, holding her steady clearly trying to push calmness onto her.
Ā
āMy fiancĆ©!ā She gasped, not looking him in the eyes.
Ā
Eddie breathed out, trying to steady his own whirling emotions about this whole situation. Even before heād fallen for Buck, heād had a lot of feelings about Abby. Heād seen the aftermath of what sheād done to his best friend, and that was something he couldnāt get past, didnāt want to get past. Heād frankly hoped to never meet herā¦well, heād rather meet Abby than Kingsley, but that wasnāt saying much.
Ā
āDo you have a picture,ā Buck said, all professionalism after only a blink of surprise. She pulled up a picture on her phone and showed them both.
Ā
āIāll get him, Abby,ā Buck promised. āYou need to go over there and get checked out though and let us do our jobs.ā He gently pushed Abby towards the paramedics and shared a small look with Eddie.
Ā
āSo that was Abby,ā Eddie remarked while they climbed inside the upturned train car, not have any idea how he was going to follow-up that statement.Ā
Ā
āYeah,ā he confirmed tightly. āDidnāt think Iād ever see her again.ā
Ā
Eddie still didnāt know what to say to that. āIām sorry, Buck.ā
Ā
āHey,ā he paused in pulling out the debris to look back at Eddie. āI got you now. I think I won this breakup.ā
Ā
Eddie chuckled and levered himself up and over a row of seats. āLAFD, call out!ā A weak cry sounded from the top of the carriage, and they got to work.
Ā
Abbyās fiancĆ© was trapped at the very top of the carriage though, with a beam holding down a girl at the other end. Bobby pulled them aside when he came in to help them assess the situation. āI donāt think we can save them both,ā he said sadly. "If we move the beam to get one out, it will crush the other."Ā
Ā
Buck looked back, and his face hardened. Eddie knew he wasnāt going to take that as an answer. āMaybe we canā¦ā he shot off some ideas at Bobby who poked holes in each suggestion, but Eddie was really just waiting on Buck whoād gotten quiet and was assessing all the options. He did this a lot. They would be in an impossible situation, and Buck would come up with some crazy idea to get them out of it. It was only now that Eddie realized there was probably a little more āmagicā in those situations than heād known before.
Ā
āWe can get him from the outside of the carriage,ā Buck said firmly. āThe skin is aluminum and easier to cut through.ā
Ā
āNo,ā Bobby said firmly. āIf it falls, itāll crush you.ā
Ā
āI know, and I know itās heavier than a ladder truck, but I can do this Bobby,ā he said firmly. āEddie can spot me, and if it shifts, Iāll get away as quickly and safely as possible.ā
Ā
He could see Bobby faltering. āBuckā¦ā
Ā
āHeās Abbyās fiancĆ©, Bobby,ā Buck pleaded, his blue eyes wide, and Eddie suddenly missed the green heād seen only just that morning before theyād gone to work. He liked how Buck looked now and as Harry, but he liked most seeing the real behind the mask.Ā
Ā
āOk,ā Bobby caved. āBut if it shifts even slightlyā¦ā
Ā
āI know, I know!ā Buck nodded and hurried off before Bobby could change his mind.
Ā
Eddie followed and grabbed him by the back of his turnouts before heād gotten five steps outside the train. āHey, Iām going up, and youāre going to spot me instead,ā he said firmly.
Ā
āWhat? No, Edsā¦ā
Ā
āIf it falls and crushes me, Iāll live through it,ā Eddie shook his head. It would hurt like hell, and heād definitely need to see a healer specific to vampires at that point, but yeah, heād live where Buck wouldnāt.
Ā
āYeah, but Eddieā¦ā Buck frowned, looking confused.
Ā
He leaned in to whisper. āAnd you can maybe use a littleā¦magic to stabilize it.ā
Ā
He saw the idea cross Buckās face when he nodded firmly and seemed to figure out what he could do and what spell to use. āYeah, I can do that, but Eddie. I would be fineā¦ā
Ā
āI know, but I can't magically hold the thing up and you can,ā he cut off Buck again. Now was not the time to argue. āHelp me check my gear.ā
Ā
The plan worked just a Buck said it would, and Eddie pulled Abbyās fiancĆ© out and they hurried him over to the ambulance where she was waiting right before the carriage crashed to the ground.
Ā
āThank you so much, Buck!ā She hugged him tightly.
Ā
There was a small flash of hurt Eddie caught in his boyfriendās eyes, but he just hugged her back and then turned her towards the ambulance. āJust doing my job,ā he said, stepping back for her to get into the ambulance and go with her fiancĆ© to the hospital.
Ā
Eddie walked up and took Buckās gloved hand in his. āHey, you did good.ā
Ā
āYou too,ā Buck gave him a weak smile. āYou knowā¦I still have all her plants at my apartment.ā
Ā
Eddie snorted and shook his head that of course Buck still had all her plants and was taking care of them. āIām pretty sure those are your plants now, youāre their new plant-daddy.ā
Ā
Buck wrinkled his nose. āNo absolutely not, donāt say that!ā
Ā
Eddie chuckled and turned to go back to work. āWhat? Plant-daddy?ā
Ā
āNo! Thatās my friend Neville. I normally kill plants. Like Iām very lucky theyāre all still alive,ā Buck huffed and picked up an ax.
Ā
āYou sure they arenāt plastic?ā
Ā
Buck paused for a second. āThey better not be. Iāve been watering them for years.ā
Ā
Eddie chuckled and knew theyād be ok. Buck had moved past Abby. Kingsley was still a problem, but he was one they couldnāt solve right this minute. Plus, Ron and Athena were on it, and he had complete faith in themā¦well, Athena anyway, he still didnāt know Ron that well. Actually, maybe he should invite Ron to play basketball sometime and get to know him. It sounded like he might be a brother-in-law now at some point.
Notes:
Up Next: Maddie has news...
Chapter 21: Maddie's News
Notes:
Hey all! I'm sorry I disappeared for a while. I've been traveling with work and just haven't had any free time at all. I only have about another week of travel, then I'll hopefully get back onto a more regular updating schedule.
(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)
Chapter Text
Eddie sleepily shuffled into his kitchen when he woke up to find his bed empty and missed the other body that should be there. Buck had been staying at his house almost every night, and they really did need to tell Chris they were together. It was getting a little ridiculous at this point. Apparently, they had been acting like a couple for so long though, that no one seemed to see a difference in their relationship now that they were actually together. So, itās not like they were keeping their relationship a secret, but no one had seemed to notice, and they hadnāt brought it up.
Ā
They had meant to tell Chris, but after Kingsleyās āpresentā he sent to Buck at the station and the drama with Abby showing up again, they had just kind of forgotten or were hesitant to have any deep discussions for a little while, needing some peace. So, here they were almost living together, and no one questioned it in the slightest.
Ā
Eddie chuckled at the picture of the man sitting at his kitchen table with his long hair a mess, drinking a cup of tea, and buttering a crumpet. āSo, youāre just not even pretending to be American anymore, are you?ā He asked with a chuckle while going to make himself some coffee.
Ā
Harry shrugged with a small smile. His hair immediately got shorter and shorter and started to turn blond until it was the short mess of blond curls on top of his head and green eyes were blue once more in the image of Buck Buckley. āYou know, I could legally tell the station Iām actually Harry Potter now and British, but I donāt know how to explain the whole changing appearance thing without magic involved.ā
Ā
āColored contacts, hair dyeā¦but I donāt know how to explain the scar into the birthmark,ā Eddie frowned as he thought it through. Itād be nice for Harry to be able to look like himself and stop hiding, but that seemed a little impossible with not also explaining magic.
Ā
āMaybe one day,ā Harry shrugged again, not seeming too concerned. āItās really just Hen and Chimney who needs to be looped in at this point since Bobby technically knows even if he doesnāt know. Like I could turn his desk into a pig to prove it to him tomorrow, but Athena is insisting on being stubborn about him taking her at her word or something. I get it though, I do.ā
Ā
āDoes it feel weird for your hair to grow back into your head?ā He asked something that heād been wondering for a while. It wasnāt really on topic, but he hadnāt had his coffee yet, and he really had been wondering that since he first saw Buck do it.
Ā
āNo, I canāt feel the hair or anything like that,ā Harry grabbed another crumpet to butter and put jam on for Eddie, just the way he liked it. āItās not really growing back into my head anyway, itās all magic. So, I feel my magic shifting, but not like actual physical changes.ā
Ā
Eddie nodded and gratefully took his crumpet. It made sense and didnāt sound quite as icky as hair growing backwards. āThanks babe,ā he kissed Buck with a smile.
Ā
āEh hem,ā a voice fake coughed from the doorway. They both looked up to see a perturbed-looking kid glaring at them.
Ā
āYes?ā Eddie smiled, since it seemed telling his son was finally taken out of their hands and this was probably the easiest way for it to come about anyway. He knew this whole conversation was going to go well, they just hadnāt had the opening or mental space to do it yet. Well, here goesā¦
Ā
āYou two better be together because Teddy isnāt going to believe this if you arenāt,ā Chis huffed. āI canāt keep defending you two not being idiots when you go and do stuff like share a room and kiss and all.ā
Ā
Eddie couldnāt help his bark of laughter because Chris definitely got all that sarcasm from Shannon (or at least he was going with that). āWeāre actually together now, mijo!ā He said between laughs.
Ā
Buck lightly gave him a shove and focused in on Chris as Eddie knew he should be doing if Chris wasn't so chill with everything as he was. āChris, love, your father and I are going to try to give a relationship a go. This isnāt going to change anything, even if we donāt work out, I promise. I will always be here for you, and Teddy will always be there for you too.ā
Ā
āWell, duh,ā Chris rolled his eyes and made his way over to the table to sit down and take a crumpet for himself. Eddie made a mental note to pick up some conchas for breakfast or have Abuela make some because his son was becoming too British all of a sudden.
Ā
āYou two have been together for a year and just too stubborn to admit it. Soā¦can I finally owl Teddy that our dads have come to their senses?ā
Ā
Now it was Buckās turn to laugh, and Eddie took his empty teacup to put coffee in it now that it was brewed. āYeah, superman, Iāll take any letters to the owl post later today,ā Buck shook his head and a ruffled Chrisās hair.
Ā
āWhen is Teddy moving here again?ā Chris asked the question that heād asked every week since Teddy had been there at Christmas.
Ā
Eddie glanced at the calendar even though he knew it was the beginning of March. āThree months,ā he answered for Buck since they both were counting down the days with Chris for when Hogwarts got out and Teddy got to come stay with them more permanently.
Ā
Teddyās grandmother hadnāt decided what she was going to do yet once her grandson moved. Buck had showed him the letter where she said she was going to travel with her sister some initially, but then she would decide if she wanted to stay in England and just visit them or move to California as well. Buck seemed to think she would end up staying in England and just portkey over frequently since she wasnāt a huge fan of the heat. Eddie, personally, didnāt understand why anyone would choose cold and rainy over sun and beaches, but he was from Texas, so he didnāt think his opinion was relevant.
Ā
āRemember that Carla is going to take you to your Aunt Pepaās tonight after school,ā Buck said, the casual and common comment hitting Eddie once again just how seamlessly and for how long Buck had been slotted into the role of a father for Chris even before they were together. āMy sister is having your dad and I over for dinner after our shift.ā
Ā
āFor adult talk,ā Chris grimaced.
Ā
Actually, Eddie had no idea why Maddie wanted them over, and Buck hadnāt known either. They were assuming it was just a dinner and maybe poker night since they had those occasionally, but she hadnāt been specific at all. She had specifically said just the two of them though and asked if they could get a babysitter, so Chris was probably right and there would be some kind of adult talk. Maybe she had figured out they were together? They should probably tell her at dinner regardless.
Ā
āUh, Buck,ā Eddie frowned since telling Maddie meant telling Chimney, and that opened a whole other can of worms because Chimney absolutely couldnāt keep a secret and would tell Hen. āMaybe we should go in a little early for our shift and see Bobby about some paperwork?ā
Ā
Buck grinned widely. āBobby already pulled it and filled it out for us. We just need to sign.ā
Ā
āOf course he did,ā Eddie rolled his eyes and snorted. āHow does our captain seem to know all about our relationships but still not catch that his own wife has magic, that you have magic, and that Iāmā¦well, not human?ā
Ā
āTeddy says that muggles explain things away in a way they will understand and fits into their reality even when they see magic,ā Chris said very sagely. Eddieās little man was growing up so fast!
Ā
āNo-maj, love,ā Buck corrected. āTeddy and I may be British, but youāll get laughed at in school if you donāt say no-maj here in the States.ā
Ā
Chris grinned around his bite of food. āIāll just tell them my brother is a lord, and they can all be jealous then.ā
Ā
Eddie choked on his coffee and coughed because was he supposed to know that?! Had he been told?! How? What in all Draculaās capes did that mean?
Ā
Buck just slapped him on the back with a chuckle. āDonāt worry, Eds. Teddy is just the next in line for the Black family lordship since Andromeda was disowned and didn't want back in the family, Draco is already the Malfoy lord and canāt have two lordships, and Narcissa really doesnāt want it. So, Teddy is heir and will eventually have to do some stuffy political shiā¦er, crap when he gets older in the magical world. His cousin Draco is handling things for us right now though while Iām away and Teddy is still doing his education.ā
Ā
āIām starting to develop an inferiority complex in this family,ā Eddie sighed because it seemed everyone was so much more magical than he was, even his own son. And then there was the fame and political power, and everything added on top of that.
Ā
However, there was then the fact he was immortal and no one else in the family was. It was a subject he was decidedly not going to deal with for another hundred years now that he knew magical people lived a lot longer though. He didnāt think heād ever be able to deal with his family growing old and leaving him at any point in time. Maybe all the danger he lived his life in would solve that issue for him at some point long down the line though, and that really shouldnāt be a comforting thought.
Ā
āRight, so school. I made your lunch, ham and cheese today,ā Buck stood to grab a lunchbox and the sandwich from the fridge. āIs your homework in your backpack already?ā
Ā
āYes, Buck,ā Chris rolled his eyes around his crumpet.
Ā
Eddie leaned back and smiled. How he had ever thought that Buck wasnāt a father was beyond him. He was suddenly grateful to have a partner who had already done the teenager years once before too because they were fast approaching. And then add magic to all thatā¦well, Eddie really did think heād lucked out on being partnered with the chaos monster of Buck Buckley (aka Harry Potter) when heād signed on with the 118.
Ā
Ā
Eddie stepped into the blood bank that was now on Ventura to top up his supply of blood. He needed so much less with Buck now supplying him with as must as he wanted, but he didnāt want to be solely reliant on his boyfriend, even when Buck explained blood replenishing potions and didnāt seem to mind in the slightest. It was justā¦well, Eddie still remembered how his and Shannonās relationship ended, and he needed some assurances for himself, if not Buck, that what they had was much more than just survival for him.
Ā
āWell, well, wellā¦long time no see,ā Raina tapped her scary long nails against the counter and smiled broadly at him. āYou look good, very healthy. I take it the club scene has been treating you well, Mr. Edmundo Diaz.ā
Ā
āActually, no,ā he couldnāt stop himself from smiling proudly when he leaned against the counter. āI have a new romantic partner. One who doesnāt mind losing a little blood now and then.ā
Ā
āOh?ā Rainaās perfect eyebrow shot up and she gave him an assessing look. Eddie really had no clue how old the woman was. Heād originally assumed she was a young vampire because of working at the blood bank and just her general personality, then sheād say things or give him one of those looks like seemed to read his entire family line back to the Aztecs. He had settled on a little over a hundred maybe because, surely not older than that, right? Now, she seemed to be looking at him with the wisdom of the ages, completely in opposite to her normal teasing flirting.
Ā
āSo, you are aware we're not against you telling a partner about vampirism,ā she said all business-like. Eddie was suddenly reminded that the receptionist position was much more than only a receptionist in the vampire organization. He wasnāt quite sure what it was, but it was clearly not just administrative. āA willing partner is actually much safer for us all, especially since if things go wrong, no one will believe them.ā
Ā
āBut?ā Eddie asked, knowing there was a 'but' coming just from her look.
Ā
āBut be careful, Eddie,ā she said seriously. āAnd keep the number for the Custodian handy in case there are any ...mistakes.ā
Ā
Eddie did not roll his eyes at her. He knew she was being very serious, but heād never use that number for anything, and Buck could handle himself and keep any mistakes from happening easily. āItās fine, Raina, I promise. Itāsā¦well, he actually already knew. Heās a wizard.ā
Ā
Eddie didnāt think Rainaās eyebrow could go any higher, but apparently, he was wrong. āThen you need to be even more careful Eddie. Do not cross MACUSA, or itāll be all our heads. If you had talked to me before, Iād have told you to leave the mages aloneā¦actually, I think I did tell you that before. What are you thinking?ā
Ā
He was not going to be cowed by this tiny vampire-woman even if she was older than his abuela and probably much more powerful than he was. He stood straighter and crossed his arms. āMy son is a wizard, so there is no keeping me away regardless. And itās not like I asked for any of this,ā he motioned to the blood bank itself to include vampirism and all involved.
Ā
Raina just stared at him for another minute before she looked down at her keyboard, typed something in, and the price for his blood popped up on the card reader. āTo be honest, Eddie. I didnāt think you were cut out for this life when you first stepped in here looking like a malnourished stray cat,ā she said with a smile that looked more vicious than anything positive. āI still donāt know that you have it in you, and that worries me, especially if you're messing with things so out of your league that you may as well be a baby playing in a sandbox. Weāre going to keep our eyes on you, Eddie Diaz. Don't slip up.ā
Ā
Eddie swiped his card and wondered if he should say something. He probably shouldnāt. Like it was a really bad idea. But alsoā¦Buck had done it for a reason, and that reason was probably this. Well, Eddie Diaz wasnāt exactly known for making the best decisions anyway, so what the hellā¦
Ā
āActually, itās Eddie Potter-Diaz now,ā he said with a smirk when her eyes took on a look mixed between surprise and fear. āMy son and I are officially members of House Potter now, so I may be a baby playing in a sandbox, but at least my sandbox is owned by the Man Who Conquered.ā
Ā
Raina sucked in a breath and slowly let it out. āDraculaās tits,ā she said, and Eddie felt so very justified now that vampires did actually swear by Dracula.
Ā
Eddie took the cooler of blood that a technician had placed on the counter and winked at the still shocked woman. āSee you soon, Raina.ā
Ā
He didnāt laugh as he walked out of the blood bank and put on his sunglasses to head to his truck. It was a near thing though. That woman had always put him off-kilter and made him nervous. It was so very cathartic to be the person to do it to her for once. Well, now heād need to tell Buck, but he was certain his partner was going to get as much of a kick out of this as he did.
Ā
Eddie jumped into his truck to head back home and change quickly for dinner at Maddieās house. They still didnāt know what this dinner was about, but they planned to break the news of their relationship to at least Maddie and whoever else was there that evening as well. At work that morning, Bobby had just slid the paperwork across his desk to them when theyād entered his office together, not even having to ask why they were there. Dracula, but that man really did need someone to just give him the smallest nudge possible to finally see that magic was real. Maybe he and Buck could work something out to help out that situation soon.
Ā
Anyway, now he needed to put his blood in the fridge, change, and head with Buck over to his sisterās place for whatever this was. He actually hoped it wasnāt poker since Chimney was already going to be smug about his and Buckās new relationship, adding winning all Eddieās money to that wouldnāt help out in the slightest. If Eddie didnāt know Chimney was no-maj, heād swear he and Maddie were using some kind of magic to cheat at cards.
Ā
Ā
āHey, so you two were invited as well,ā Buck looked at Ron and Josh who showed up to Maddieās apartment at the same time as he and Eddie did. āAny idea what this is all about?ā
Ā
āNone at all mate,ā Ron shrugged. āYou know our girl though, she likes to keep things mysterious for as long as possible. How long did she keep Rita Skeeter in a jar before telling us?ā
Ā
āExcuse me?!ā Josh cut in, and Eddie looked like would have too if Josh hadnāt gotten there first.
Ā
While Buck didnāt exactly approve of what Hermione had done with Rita Skeeter, the woman had ruined his life both before that and after as well, soā¦he also wasnāt going to feel bad for her. āBest not to question things from our childhood,ā he winced. āYou have to put the reasoning of a still forming prefrontal cortex up against war, and weāre still coming to terms with a lot of what we did from that time.ā
Ā
āSo, howās the new mind-healer?ā Ron grinned at him knowingly.
Ā
āYeah, yeah, so Iām not dealing with a lot I should be dealing with and taking on too much I shouldnāt as well as working through some actually well deserved paranoia,ā he rolled his eyes and shrugged. It had literally only been two appointments, one of which was just going over the secrecy contract heād had Darragh write up and casting the spell for the oath, but that whole process was apparently part of his mind-healer learning about him, and the man had hit the ground running on their first official session.
Ā
āWell, I hope this doesnāt take too long because I have a date later,ā Ron looked at his watch.
Ā
Harry had to stop right there in the stairwell they were walking up to block his progress. āWho is it? How did you meet? Where did you meet? Are they magical or muggle? Has Josh met them and approved? When can I meet them?ā He rattled off his questions excitedly.
Ā
Ron having a date was big news in their lives since the last person Harry knew about that his friend had dated besides Hermione was Lavender Brown in sixth year. Like, he assumed there were probably a few in England before Ron moved, but he hadnāt had specifics before. Andā¦and! Hints were that Ron might be a little more accepting to dating someone not of the female persuasion last theyād talked about it!
Ā
Ron rolled his eyes while both Eddie and Josh laughed at them. āThis is a first date, so Iām not telling you anything,ā he poked his bony finger in Harryās chest. āThe only thing you get is that we met at work, but I donāt even know their first name, just Auror Last Name right now.ā
Ā
āButā¦but that doesnāt even tell me gender identity!ā Harry pouted as dramatically as he possibly could.
Ā
āWell, Iām not the one with the questionable dating history,ā Ron rolled his eyes. āSo, let me at least get through a first date without the interrogation.ā
Ā
Harry just raised an eyebrow at that. āI call Lavender Brown questionable at the time. Plus, who knows what you got up to without mine and Hermioneās supervision. Do I need to call Ginny for the good gossip?ā
Ā
āLeave him be, Buck,ā Josh stepped in, the traitor taking Ronās side. āIf he doesnāt come home tonight for any reason, I promise Iāll give you a call.ā
Ā
āOi! Youāre supposed to be my friend not his,ā Harry protested even as Eddie shoved him up the stairs to keep this moving along.
Ā
āHe moved in with me, so proximity rules in the friendship order,ā Josh shrugged. āBesides, he hasnāt asked me to break into a hospital yet or explain to his co-workers why Iām family when I didnāt even know myself. My power of attorney excuse was so flimsy that even Chimney looked like he didnāt buy it since everyone knows that either Maddie or Eddie would have your power of attorney.ā
Ā
āOh, yeah, future reference, Eddie has that,ā he shrugged since heād signed all that paperwork that at the bank even before he got together with Eddie, as soon as he was no longer a fugitive.
Ā
āWait? Seriously? Donāt you think you should have told me that?ā Eddie stopped in his shoving to look actually surprised. Harry didnāt see that he had a leg to stand on there though.
Ā
āLike you should have told me I was in charge of taking care of Chris if anything happened to you before you changed your will, or that you were a vampire, or that Chrisās school thinks weāre married orā¦ā
Ā
āHey, that road goes both ways buckaroo,ā Eddie cut him off with a glare, and yeah, he was right about that too.
Ā
Had Harry told Eddie was immortal yet? He had right? Maybe he should ask later. No, he definitely hadnāt because then he'd have had to explain the Master of Death thing. Was their relationship a little too new for that whole bag of crazy?
Ā
āAre you going to ask them about any of that?ā Josh asked Ron with a jab of his thumb in their direction.Ā
Ā
āBest not to. I do want to get to my date this century,ā Ron rolled his eyes their direction and opened the door from the stairwell to Maddie and Chimneyās hallway.
Ā
They walked to the door to the apartment and Josh knocked, ever so polite since Harry would have just walked in even if that raised questions with Chimney. āHey, you all donāt think this is another intervention for me, do you? Like I donāt think Iāve done anything recently,ā Harry asked just as the door opened to Chimney giving them a look.
Ā
āAnother intervention?ā Chimney asked. āWhy wasnāt I invited to the last one? What was it about? I have comforting platitudes prepared for all situations.ā
Ā
āLet the dumbasses in!ā Maddie called out from inside the apartment.
Ā
āHey!ā Josh protested as he pushed past Chimney to get inside.
Ā
āJosh not included,ā Maddie happily amended.
Ā
āHey!ā Eddie decided to protest then. Harry and Ron definitely didnāt even try; they knew they were the dumbasses.
Ā
Maddie just looked him up and down. āIām still reserving judgment,ā she said to Eddie before smiling and giving him a small hug.
Ā
āWeāre missing some people,ā Buck frowned at where Athena was slicing apples for a fruit salad in the kitchen. He wasn't able to tell why this group in particular were gathered. āWhere is Hen, and Bobby?ā
Ā
āMy dumbass wasnāt invited,ā Athena said with a look at Buck and significant pause in slicing. Ohā¦so this was that kind of meetingā¦but why was Chimney there then?
Ā
āDid we forget Hen?ā Chimney went to pick up his phone, but Maddie stopped him.
Ā
āSorry, babe, but Hen wasnāt invited either,ā she gave him a small smile that Buck now saw as nervous. Where they about to tell Chimney about magic?!
Ā
Butā¦that wasnāt legal. Not until you were going to marry someone. Butā¦Maddie and Chimney werenāt engaged. Right?...Right?!
Ā
āDid someone propose?! Oh, my god, are you two getting married?!!ā Buck had to ask excitedly because he hadnāt really thought Hermione had wanted to get married again anytime soon, but he was super supportive of any weddings his family wanted to throw, if they wanted them that was. Hermione's first wedding had been a blast, so this one was certain to be brilliant!Ā
Ā
āWhat? No! Why would we?!ā Chimney looked at Maddie with fear and concern in his eyes. āWas I supposed toā¦?! But, what?!ā
Ā
āCalm, down, babe,ā Maddie chuckled and patted Chimney on the back and led him towards the couch. āSit down before you pass out.ā
Ā
Ron raised his hand. āAs the ex-husband, I donāt think it super proper for me to be here if this party is for a proposal. Like Iām all supportive and all, love you Chimā¦ā
Ā
āThanks man,ā Chimney gave Ron a weak smile.
Ā
āBut like, I think thatās some kind of faux pas, right?ā Ron finished, looking to Athena for etiquette adviceā¦as he should since the rest of them were not going to be able to help.
Ā
āIām not proposing,ā Maddie threw her hands in the air out of sheer frustration. āI was serious when I told you all, my boyfriend included, that I donāt want to get married again for a long time yet.ā
Ā
āIām confused,ā Eddie raised his hand. āIs this another intervention for Buck, because I would like to add that my favorite socks are missing, and I want them back.ā
Ā
āI didnāt take your socks, and my therapist said itās not a problem yet,ā Buck rolled his eyes. He wasnāt that bad, seriously. āThey probably got mixed in with Chrisās things last I did laundry.ā
Ā
āI thought this was game night?ā Chimney was looking more and more confused as the conversation when on.
Ā
āEveryone, sit!ā Athena ordered in her tone that absolutely no one ignored. They found places to sit immediately, well, Buck ended up on the floor leaning against Eddieās legs, but he was fine with that. āNow, Maddie invited us all here for a reason, why donāt we let her tell us what that is?ā
Ā
Maddie let out a deep breath. āSo, my brother only kind-of got right what this is about.ā
Ā
āAre we breaking the law?ā Ron leaned forward with a large grin on his face. āIām not against it, mind you, but as the person who really should be arresting you if we do, then I would like a slight heads-up.ā
Ā
āWe arenāt breaking the law,ā Maddie rolled her eyes at him.
Ā
āLet the woman talk,ā Athena said, now with a small smile on her face that had Buck thinking she knew what was going on, or had at least guessed.
Ā
āI had thought to only do this the two of us,ā Maddie turned and took Chimneyās hands in hers. āBut I didnāt want another Bobby situation on our hands, so I figured doing this all together was the safest, plus then you can ask questions of anyone you want all together now.ā
Ā
āNo one dumbasses like my dumbass,ā Athena chuckled and speared a grape in her salad with a fork.
Ā
āIām getting really worried, Maddie,ā Chimneyās eyes glanced over all of them. Frankly, Buck was getting worried too, there werenāt a whole lot of reasons to legally break the Statute of Secrecy, and marriage was the most common. The only other one was for situations like Chrisā¦and ohā¦
Ā
āIām pregnant,ā Maddie smiled the happiest little smile Buck had seen from her in a long time.
Ā
āMerlinās balls,ā Buck breathed out and looked over at Ron concernedly who seemed to not be breathing for a second. They had been trying for kids for so long, Ron had wanted kids so badly, and Harry wasnāt sure how he was going to take this now.
Ā
āCongratulations,ā Ron said in somewhat of a strangled tone, but with a look on his face that did say he was supportive.
Ā
āThanks, love,ā Hermione smiled at him, letting her American accent slip away.
Ā
āWaitā¦wait, wait!ā Chimneyās face seemed to finally be catching up with the words. āWeāre going to have a baby?! Like a baby, baby?!!ā
Ā
āThat is how it goes, dude,ā Eddie reached over to clap Chimney on the back with a wide smile. āCongrats man!ā
Ā
āWeāre going to have a baby!ā Chimneyās face broke out into a huge smile before he pulled Hermione into a hug and a kiss.
Ā
Harryās eyes tracked back to Ron who had grabbed onto Joshās arm and was holding on tightly while still smiling as if trying to pass off not being affected at all. Josh looked over at Harry questioningly who tried to convey with a look that his best friend might be a little bit of a mess for a while but would eventually be fine, but he wasnāt really sure how to do that nonverbally. It would eventually be fine, they would all be fine, but now came the hard part, because now they had to tell Chimneyā¦the man known for not being able to keep a secret if his life depended on it.
Ā
āAh hem,ā Athena loudly cleared her throat when it became clear Chimney no longer remembered they were all in the room.
Ā
āWhy are they here again?ā He pulled back to glare at them, Buck most of all, which he viewed as unfair since he wasnāt the one whoād said anything.
Ā
āWell,ā Maddie looked around at them, her eyes showing how nervous she was. āYouāve heard some of my brotherās story already, but not all of it. I couldnāt legally tell you my side of it all or why everything had happened until we were either engaged, or I was pregnant.ā
Ā
āUh, Mads,ā Chimneyās look went much more confused because Hermione was no longer using her American accent in the slightest. Chimney looked over at Ron, who he thought was the only other British person in the room.
Ā
āIām actually British too,ā Harry said, dropping the accent. āAll three of us are. The subterfuge really was because of my ex as I told you when we talked a while ago. Maddie justā¦well, Hermione really was too known to associate with me, so she changed her name, backstory, and accent as well.ā
Chimneyās frown deepened as he looked over everyone in the room. āAnd everyone knew except meā¦why? And why wasnāt it legal to tell me that? You know I donāt care,ā he looked at Hermione with concern. āI love you no matter where youāre from or what your name is. I knew Buck was in hiding, so why hide this from me.ā
Ā
āBecause my name is Hermione Granger,ā she said sitting up further. āAnd my ex-husband is Ronald Weasley, and my idiot brother is actually the one and only Sir Harry Potterā¦and those names mean something in our world.ā
Ā
Chimney blinked in confusion a few times. Eventually he looked over at Harry. āSir?ā
Ā
Harry just shrugged. āThe knighthood was a little ridiculous, and the Crown refuses to remove it, so whatever.ā
Ā
āThe Order of Merlin First Class was well deserved though,ā Josh unhelpfully added with a teasing smile.
Ā
āThe what of what?ā Chimney seemed to be unraveling some, and someone needed to put him out of his misery.
Ā
āI got this,ā Eddie cut in decidedly. āAs the newest to the group, I think I can explain this in an easier way than you all tried to do with me.ā
Ā
āBy all means,ā Hermione motioned him to continue since he really did make a point. They all seemed to skip things that they thought was common knowledge having lived in the magical world for decades now, so Eddie probably did have a handle on what Chimney would need to hear better than the rest of them.
Ā
Ā Chimney looked at him like a life preserver. āWhatās going on Eddie?ā
Ā
āMagic is real,ā Eddie said firmly. āThatās the most important thing you need to know. Magic is real and there are people who can use it, called mages. They live all around us in our society, but they keep what they can do secret. Itās actually illegal to tell people who canāt also use magic except for in very specific circumstances.ā
Ā
āLike marriage or having a baby,ā Hermione added with a small smile, and Chimney seemed to be catching on now.
Ā
āWhatā¦no, you mean like curses and potions and jinxes and all?ā Chimney did not look convinced in the slightest.
Ā
āRight, yes absolutely, cariƱo, you mind changing back to your real look?ā Eddie jabbed Harry with his knee.
Ā
āYeah, sure,ā Harry smiled at Chimney since that was probably a good way to prove magic existed. āDonāt freak out, ok, but I had to change how I looked when I moved here too. I was a little too recognizable to go under the radar for everyone I was hiding from.ā
Ā
Harry did regret wearing short-sleeves that evening because, while he normally kept his curse-scars turned so they werenāt as easy to see, all the other scars were going to become visible when his fake-tattoos went away. He relaxed slightly and slowly let the magic seep away from his hair, his eyes, his head, and his body inch by inch. Chimneyās eyes went wider and wider as Harry changed from Evan āBuckā Buckley into Harry James Potter right before his eyes.
Ā
āI can levitate a table or turn someoneās hair green if you need more proof,ā Ron offered, seeming actually recovered now and definitely in the mood to tease Chimney. āJust donāt be like Bobby who only believes Athena thinks she can do magic.ā
Ā
Chimneyās wide eyes snapped to Athena. āYou too?ā
Ā
Athena shook her head. āNo, baby, Iām whatās called a Hedge Witch. I have magic, but itās different than the others. I can only do some types of magic like potions, runes, and rituals.ā
Ā
Next Chimney turned to Josh. āI donāt have any magic,ā Josh told him quickly, actually not seeming as tense as when he would normally say it out loud. āI was born into a magical family, but I wasnāt granted the gift. Iām whatās called a squib and generally pretty discriminated against in the magical world.ā
Ā
āWhich is why I legally adopted him into my family for protection if he should ever need it,ā Harry cut in to finally explain that missing piece to Chimney.
Ā
āAnd you?ā Chimney looked at Eddie, seeming very overwhelmed with it all.Ā
Ā
Eddie winced a little. āLetās come back to me,ā he said, probably a good thing. āMy son is magical though, so I had to be looped in. Heās what they call a no-maj-born. Like Josh but in the reverse.ā
Ā
āOh, ok,ā Chimney still didnāt seem to understand, but he was at least attempting to go with it. āSo, what am I missing about you three again?ā He asked, looking in confusion at Hermione, Ron, and Harry.
Ā
āSo, theyāre famous in the magical world,ā Eddie continued. āBuck, Harry, actually fought in and ended a war.ā
Ā
āNo,ā Chimney firmly shook his head. So, heād been going along with everything so well, but that seemed to be the line for some reason. āBuck didnāt fight in a war.ā
Ā
āNo Howie, but Harry Potter did,ā Hermione put her hand on Chimneyās knee and caught his eyes with her own. āWe all did. We were children and our society was attacked. Harry was targeted and Ron and I were his best friends, so we all got pulled in against our will.ā
Ā
Chimney was already shaking his head firmly. āNo, youāre a lot older than Buck, and Buck would never fight anyone ever.ā
Ā
āIām actually the same age as Hermione and Ron,ā Harry said, firmly not going to say why they looked different ages. That would be too much for Chimney and probably for everyone else who didn't already know in the room too. āI just look young for my age and passed myself off as younger to keep Kingsley off my trail.ā
Ā
Chimney frowned and breathed in, closing his eyes before looking at Harry again. āLooking like thatā¦I mightā¦I might believe youā¦ā Harry glanced down at the scars on his body and knew the one on his forehead was where Chimneyās eyes were catching most because of how large and fatal it looked like it would have been.
Ā
āHowie,ā Hermione took his hand. āHarryās ex is basically our version of your president. Heās what we call the Minister for Magic. Itās why he has so much power to turn public opinion against Harry and why his reach is so far.ā
Ā
āWe trusted him,ā Harry shrugged, not liking this being turned back on him as it always was. āBut I have asylum here in America now though, so I just have to keep my head down and try to stay safe.ā
Ā
āSomeone poisoned the wine at the party,ā Athena added, looking murderous at the reminder. āHarryās embolism wasnāt connected to his leg injury at all. It was an assassination attempt.ā
Ā
Chimney frowned and nodded slowly while clearly trying to process this all. āSoā¦my girlfriend is Hermione Granger and she and her friends fought in a war and won. Sheās in hiding from a world leader who is a bastard that canāt take no for an answer. My bossās wife can probably turn me into a frog with a potion, and my girlfriendās ex-husband probably can too with only a wordā¦does that about sum it up.ā
Ā
āBasically,ā Josh smiled and chuckled.
Ā
āAnd weāre having a baby,ā Chimneyās frown softened again into a smile, rightly and finally circling back to the most important part of all of it.
Ā
āYeah, love, weāre going to have a baby,ā Hermione put her hand on Chimneyās cheek softly, their eyes meeting and saying a million words. Harry loved seeing just how in-tune and happy they were. It made him reach back and squeeze Eddieās foot just to remind him that he had that too.
Ā
There was silence for only a second before Chimney loudly groaned. āAnd Hen doesnāt know?! Oh god, does someone know a spell to keep me from telling anyone this because you all know how I am?! You can't just turn me loose out in the world with this knowledge!ā
Ā
āHey, just think of it this way,ā Ron smiled teasingly. āIf you do tell her, itās not like sheāll believe you. Clearly, Bobby wonāt.ā
Ā
āYou have some oddly specific aggression towards my husband,ā Athena raised an eyebrow at Ron. āCare to share why?ā
Ā
āWe all just want him to be able to come to these things,ā Josh answered for Ron with a smile.
Ā
āIsnāt there a spell to keep Chimney from telling though?ā Eddie asked, tugging at Harryās long hair while he seemed to be playing with it or braiding it or something, Harry couldnāt see what was going on behind him, and he didn't mind whatever Eddie wanted to do.
Ā
āYeah, but itās Chimney, donāt make me spell Chimney,ā Harry huffed even as Chimney looked like heād support that wholeheartedly.
Ā
āMaybe letās go a week and see how youāre doing then?ā Hermione suggested as a compromise, and Chimney let out a breath of relief.
Ā
āYeah, but keep that spell handy for me if I'm about to burst,ā he said firmly. āI suppose Iām at least able to tell everyone Iām having a kid though, right?ā
Ā
āYeah, babe, that you can tell,ā Hermione chuckled and kissed Chimney again.
Ā
āOh, and Buck and I are finally together. You can tell Hen that too if it helps,ā Eddie added in, getting an eyeroll from Harry but absolutely no shocked response at all from anyone else.
Ā
āYeah, not news dude,ā Ron stood and cracked his back. āJosh, you drove, you ready?ā
Ā
āWhat? Thatās news!ā Harry protested.
Ā
āYeah, no, you waited out literally all the bets on you guys, so no one even won money on it,ā Chimney rolled his eyes at them. āCongrats though.ā
Ā
āBobby told me when he got home,ā Athena stood and ruffled Harryās hair. āIām happy for you.ā
Ā
Harry huffed, but Hermione having a baby was really big news, so he kind of saw their points. But actually⦠āShould I mention Teddy now? He is coming to stay once school ends.ā
Ā
āDraculaās balls, we forgot Teddy in the story,ā Eddie huffed a laugh. Maybe Eddie wasn't the best at telling their life story either.Ā
Ā
āOh lord, Iām leaving,ā Athena looped her arm through Ronās as they walked towards the door. āSo, how would you convince my husband of magic?ā They chatted all the way out the door with Josh following after a quick hug with Hermione.
Ā
āNow, who is Teddy?ā Chimney asked again.
Ā
āMy son,ā Harry said, getting what could only be a frustrated sigh of resignation from Chimney.
Ā
āOh, and Iām a vampire,ā Eddie added on with another tug of Harryās hair, yep he was definitely braiding it or something. Whatever, Harry didnāt mind, it would have to look better than the nothing he always did to it.
Ā
āIām going to strangle you all!ā Chimney yelled out and slapped his hands to his ears to block anything else they might say.
Ā
Ā
āDonāt you have a date to get to?ā Josh asked when Ron followed him back up to their apartment instead of leaving like he thought the man would.
Ā
Ron flicked his wand and a terrier patronus rushed away from them. āNow anymore. Iāll reschedule later.ā
Ā
Josh frowned in concern and went to the kitchen to grab a couple beers. There was something he was missing from the meeting earlier, and he had a feeling it was very important. Ron was usually so very upbeat all the time and had been looking forward to this date, but it had looked like his smile was painted on most of the time at Maddieās house, and now his whole general demeanor just screamed that he was not ok.
Ā
He passed a beer off to Ron who had crashed onto the couch before he sat and joined him. āNow, do you want to talk about it, or do you want me to dig out some ice cream and we eat our feelings?ā
Ā
Ron let a mirthless breath of a chuckle escape his lips before he took a sip of the drink. āIām fine Josh, I promise. Itās justā¦I wanted a family of my own so badly. Hermione and I were trying for years, and we just couldnāt get pregnant. She always thought it was her, but now, it has to be me, right? That meansā¦Merlin, but I might not ever be able to have a kid of my own!ā
Ā
Josh kicked his feet up on the coffee table and leaned into Ronās side some to comfort him. āWell, you canāt actually know that for sure without going to a healer and getting checked over,ā he said slowly, hoping to find the words to help his friend through this. āAnd even if that is the case, then there are other ways to have a baby. If this thing with your coworker had worked out, youād have to find another way anyway since heās a guy. You can always adopt, or thereās maybe a potion or something that could help.ā
Ā
āYeah, I suppose so,ā Ron breathed out, and Josh felt the tension slowly fade from the arm beside him. āI justā¦I always took having kids and a family as a given. Now, itās not so certain anymore.ā
Ā
āYes, I definitely know all about that,ā Josh nodded, knowing exactly what Ron meant. It was something heād dealt with a long time himself being both a squib and gay. Things were complicated. Having a family was complicated. There wasnāt a whole lot he could say to make things better or easier.
Ā
āWe still have another season of Golden Girls to get through,ā he suggested.
Ā
It seems that was the right thing to say because Ron laughed and flicked his wand to summon the DVD set to start it up. Sometimes magic wasnāt so bad to have around. Useful even.
Ā
āSo, are you going to try again with your coworker maybe next weekend?ā Josh asked, wondering how serious Ron was about this since it had been so easy for him to cancel.
Ā
Ron shrugged and stood to put the DVD in the player. āProbably, Iāll ask if he wants to do next weekend or the weekend after next I see him at work.ā
Ā
Josh nodded and settled in more comfortably on the couch. āWant to go out for waffles at that place you like in the morning?ā
Ā
āHell yeah! I want to try the blueberry ones next time,ā Ron enthusiastically grinned, his distress finally gone from his expression. Good, maybe what Josh had said would help. Ron had a future, they both did, they just needed to find out what that looked like for both of them.
Ā
Except then the world broke and all plans were put on hold indefinitely while everything shut down, no one left their homes, and magical and no-maj alike tried to figure out what to do with a worldwide pandemic.
Notes:
Up next: The new normal...
Chapter 22: The Last to Know
Notes:
(See the end of the chapter for notes.)
Chapter Text
Quarantine sucked! Especially as an essential worker. It had surprised Harry that even though mages were immune to most muggle diseases, that was because their magic built up an immunity to them over time. A new disease though didnāt have that immunity yet, so mages were just as susceptible to COVID as the muggles were until their magic was able to catch up and build the immunity. This meant that magical people with any type of underlying condition were still at risk, such as a pregnancy or cerebral palsy. Thankfully, vampires were still immune to all types of infections, but that didnāt mean Eddie couldnāt carry the germs on his person back to his house.
Ā
Somehow this led to Eddie, Chimney, and Hen all living in Harryās not even one bedroom loft apartment since they were essential workers and didnāt want to spread the disease to their families and put them at risk. Eddieās Aunt Pepa moved into his house with Chris, and they all just prayed to Merlin or Dracula or whoever that Chris didnāt have any accidental magic incidents while she lived with him, or that would be a whole conversation. So far, so good though. They would handle any accidental magic slips if they absolutely had to.
Ā
Henās family were all good quarantining together, but she still had to stay away. Ron and Josh were already together in Joshās apartment, so they were just stuck there with Ron and Josh both still having to go to work but at least neither of them had any underlying conditions. But Maddieā¦well, Maddie was now on lockdown with Teddy taking care of her in her and Chimneyās apartment.
Ā
Teddy had still moved to LA as soon as Hogwarts ended since he was going to apprentice with a technomage who, maybe not surprisingly, figured out how to move most of his operations online. Andromeda clearly didnāt have WIFI in her very magical house, so Teddy moved in with Maddie to take care of his Aunt Hermione and use her WIFI to get started on his new studies. Andromeda stayed in England to quarantine with her sister and Draco, which Harry didnāt envy in the slightest.
Ā
Harry was just glad that Bobby and Athena were still in their own house because his place was much too small for all the people currently living in it. Two days into his new living arrangements and Harry had firmly decided that he was gifting his loft to Teddy as soon as all this was over with and either moving in with Eddie and Chris or asking if they wanted a bigger place.
Ā
He had bought his loft when heād first moved to LA and didnāt have any friends or family or really anyone in his life. Now, it was just not big enough for everyone who had crowded into his life and refused to leave. Sometimes it still hit Harry just how hard he had tried to not put down roots and not make friends, and here he was with a boyfriend, his boyfriendās son, Teddy, Ron, Hermione, Josh, all the 118, and even Cho and a random Sidhe who had upped his attempts to trick Harry into signing over to himself to the Sidhe realm, so that was clearly love or friendship or something.
Ā
Anyway, the loft was too small now, so it maybe wasnāt the most romantic, but Harry just rolled over in his bed one night, looked at Eddie and said, āIām moving in with you after this, right?ā
Ā
Eddie just snorted wryly, half asleep. āYou better. Your place is definitely too small for us, and Chris canāt get up the stairs easily.ā
Ā
āYou want a bigger house? I can kick in some funds, or like buy the whole thing and just not tell you how much it was,ā he offered next since Eddie was renting, and Harry was clearly going to cover half of the rent if he moved in, but he could also just buy them a bigger place.
Ā
Eddie woke up enough to kiss him and flop back down. āWeāll talk about this when the world isnāt broken. Go to sleep, and stop trying to throw money at me.ā
Ā
And that was the end of it for the moment at least. When everyone moved in, Eddie and Harry/Buck thankfully got the bed in in the loft and threatened to within an inch of their lives to not get up to any funny business by both Chimney and Hen while Chimney got the couch and Hen got the air mattress downstairs. It was a little more difficult to maintain magic as a secret with Harry having to revert to his base form at night when he could, but Hen very pointedly never went up the stairs saying she didnāt want to see whatever the āgross boysā were getting up to up thereā¦even though they better not be getting up to anything.
Ā
Maddie was a little over seven months pregnant now, so they all tried to keep in touch over Zoom as much as possible to check on her, Chimney most of all. A lot of nights after they all got off shift, they would find as separate of places as possible around the loft to Zoom call with their families, Hen with hers, and then a large group call with the Buckley clan as Harry thought of them sinceā¦well, none of them were actually Buckleys but all connected around Maddie since she was the pregnant one.
Ā
On this particular night well into summer, the group Zoom call had Buck and Eddie upstairs with Buckās laptop and sitting on their bed, Chimney downstairs on his own laptop, Maddie on her couch, and Ron and Josh in their living room. āSo just indigestion, no cramping or pain, right?ā Chimney was asking Maddie in concern. āAny new cravings or howās your blood pressure?ā
Ā
āIām perfectly fine and healthy and eating right and doing the exercises my healer recommended,ā Maddie chuckled and rolled her eyes at all of them. āTeddy is taking very good care of me.ā
Ā
āJust remember to check your blood pressure,ā Chimney said in his mother-hen voice that was clearly driving Maddie crazy, so it might be best they were quarantining separately.
Ā
āWhat about you two over at Casa Russo?ā Buck asked to change the subject and also genuinely wondering how the odd combination of an auror and squib who hadnāt known each other only months before were doing stuck in an apartment together indefinitely.
Ā
āHe hasnāt killed me yet,ā Ron grinned at Josh who just laughed. āJosh has been teaching me the muggle way to cook, and then I do the dishes with magic, so weāve worked out a nice system anyway. I even sent a recipe to Mum that she said was brilliant, so Josh will have me be a chef in no time.ā
Ā
āReally, weāre doing fine here,ā Josh backed him up. āWeāre actually working through Twin Pines now as our new series. Iāll have Ron caught up on all important media before weāre allowed outside again it seems.ā
Ā
āOh, and Joshās aunt has owled me like 5 new potions recipes for if either of us get sick,ā Ron added with a chuckle. āI think she likes me, or maybe sheās trying to poison me, I havenāt quite figured it out yet.ā
Ā
āAny of them any good?ā Eddie asked in interest. Buck knew he was really concerned about Chris catching this and him not being there to help. āIf a magical person actually did get sick that is? There has to be some kind of magical remedy, right?ā
Ā
Josh winced and Ron just leaned closer to the camera. āWell, sheās no Severus Snape, but donāt tell her I said that. One of the potions would probably turn a person blue, and Iām not so sure there would be an antidote. There isnāt a magical remedy yet, and just as much misinformation as the muggles are spreading, so donāt trust any potions you run across. Iāve arrested three people in the past couple weeks selling what was basically Pepper-Up and promising it would cure COVID.ā
Ā
āI told my aunt to not go trying out any experimental potions on herself, and I hope sheāll listen,ā Josh added. āWe can only hopeā¦ā
Ā
A form of a shoulder and large hoop earring showed up briefly in the corner of Chimneyās screen before disappearing again. They all shared a look. It seemed that Henās call with her family had ended, and it looked like sheād sat beside Chimney on the couch. So, no more magic talk.
Ā
āWell, Iām going to go get in the shower and get ready for work. I have a late shift today,ā Ron said before giving them all a little wave and leaving Joshās screen.
Ā
āRight, so heās gone, you can tell us the truth now,ā Maddie smiled at her friend. āDo you need me to find a new place for Ron to go? I can convince him to get his own place or trade Teddy for him if you need me to.ā
Ā
āWho am I being traded for?ā Harryās kidās voice yelled from off camera, making Harry smile at the sound. He wished he could hang out with Teddy now that he was so close, but his kid was still so far away with lockdown.
Ā
āDonāt you worry about it,ā Maddie waved off somewhere behind her dismissively.
Ā
Josh chuckled and rolled his eyes. āI promise weāre fineā¦ā He said right before a loud scream sounded from off camera in his apartment.
Ā
Everyone jumped and Buck saw Hen appear in Chimneyās screen for a second. Josh just rolled his eyes again though, this time in exasperation. āExcuse me for a second,ā he said before disappearing and leaving an empty couch.
Ā
āShould we be worried?ā Eddie asked the group. āThey werenāt attacked, were they?ā
Ā
āJosh didnāt seem worried,ā Buck said looking between his boyfriend and the group on his screen in concern.
Ā
A second later and Josh plopped down on his couch again. āRight, so where were we?ā He asked as if nothing had happened, and Buck finally figured out what had happened suddenly.
Ā
āSpider?ā He asked knowingly.
Ā
āSpider,ā Josh nodded with a smirk. āI saw it in the shower earlier, but he ate all my yogurt last night, so pay back is a bitch.ā
Ā
Maddie fell out laughing on her screen while Buck heard laughter from downstairs and on his screen too. āRon is never going to get over his fear of spiders, I guess,ā Buck just chuckled and shook his head.
Ā
āWellā¦Aragog didnāt help!ā Maddie said between barks of laughter.
Ā
āAragog?ā Eddie asked.
Ā
Buckās eyes cut to downstairs and Hen. āYou really donāt want to know,ā he said evasively, and yeah, Eddie probably didnāt. He still had a nightmare occasionally about the car not getting to them fast enough and Aragog and his children eating them in second year, and Harry didnāt any fears at all about spiders having lived with them in his cupboard growing up. Still, Aragog was terrifying.
Ā
āWaitā¦your ex-husband is afraid of spiders, and Josh had to go save his naked ass in the bathroom from one? This is the best thing Iāve heard in years!ā Chimney asked with the largest grin on his face as he leaned so far into the camera that Buck thought he could see nose hair.
Ā
A purple-haired teenager with a couple new piercings suddenly appeared on Maddieās screen. It seemed Teddy had been using his boredom to play with his metamorphmagus abilities to add new piercings, Buck was very proud of his skill and still hadnāt figured out how to do that himself. āWait⦠Uncle Chimney!ā Teddyās entire body leaned over Maddieās and showed him holding a cell phone in his hand from where he was clearly talking to someone else. āShould we be shipping Uncle Ron and Josh? I didnāt even know that was a possibility! This is perfect! Brilliant really!ā
Ā
āWhat?! No!ā Josh protested firmly.
Ā
āUncle Chimney?ā Buck heard from off-screen this time and downstairs.
Ā
āDad!ā Teddy asked excitedly. āWhat do you know about Uncle Ron and Josh? There has to be good gossip? Has Uncle Ron ever dated a bloke before or after Aunt Hermione? We can make this happen. Chris says heās in!ā
Ā
Harry let out a sigh because he knew exactly what had happened even as he heard a gasp from downstairs. āMaddieā¦put your Zoom view on gallery, not just who is currently talking.ā
Ā
āWhy? You know I donāt like the way it looks. I have to keep looking between you all then,ā Maddie added from beside Teddy.
Ā
āBecause weāre not the only ones on this call,ā he said with a raise of his eyebrow and feeling the cringe from Eddie beside him.
Ā
He saw Maddie reach forward and click the screen before she and Teddy both collectively winced at what they could clearly now see was Hen right in Chimneyās camera frame with him and staring dumbfounded at the screen. āOhā¦er, soā¦we can explainā¦ā Maddie trailed off, suddenly switching back to an American accent from a British one.
Ā
āErā¦Chris, I gotta go,ā Teddy told the person on the phone who was clearly Eddieās son. āOur dads are about to yell at meā¦no, weāre still on for Operation Rosh or Jon or whatever weāre going withā¦Iāll call you back later to plan.ā
Ā
Josh looked behind him before looking back at the screen. āRight, so the auror I live with is in the shower, but Iām going to sign off for plausible deniability since I have a feeling a law is about to be broken. And Teddyā¦no scheming about my love life! You and Chris stay out of it!ā
Ā
āYeah, yeah, whatever you say mate,ā Teddy said, fooling no one before Josh hit a button and disappeared from the call.
Ā
āRight, so before all hell breaks loose,ā Chimney glared at Hen beside him who shut her mouth and glared right back petulantly. āTeddy, I need you to confirm that the love of my life and mother of my child is in fact doing fine as she says. Youāre taking good care of her, right?ā
Ā
Teddy sat down his phone and moved around the couch to sit beside Hermione with a sigh. āUncle Chim, sheās a healer. If Aunt āMione says sheās doing fine, then sheās doing fine. But yeah, she really is by all Iāve seen. I even massaged her feet because Iām a good nephew that way.ā
Ā
āUh huhā¦what do you want?ā Harry crossed his arms and asked because Teddy was a wonderful son and nephew, but he was absolutely not going to massage someoneās feet unless he had an ulterior motive.
Ā
Teddy smiled broadly, and Harry knew he was right. āWellā¦I could really use an iPad for my studies, like one with the pencil for design and drawing.ā
Ā
āAnd you canāt buy it for yourself becauseā¦ā Harry asked with a raise of his eyebrow.
Ā
Teddy gave him a sheepish smile that had Harry very suspicious. āWellā¦Victoire didnāt have a smart phone to keep in touch with meā¦ā
Ā
Harry sighed loudly. āFine, but Iām not upping your allowance. Youāre already getting free room and board with your aunt.ā
Ā
āBrilliant! Thanks Dad!ā Teddy grinned happily. Harry was so happy he had such a good kid because he figured he was probably a pushover as a dad.
Ā
āWell, me and my feet feel very used,ā Maddie rolled her eyes and shoved Teddyās shoulder.
Ā
āOi! Iāll still rub your feet, preggers lady!ā Teddy protested with a laugh as he threw his arm around Maddieās shoulders.
Ā
āOk, so back to me now!ā Hen cut in, waving her hands at Chimneyās camera. āIāll walk up the stairs to your loft Buck and throttle you myself if you donāt start explaining. Whoās the purple haired kid?!ā
Ā
Buck rubbed the back of his neck wondering if they could get out of this without explaining magic. āAnd why the hell do you look like that?!ā Hen leaned in further and pointed at something on the screen.
Ā
āDamn,ā Harry breathed out when Eddie gave a pull to the long black hair he just now realized he hadnāt even thought about once during this call. Heād just gotten out of the shower when theyād made the call, and he hadnāt expected to see Hen again until morning since it was late when theyād gotten off their shift.
Ā
āHa! Not my fault!ā Teddy pointed at the screen and grinned. Yes, wellā¦living together in his tiny loft was absolutely not the most ideal situation for maintaining a secret it seemed.
Ā
Eddie leaned forward slightly. āTeddy, canāt you just use some political, lordy, mojo whatever and say we arenāt breaking the law?ā
Ā
Harry rolled his eyes even as Teddy laughed. āWell, we arenāt in England, mate, and it doesnāt really work that way anyway. I think youāre on your own here. Dad probably has a decent shot of not being prosecuted though since heāsā¦you knowā¦him.ā
Ā
āWhich means, that I think Teddy and me should go. Itās late and the pregnant people need sleep anyway,ā Maddie leaned towards her screen.
Ā
āTraitor!ā Chimney accused even as her screen when blank.
Ā
āRightā¦soā¦what now?ā Eddie asked them all.
Ā
Hen crossed her arms and raised an eyebrow. āWell, considering weāre all in the same apartment currently, how about we stop this ridiculousness and turn off the cameras and you two come downstairs to face the music.ā
Ā
With a wince, Harry hit the end button and looked at Eddie. āDo you feel like this is our funeral, because I kind of do? Frankly, Iām more scared of Hen than MACUSA any day.ā
Ā
āAt least Ron and Athena arenāt here?ā Eddie suggested with a shrug before standing with a sigh and giving Harry a shove out of the bed.
Ā
Harry drug his feet but did tromp down the stairs to his living room where Chimney and Hen were sitting together on the couch. āWe need tea for this,ā he said before turning heading to his kitchen area to start the kettle. Yeah, he was procrastinating, but he was British, and this definitely did call for tea.
Ā
āDoes everyone know whatever this is thatās going on besides me?ā Hen asked the group, clearly hurt more than anything else, and Harry hated that. Itās justā¦the Statute of Secrecy was very strict in general but didnāt seem to take into account quarantining with a muggle. In his opinion, it was a when not if they slipped. Ā
Ā
Chimney winced, clearly liking this whole situation even less than he did. āI wanted to tell you, Henā¦like really, really wanted to tell you, but Josh was right and weāre kind of breaking a law right now.ā
Ā
Hen didnāt look like she was buying it and just looked expectantly at Eddie who dragged a chair from the kitchen bar over to sit on by them. āThe kid said āour dadsā when he was talking to your son,ā she prompted. āThat teenager was clearly referring to our Buck as ādadā and I need an explanation for that!ā
Ā
āTeddy is technically an adult,ā Harry started, but got an exasperated look from Eddie that made him stop. āFine, yes, Iām Teddyās godfather, but since his parents died when he was only days old, Iāve been the only dad heās ever known.ā
Ā
āYou have a kidā¦since whenā¦?ā Hen started before shaking her head. āRight, since he was days oldā¦I got that. But that doesnāt make sense. You arenāt old enough. Where has he been all this time? Why didnāt we know about him? And why is your hair suddenly like that, and what happened to your birthmark?ā
Ā
āYou might want to go with one question at a time,ā Chimney patted her arm. āIf they answer everything at once youāll feel like your head is exploding, trust me on that. I had a headache for days.ā
Ā
āTeddy has been at boarding school the whole time youāve known me,ā Harry answered, slipping back into his British accent. āI share custody with his grandmother, so heās visited a few times since I started at the 118, but not enough that Iāve introduced him to everyoneā¦Remember how Iām in hiding from my ex-boyfriendā¦?ā
Ā
Henās eyes softened some at that with some more understanding. āAnd youāve known your friend Ron for a long time who is British, and Iām assuming you and your sister are too then, so faking an American accent was part of that being in hiding?ā Harry nodded, pouring the water into mugs with teabags for them all.
Ā
āAnd, as we all know, our friend Buck doesnāt do things by halves,ā Chimney began. āSo, it seems when he dates an abusive bastard, he doesnāt go for a regular one but the leader of a country with access to the press and his own military.ā
Ā
Harry winced, but Chimney wasnāt exactly wrong there. āWaitā¦what?!ā Hen coughed and looked at them all in disbelief.
Ā
āHeās tried to kill Buck a couple times now,ā Eddie jumped in. āBefore Buck left England and he sent someone to poison himā¦remember the embolism? It wasnāt an embolism.ā
āWhat the hell?ā Hen breathed out with wide eyes.
Ā
Harry grimaced and carried the mugs over for them. āTo be fairā¦it may not have been his intention to kill me back in England, that was more of my own supposition and extrapolation of my own injuries." Eddie and Chimney both glared at him, and Hen threw in a glare of her own surprisingly.
Ā
āWell, anyway,ā Harry rolled his eyes. āI look young for my age, so I knocked a few years off when I applied to be a firefighter. Iām actually Ron and Maddieās age; we were all in the same year at school.ā
Ā
Hen frowned and it took a second for Harry to catch his mistake. āHow are you the same age as your sister? Are you twins?ā
Ā
Harry winced and just went to grab his own tea. Maybe he should have pulled out the alcohol instead. āSo, first, Maddie is my sister, but we arenāt actually relatedā¦ā
Ā
āThey are as much siblings as they can be without blood,ā Eddie finished for him. āBut everyone knew that back in England, so they had to change their backstory when Maddie moved here to join him a couple years ago.ā
Ā
āOk, so Iām followingā¦but none of that explainsā¦ā she waved her hand up and down in front of Harry. āNot even a wig and makeup explains thisā¦ā
Ā
āRight, so let me tell you a bedtime story,ā Chimney smiled teasingly and kicked his feet up on the coffee table.
Ā
Hen snorted at him but got more comfortable on the couch with her tea. āIt better be good. I havenāt had a bedtime story told to me since I was Dennyās age.ā
Ā
āOh, it is,ā Eddie smirked, and Harry walked over to beside him, summoning the Elder Wand to his hand. With a flick, Eddieās kitchen chair was a floral sofa big enough for Harry to join him on. Harry sighed at the sight of it; the wand always did want to do floralā¦it had spent way too much time with Dumbledore. They were so going to have a talk later about acceptable upholstery patterns.
Ā
Hen gasped and looked ready to pass out. āWhatā¦?ā
Ā
āSo, this bedtime story,ā Chimney began again as if nothing had happened. āIt has magic in it, and war, and a bad guy out for world domination, and it even has a few plucky heroes who traveled to our continent just to annoy a poor firehouse full of innocent bystanders.ā
Ā
āI donāt think I want Chimney telling the story,ā Harry whined to Eddie.
Ā
āShush, itās his turn,ā Eddie just smirked back.
Ā
Ā
So, technically everyone Harry was close to at the 118 now knew about magic. Technically, because Athena and Bobby were still being stubborn. Bobby apparently still thought his wife was just āspiritual,ā and Athena wouldnāt let them levitate the firetruck to convince him of something she thought he should just believe on her word.
Ā
Once they were told, Ron and Athena werenāt even that perturbed that the group had filled in Hen. Frankly, they both had thought it was inevitable since she was staying in the same house with Buck and Eddie and didnāt plan to arrest them as long as Hen tell anyone else, and she decidedly though that no one would believe her anyway. Things were a little hectic with MACUSA and quarantine, so Ron didnāt think anyone would care, but they also didnāt want to push their luck, so they all decided to keep it quiet.
Ā
As it turned out, there was a wager going about how Hen would find out from the very start of quarantine that Buck and Eddie both were pissed they werenāt in on even though it was about them. Chim just thought it was hilarious and said he would have lost anyway. Apparently, Hermione won the money since Athena had bet on Hen catching Eddie being all vampire and drinking blood, Ron had bet on Chimney spilling the beans, and only Hermione thought it was going to be Harryās hair of all things that gave them away.
Ā
Everything was pretty much back to normal, well, as it could be in a worldwide pandemic. Things were looking better though with rumors of a vaccine soon and things maybe opening back up again. Besides a lot of questions from Hen at night after their shifts, work was the same, especially since none of the other firefighters knew anything about magic and Bobby still didnāt quite believe. However, all this led to everyone looking at him for answers when the probie ruined their shift with the one thing all probies were specifically told not to do!
Ā
āSo, how was your shift?ā Eddie asked Ravi when they were passing him leaving with the B shift when they took over.
Ā
āNot bad at all, it was actually a really quiet shift,ā Ravi smiled while everyone groaned, and Chimney acted like the probie had just set the place on fire.
Ā
āWhat did I do?ā Ravi asked in confusion and Chimney grabbed him and led him away to disabuse him of any notion of using that cursed word ever again.
Ā
Eddie snorted and rolled his eyes before looking over at Buck. āThatās ridiculous, curses donāt exiā¦ā he trailed off with a frown as his face fell as his own words hit him.
Ā
āWant to try that again, love?ā Buck crossed his arms and raised an eyebrow at the vampire who seemed to be about to say he didnāt believe in curses.
Ā
āBut surely, thatās just a silly superstition,ā Eddie shook his head stubbornly. āYou canāt curse a word.ā
Ā
Harry snorted and about pulled out his cellphone to rant to Hermione about the stupid thing his boyfriend just said. āRemind me to explain a taboo to you at some point,ā he said with a wince at all the bad associations that brought to mind. Merlin, but he didnāt want to think about that!
Ā
āSoā¦thereās a taboo on quiā¦uh, the āqā word?ā Eddie thankfully caught himself. Did saying it twice maybe negate it? No, itād probably just make it worse.
Ā
āI will smack you with Buckās clipboard,ā Chimney growled at Eddie when he joined them again, having sent off a scared looking probie to deal with later. Buck held onto his clipboard tighter, not trusting Chimney to be bluffing.
Ā
āRight, what do we do Buck?ā Chimney looked at him seriously. āDance around the firetruck chanting? Light some sage?ā
Ā
āWait, waitā¦so this is an actual thing?ā Hen asked, her eyebrows as high as they would go. āLike I knew it was a thing, but like an actual magical thing?!ā
Ā
Buck just shrugged at the three of them. āSo, curses and jinxes donāt actually work like that normally,ā he said with a sigh. He hadnāt believed it himself until the shift heād mistakenly said it. Now, he was firm believer. It went against all magical theory, but did hit on some mystical theory.
Ā
āHowever, even though curses donāt normally work that way, sometimes a strong belief in a thing can actually lend it power, and this is a very strong belief in all firehouses, hospitals, police stations, and many other places. That much belief in something, can actually bend the rules of magic to make it a thing,ā he explained the conclusion heād come to himself over the years.
Ā
āSo, what can we do?ā Hen asked the question Buck didnāt know the answer to. It turned out he didnāt need to know the answer anyway because the bell went off and they started their shift from hell.
Ā
It all started with the naked man duct taped to a billboard that caused a car crash, and Eddie running into Chrisās old teacher who flirted like her life depended on it. Eddie did all he could to escape while Buck, Chimney, and Hen just laughed at him and didnāt help in the slightest. Then there was the string of calls that kept them from ever getting lunch which went from a cat and husband both stuck in tree, Buck getting thrown up on by a furry, an octopus escaping a Japanese restaurant and falling on an unsuspecting woman in a bathroom, a man stuck under a chair in a theatre, a kid in a washing machine, clowns on helium, and so on and so forth.
Ā
It wasnāt until they were literally trapped in their own firetruck with powerlines all around them from a fallen utility pole before everyone had a moment to look at Buck again with a question in their eyes. āSeriously, dudeā¦sage? A counter-spell? You have to fix this,ā Chimney said emphatically. āIām hungry, and weāre going to be the laughing stocks of the entire fire department!ā
Ā
Bobby turned around in his seat with a question in his eyes now too about all of them looking at Buck. āBuck knows how to fix a curse? Why?ā Bobby asked.
Ā
āI already texted Maddie,ā Chimney ignored him and waving his phone around like a madman. āShe said this isnāt a thing and weāre all just being ridiculous. I texted Ron next, and he said to ask Maddie, so what is it, Buck?ā
Ā
āItās clearly a thing,ā Hen motioned to the powerlines all around them.
Ā
āIām texting Josh,ā Buck pulled out his phone. āHis aunt is into divination. Maybe sheāll know. I failed Divination miserably, and Maddie didnāt even take itā¦well, walked out of class in a huff at least, so I wouldnāt trust her word on this anywayā¦everything else, but not mystical stuff.ā
Ā
āIs Divination like telling the future?ā Eddie asked with wide eyes. āNow thatās a thing now too?!ā
Ā
āWhy are suddenly all my firefighters into witchcraft?ā Bobby glared. āAnd, Buck, are you saying you took a class in fortune telling somewhere? Really, you all must be reasonableā¦ā
Ā
āActually, Josh has a point,ā Buck waved his phone at all of them after it pinged with a text message from his friend. āThis isnāt a mage problem to solve, itās a hedge witch problem! Thatās why Maddie and I donāt know anything about it. This isnāt my type of magic, but it is Athenaās!ā
Ā
āWait what?ā Bobby startled. āWhatās my wife got to do with this?ā
Ā
āIām calling her,ā Buck ignored the stubborn man and called his wife because this day was spiraling concerningly fast.
Ā
āYou all still cursed?ā Athena answered the phone with a chuckle. āAnd finally someone things to call me.ā
Ā
āWaitā¦you didnāt do this to us, did you?ā Buck couldnāt help his suspicious tone there.
Ā
āBoy! Donāt make me arrest you for stealing whatever it is that you took from me last!ā Athena chided, and yeah, his accusation hadnāt been called for. Buck was suddenly uncomfortably reminded that he still had some of Athenaās sunglasses from the ward heād put around her police car.
Ā
āJust tell us what we need to do āThena!ā Hen spoke up, thankfully saving Buck from having to admit to the sunglasses theft.
Ā
āYou need some bells and bay leaves,ā Athena said in her no-nonsense manner. āIt wonāt solve the issue, but I heard from a little-birdy dispatcher that your firetruck is currently trapped under powerlines. This may keep it from getting worse at least,ā she ended with a chuckle.
Ā
āIām texting Teddy,ā Chimney already had his phone out. āHe can bring it to the firehouse and maybe even get started on waving them around or whatever while he waits on us to get there.ā
Ā
āAlright, so I might not believe in chancing fate, but this is a little too far,ā Bobby cut in with a concerned look at them all. āWe arenāt going to be ringing bells and waving bay leaves over the firetrucks.ā
Ā
āNo one dumbasses like my dumbass,ā Athena was clearly rolling her eyes on the other end of the line. āThree times counterclockwise,ā she said before hanging up on them.
Ā
āRight, Iām hungry and we donāt have time for this,ā Chimney said just as the 136ās firetruck showed up to save them (and take pictures of their misfortune). āBuck just show him to prove the point so we can move on. This has gone on long enough.ā
Ā
Buck motioned to the headset on his head and all the gear he was wearing. āIāll never get the tangles out of my hair if I change right now. Any other ideas?ā
Ā
āEddie thenā¦if you please,ā Chimney sighed as if heād been in the magical world his entire life and the fact that he was currently in a truck with a vampire and a wizard was absolutely old hand. Chimney really was very good and rolling with things.
Ā
Eddie gave a long-suffering sigh but looked at Bobby and opened his mouth wide. His fangs dropped down, and Eddie hissed as only a vampire could do, making Bobby and Hen both jump in fear. Oopsā¦had they forgotten to tell Hen about Eddie being a vampire? Oh well, that was taken care of now at least.
Ā
Ā
Hen patted Bobbyās arm soothingly while they sat in the apparatus bay and watched Buck ring the bells and wave bay leaves at the firetruck while Chimney āsupervisedā and critiqued his form. Eddie at least had left them to call out for Chinese food that they would hopefully get to eat. Hen was still trying to wrap her mind around the Eddie of it all.
Ā
āButā¦how?ā Bobby said for probably the twentieth time.
Ā
Hen only had so much sympathy to give the man though. āAthena said she told you, explained everything. You were kind of being a dumbass about it.ā Bobby looked up at her disbelievingly, but Hen glared right back. Bobby might be her captain, but Athena was her best friend besides Chimney. She knew where her loyalties were.Ā
Ā
āWe live in California Hen,ā Bobby stressed. āLiterally everyone is into some kind of New Age crap. How was I supposed to know that my wife was actually some kind of witch when she said she was into the exact same kind of things we see all the time from charlatans on the pier?!ā
Ā
āYou thought your wife was a charlatan?ā Hen had to ask next because Bobby was about to feel some wrath instead of sympathy.
Ā
āWell, no!ā He protested, shaking his head. āBut just because I think she believes something, doesnāt mean I have to!ā
āEven when sheās right?ā Hen motioned to Eddie who was returning from where heād made the take-out call outside. Bobby winced and Hen had to hold in her own. The boys were going to get an earful for leaving out that very important piece of information just as soon as they were all alone.
Ā
āWell, I didnāt know that at the time,ā he groaned and put his head in his hands. āSo, Eddie is a vampire, and Buck is a witch? Are you and Chimney anything?ā
Ā
āThank God, no! And as for Buck, I think he goes by wizard or mage,ā Hen shrugged, not exactly sure about the terminology even though theyād had a lot of talks at night in their shared apartment. Thankfully, things were looking better, pandemic-wise, and she thought sheād be able to go home soon. She was looking forward to no longer living with three men ever again! Well, and getting to see her wife and kid, but also not living with three men!
Ā
āAnd the teenager with the blue hair?ā Bobby looked up. Buckās kid had passed off the supplies theyād asked for as soon as they returned to the station, but apparently, he had to get to work or something and left promptly after with only a chuckle at the explanation of the problem they were facing.
Ā
Hen sighed tiredly at the question. āIf I explain Teddy, thatās going to open up a whole other box of crazy that I donāt think we should get into in a fire station where someone could hear who isnāt permitted to know. Plus, weāre probably going to get another call just any second now.ā
Ā
Bobby let out all the air in his lungs and nodded. āDoes Athena know about all this at least?ā
Ā
āYeah, she can fill you in tonight now that youāll finally believe what sheās telling you,ā Hen patted his arm again, back to sympathy since he seemed to be pulling his head out of his ass now.
Ā
āRight, so I need to throw together an apology dinner to rival every dinner Iāve ever made before,ā he stood, already pulling out his phone to Google recipes.
Ā
āOoo, Iāll text you my beef wellington recipe! I used that one to apologize for wrecking Maddieās car that time,ā Buck called, walking over to them now that he was presumably done.
Ā
Bobby narrowed his eyes at Buck and frowned again. āJust how much do I not know about you, kid?ā
Ā
Buck shrugged with a smile. āYou know exactly who I am, Bobby. Itās justā¦the little facts that are missing or fudged a bitā¦ā
Ā
āLike your entire past, backstory, appearance, age, and even name?ā Hen snorted, not even believing he was going to try that.
Ā
Bobby almost dropped his phone before putting a hand up to stop them from saying anything else. āStopā¦does Athena know about everything and can fill me later?ā
Ā
āErā¦yeahā¦ā Buck trailed off, sharing a bemused look with Hen.
Ā
āThen shut it. We have to make it through this shift from hell, then Iāll deal with whatever this is,ā Bobby huffed before turning on his heel and striding up the stairs. He made it two steps up before the bell went off again, getting a collective groan from the entire firehouse.
Ā
Ā
Bobby had believed in magic for a couple weeks before he felt ready and able to finally talk to someone about it besides his wife. He couldnāt believe how blind heād been all these years. Just the stunts that Buck pulled on shift alone and was successful at should have clued him in that magic was a real thing. Plus, Eddieā¦well, Eddie never really did eat unless someone made him, and he really shouldnāt have survived the well collapse. And none of this was even taking into account his own wife making potions in their kitchen and carving protection runes into his turnouts.
Ā
The most shocking of all was Buck thoughā¦or rather Harry. The person his stepson had been named after surprisingly enough before any of them had even met the man. So, Bobby held him back after a shift, just to talk and finally clear the air some.
Ā
Buck sat across from him in his office and smiled slightly. āErā¦soā¦mind if I donāt fake the American accent for a bit?ā
Ā
Bobby waved his hand in acceptance. Heād tell the kid he could change his appearance except his office was glass. He still hadnāt seen what Buck really looked like yet, but Athena had assured him that it was only surface changes and Buck was still Buck under it all.
Ā
Bobby sighed and ran a hand over his face. āSo, youāre a fatherā¦and a war heroā¦and apparently a celebrity.ā
Ā
Buck shrugged and blushed as if it were nothing. Everything about the action was every bit of what Bobby knew was his Buck. He relaxed slightly, seeing the truth under all the lies and half-truths. Buck had said that he did know him, and Bobby wasnāt quite so sure about that, but he did understand that he knew Buckās heart, and that was what was most important.
Ā
āAnd you were a fugitive when I hired you?ā He asked next because that was what both shocked him the most and frankly made him accept the rest since it offered an explanation for it all.
Ā
āSoā¦technically,ā Buck winced. āI have asylum in this country now though, and even Canada has said I can have asylum there now if I want itā¦I think theyāre actually trying to get me to move, but I like it here.ā
Ā
Bobby forcefully decided not to think about that. He just nodded and asked the question heād called this meeting specifically to ask. āDoes this change anything nowā¦me knowing? Does it change anything with you and me or here at work?ā
Ā
Buck frowned at him before quacking shaking his head. āNo, Bobby. Weāre still us, you just know more now. Iām still Buck Buckley here at work, but maybe I can let my hair down so to speak when weāre alone. We can be more honest.ā
Ā
Bobby felt the tension leaving his shoulders. He didnāt know what this meant to their relationship. Even just learning that Buck was older was a shock in itself, let alone everything else. āWhy do you look so young anyway?ā He asked.
Ā
Buck smiled broadly for some reason. āYou knowā¦youāre the only one whoās actually asked me that. I get Eddie, heās faking being older instead of younger, but Iām surprised Chim and Hen didnāt ask. Itās not like Iām hiding it, but no one has questioned the way I look, and itās a little out there to just bring up with no warning.ā
Ā
āWell?ā Bobby chuckled.
Ā
āThereās a childrenās story in the magical world call the Tale of the Three Brothersā¦would you like to hear it?ā Buck leaned forward and put his elbows on Bobbyās desk to ask him.
Ā
āIād love to hear it,ā he smiled, and settled in for whatever this new truth was.
Ā
Ā
Eddie was washing the firetruck when the man walked up to the station. He paused in surprise at the exceptionally nice suit and very GQ type look to the tall, black man who sauntered up to him. The man was wearing a dark mask, but even with the little of his face Eddie could see, he had bright eyes, pulled off a bald head really well, and a was wearing a complicated earring that made his appearance a little more noticeable and interesting from the rest of the suit and tie look.
Ā
āHello, can I help you?ā Eddie put his own mask on quickly. The world had opened up again, but everyone was still advised to wear masks when at all possible, and it was department policy still too.
Ā
āAre you Edmundo Diaz?ā The man asked, his bright eyes twinkling a little like he was smiling behind the mask. Eddie felt himself suddenly put at ease even as he was surprised his man was looking for him of all people.
Ā
He put down the water hose in his hand to face the man more. āI am. Can I help you with something?ā
Ā
āIām hoping to help you, actually,ā he said. āI work with the VA, and weāre checking in on veterans in the area after the pandemic to make sure your needs are being met and that you know about our new mental health programs.ā
Ā
āOh,ā Eddie was shocked to hear that since the VA was notoriously over-worked and under-staffed to be able to send someone out to check on people. Plus, it was shocking that someone who worked at the VA would dress as nicely as this guy. āUm, yeah, Iām fine. Thank you though. My boyfriend has a new therapist who has this practice with other therapists. Anyway, I have an appointment with one of the other therapists soon at the same practice. Itās all covered by my insurance here though, so no need to go through the VA.ā
Ā
āReally,ā the man stepped forward some. āWould you be willing to talk about your time after the Army and settling in to a new civilian life? It would really help me and the VA in how we help other veterans. Iād buy your lunch as a small thank you for your time?ā
Ā
While the man seemed very nice and everything about him said he was kind and trying to be helpful, alsoā¦something just didnāt rub Eddie right about it all. Butā¦but, if it was all legit, he would like to help other veterans. Maybe if they met somewhere in public just for lunch. Even if this guy was running some kind of scam, it was just a lunch. Something about Eddie was telling him he wouldnāt normally agree to this, but he found himself saying yes anyway. He wasnāt sure why, but it seemed rightā¦even as it seemed wrongā¦
Ā
āSorryā¦what was your name again?ā Eddie asked when the man shook his hand after agreeing to lunch after his shift.
Ā
āJames Black,ā the man smiled and turned to leave. āIāll see you in a few hours, Eddie Diaz.ā
Notes:
Up Next: A very important lunch...
Chapter 23: The End of Something
Notes:
Finale to be posted tomorrow!
Chapter Text
Buck didnāt like when he and Eddie were scheduled on different shifts, but Eddie was covering a shift for Parker on B-Shift since he'd gotten the flu (thankfully not COVID), so Buck was off work and with nothing to do besides spoil their kids for the day. Admittedly, the zoo was a little more geared towards Chrisās age group than Teddyās, but Teddy had never been to a zoo before and had only studied magical creatures in school so he had little to no experience with normal exotic animals. Thankfully, it turned out that Teddy was just as excited to see an elephant in real life as Chris was even though he was supposedly a teenager and too cool for kiddie activities. Also, thankfully, Teddy and Chris were still so excited to have each other in their lives now, that they still got along amazingly even with the age difference.
Ā
It probably helped that after being stuck inside for so long during the pandemic, Buck had a feeling that he could have taken them to a knitting expedition and theyād be excited for it though just to be outside. Plus, the two trouble makers had their new bonding activityā¦matchmakingā¦
Ā
āYou do realize you two didnāt set up me and Eddie, right? No matter how you are attempting to spin that story to yourselves,ā He reminded them as they left the zoo hyped up on sugar and a little sunburned. āWe did that all on our own, thank you very much.ā
Ā
āYou just keep telling yourself that, Dad,ā Teddy smirked at him.
Ā
āYeah,ā Chris said in his ear since Buck was currently giving him a piggyback ride to the Jeep. āListen to Teddy. Heās been dating Vicky longer than you and Dad have been. He's the expert in relationships in this family.ā And wasn't that the sad truth!!Ā
Ā
āSomeone needs a healthy relationship in his family besides just me,ā Teddy chuckled. Buck rolled his eyes because it seemed he was destined to be in a family with the Weasleys by marriage one way or another. Heād figured the teenage romance would fizzle out at some point, but over a year later, and Teddy and Billās daughter were still going strong. Oh well, he'd been resigned to being a part of the Weasley family for better or worse since he was twelve and was rescued from his bedroom via a flying car.Ā
Ā
āAnd when is Victoire coming to visit?ā Buck asked because his location still wasnāt common knowledge, but heād never be concerned about the Weasleys knowing where he was, especially since Ron lived there now. He was absolutely certain Mrs. Weasley was knitting a kid jumper and a vampire jumper for the Diaz boys for this next Christmas already.Ā
Ā
āYouāre changing the subject,ā Teddy glared, walking backwards in front of them, his blond hair exactly matching Chrisās and Buckās fake hair color too, making them all look much more related than they actually were. āIām all for people being single if they want to be, but you have to admit that Uncle Ron doesnāt do that well being alone. He moved in with Josh the second he came to LA instead of getting his own place, which he most definitely can afford. He needs someone, and he actually does seem to know that thankfully.ā
Ā
āWhile that may be the case,ā Buck couldnāt disagree there at all. āOne, we donāt know that Ron has ever dated a bloke before or even wants tooā¦even if heās let slip that he might not be as straight as we all assumed. And two, Josh doesnāt want to date a magical person. Like that was literally why he broke up with me.ā
Ā
āHe could just not like you,ā Chris said teasingly.
Ā
āOoo, burn!ā Teddy reached up and fist-bumped the kid even as Buck rolled his eyes at them.
Ā
āPlus, people change and circumstances change,ā Teddy added more seriously. āLike being stuck inside an apartment with a wizard during a worldwide pandemic. Exposure therapy and all.ā
Ā
āWhatās expoā¦ā Chris frowned.
Ā
āExposure therapy,ā Teddy answered him patiently just as he always did. āIt means that the longer you spend around something that youāre afraid of or that bothers you, the less youāll be afraid of it and tolerate it more.ā
Ā
āOhā¦yeah, that,ā Chris poked Buck inside the ear, getting a grimace from him.
Ā
āOi! Iāll put you down and make you walk,ā he threatened, knowing he wouldnāt do that at all. āRegardless, I donāt know what you two think you can accomplish in matchmaking those two. They already live together. If theyāre going to get together, they will, and if not, thereās nothing you can do about it.ā
Ā
āCan we get pizza?ā Teddy asked, clearly ignoring his protests while he opened the driverās door to the Jeep that now didnāt need a key for any of its functioning and ran solely on wards and sparks of magic ever since the kid had too much time on his hands and a new apprenticeship in techno-magic.
Ā
āSure, right after we make a stop first, but you arenāt driving,ā Buck said sternly, putting Chris down on the ground. āYou donāt have your license yet, and Eddie would kill me.ā
Ā
āEh, Iām not concerned, youāre immortal,ā Teddy shrugged with a smirk, but did move around to the passenger side.
Ā
āBuck,ā Chris tugged on his arm instead of climbing into the backseat. āYouāre immortal? Like you canāt die?ā
Ā
Buck just smiled and leaned down. āYeah, kiddo. Iām immortal just like your dad, so no getting rid of me that easily.ā
Ā
āMaybe a little more indestructible than even your dad though,ā Teddy added on while fishing his sunglasses out of the glove-box.
Ā
āBut not all wizards are immortal?ā Chris frowned, looking between himself and Teddy.
Ā
āNo,ā Buck shook his head and helped Chris climb into the Jeep. āIām kind of a special case.ā
Ā
āCool,ā the kid grinned, always the best of them all with rolling with whatever new insanity came their way. āThen I always get to keep you.ā
Ā
Buck couldnāt help the catch in his throat and the reminder of all the father-figures heād lost over the years, of what Teddy had lost tooā¦of Chris losing Shannon. āYeah, buddy,ā he ruffled Chrisās hair and cleared his throat. āYouāll always get to keep me if I have anything to say about it.ā
Ā
āSo, where are we stopping before pizza?ā Teddy asked when Buck got into the Jeep and started the engine with a spark of his magic.
Ā
āI need to stop by the bank,ā he said in resignation at finally getting around to handling this. āSince I have you both here, there are a few things I need Teddy to sign now that youāre a legal adult, and the Sidhe want to get Chrisās magical signature on file for his accounts.ā
Ā
āCool! Magical bank!ā Chris breathed out like this was even more exciting than the zooā¦which, maybe? Buck personally thought the Sidhe realm was a little more exciting than even Gringotts...with actual added danger...though with how much the goblins currently hated him, it may actually be the same level of danger; the Sidhe just really liked him is where the danger lay.Ā
Ā
Teddy grumbled a little but shrugged. āFine, Draco said he sent some paperwork to the bank from the last Wizengamot session that he wants me to look over. I was putting it off as long as possible.ā
Ā
Buck frowned because Draco was supposed to be handling everything for Teddy right now. āMalfoy isnāt making you take on more responsibilities than before you graduated now, is he? Youāre still continuing your education.ā
Ā
āNo, no, calm down your righteous anger,ā Teddy firmly shook his head and chuckled. āNo, Draco just sends along the minutes so I know whatās coming up on the docket and how heās voting for me so that I can tell him if I want him to do something in particular or care about an issue differently than he does.ā
Ā
āOh, good,ā Buck nodded firmly, glad to hear the situation was still working for them all since he wouldnāt know how to change their system from a continent away when he was still a wanted fugitive in England.
Ā
He and Malfoy still werenāt the best of friends, but they were friendly at leastā¦or well, tolerated each other while still wishing the other would end up in the most embarrassing situation possible. But still, Malfoy had grown up to be a decent person and good cousin to Teddy, so Buck knew he really should be more generous in his esteem. But also, Malfoy had been one of the many people Blaise had cheated on him withā¦then again Malfoy had cursed Blaise with some kind of very painful rash when he learned they were both being playedā¦so maybe that all washed out in the end too. Whateverā¦not something he had to deal with in that current moment.
Ā
āAnyway, you two will be safe since you are under my authority and care,ā Buck told them seriously. āHowever, just to be absolutely safe, do not eat or drink anything given to you at the bank, donāt sign anything I havenāt read over first, and absolutely do not wander off with any Sidhe, even Darragh, and even if you need to go to the loo or something.ā
Ā
āAreā¦uhā¦She?...scary?ā Chris asked, now with concern in his voice.
Ā
āNot in the slightest,ā Teddy assured him even though Buck didnāt think that was exactly right. The Sidhe could definitely be very scary if they wanted, but they also really loved children and did respect a parentās custody...when the parent was a customer of theirs at least...
Ā
āDarragh is pretty cool too,ā Teddy added, and Buck could agree with that. āThough, Iām not sure why you donāt bank with the vampires like Uncle Ron does, especially since youāre dating Eddie now.ā
Ā
āEddie doesnāt even bank with the vampires,ā Buck responded before he wondered if Eddie even knew about the vampire banking system. Surely one of the vampires at the blood bank would have told him thoughā¦right?
Ā
āWhatever, theyāre always a little too interested in me whenever I deal with them, like they want something from me or want me to do something for them.ā
Ā
Buck pulled the Jeep into the bankās parking lot and cut the engine. He let the changes to his appearance go since he was about to walk into the bank and would need to look like Harry Potter. āYou ready?ā He asked them both.
Ā
āI feel a littleā¦disappointed,ā Chris frowned at the very boring and bland building in front of them.
Ā
āOh, just you wait, little bro,ā Teddy laughed before jumping out of the Jeep and walking around to help Chris out.
Ā
It didnāt take long before they got the expected gasps of surprise and wonder from Chris when they crossed into the Sidhe realm and the lush gardens and waterfalls that made up the bank offices. āWelcome, young mages!ā Darragh beamed at them both, his razor-sharp teeth glinting in the light of a sun that seemed to come from all angles instead of a central location.
Ā
āHey mate,ā Teddy did some kind of complicated handshake with the banker that the two of them had come up with years ago and that Harry really needed to look into that it didnāt constitute signing a personās life away if Teddy was ever not under his parental authority anymore. Sidhe sometimes interpreted things in a twisty way to get what they wanted, even if they really didnāt view it as malicious in the slightestā¦they really did think it best for the humans to adopt them into their realmā¦and they maybe werenāt completely wrong, but Harry sure as hell wasnāt going to lose Teddy to them.
Ā
āYou must be young Christopher Diaz,ā Darragh knelt slightly to shake Chrisās hand who looked a little shyer than usual as he tentatively gave the green hand a shake.
Ā
āHelloā¦sirā¦ā Chris clutched his crutches and leaned back into Harry more when his hand was released.
Ā
Darragh laughed brightly. āYou may call me Darragh. We have no honorifics in the Sidhe world,ā he said, which never did explain why Darragh insisted on using honorifics with Harry and Teddy all the bloody time.
Ā
āSir Harry, if you will follow me,ā Darragh turned and led them to his desk by the waterfall. It now had a large toadstool to sit on that looked actually very comfortable. Darragh seemed to be doing well at the bank since his desk area was nicer every time Harry visited. Without any ado, Teddy plopped onto the toadstool and smiled at them all.
Ā
āTea? Juice?ā Darragh offered with a smile.
Ā
āSeriously?ā Harry just glared and sat in the chair beside Chris. āTeddy said Lord Malfoy sent some papers for him to look over?ā
Ā
āAh, yes,ā Darragh pulled a file out of a desk drawer and handed it to Teddy who immediately began to flip through it. āNow, I assume weāre handling Mr. Diazās magical signature and Lord Blackās entrance into his majority today? We need the elder Mr. Diaz for a blood test as well since he doesnāt have a magical signature to enter into our files.ā
Ā
āHeās at work today, but Iāll bring him by sometime soon,ā Harry said dismissively while he looked through the paperwork Darragh passed to him for both Chris and Teddy.
Ā
āUhā¦Mr⦠or uh, Darragh?ā Chris asked tentatively. āWhy do you keep trying to get people to stay here with you?ā
Ā
Darragh leaned back in his desk chair and smiled broadly. āWell, why wouldnāt we?ā He chuckled and motioned to the lush gardens around them. āOur realm is powered by magic, and the more magical beings who live here, then the stronger the Sidhe and our realm isā¦and why would anyone not want to live here?ā
Ā
Harry looked up at the man with a raise of his eyebrow. āThere is the little caveat of the whole not being able to leave ever again bit though that seems extremely important to mention.ā
Ā
Darragh shrugged and only gave them an unrepentant smirk. āBut why would anyone want to leave?ā
Ā
Harry rolled his eyes and passed the paperwork to Teddy since Darragh had followed bank procedure and not added anything questionable into it. He trusted Darragh, he really did, but he was a firm believer in trust but verify for everything, and that actually seemed to gain him more trust himself with the Sidhe surprisingly.
Ā
He was halfway through the documents for Chrisās accounts that he was going to make copies of to give to Eddie when a Sidhe woman walked over and leaned down to whisper something to Darragh. The man frowned before nodding and giving a little dismissive wave of his hand sending her off. Darragh frowned sharply at them, and Harry was suddenly concerned. Heād never seen the Sidhe ruffled in the slightest. Whatever this was had to be bad.
Ā
āIs everything ok, Darragh?ā He asked, his eyes tracking every little expression of concern crossing the manās face.
Ā
Darragh leaned forward and put his elbows on his desk, pinning Harry with his amber/orange eyes. āWe arenāt exactly sure, but my guess is...no,ā he said slowly. āBased on our interests in your accounts, weāve been keeping a close eye on the happenings in the British magical world. With you human's pandemic, we may have been lulled into a false sense of security.ā
Ā
āOh?ā Harry hadnāt initially thought this situation had anything to do with him, but now he was exceptionally concerned, even Teddy sat up and put down the folder heād been looking over.
Ā
āIt seems that with normal business operations being moved to peopleās homes and no way for face-to-face communication besides the floo network, no one realized that Madam Parkinson has been handling all of Minister Shackleboltās correspondence and duties for the past week if not longer,ā Darragh explained, and Harry felt his stomach sink dramatically. āThis morning the head of the DMLE, a Mr. Robards, stopped by the ministerās home, and it seems he is not there and hasnāt been for a time. Our sources say he has not legally accessed a portkey, and weāve checked into muggle transportation, but we canāt be sure if heās used a fake name to travel by air or obtained an illegal portkey.ā
Ā
Merlin, but the Sidhe must have excellent sources! Harry suddenly wished heād known this back when heād been an auror. Now thoughā¦now this was extremely concerning. āSoā¦he could be here in LA?ā It was his worst fear coming to life once again. "No...he's definitely in LA."
Ā
Harry immediately reached out to put a hand on Chrisās shoulder. At least Chris and Teddy were here with him and safe. He had a lot of family out there not safe though. It all came back to the Hedwig plushy he'd been sent in the mail. It was a promise. It was a promise that Harry wasnāt the one Kingsley would come after, not first at least. He wanted Harry to suffer and watch those who protected him hurt first.Ā
Ā
He was still reasonably certain Kingsley wouldnāt go after a child, and he figured Hermione was probably safe because of being nine months pregnant and due any day now herself. But there was Ron and Athena and Hen and Chim and Bobbyā¦and Harry suddenly knew exactly who Kingsley was going after. Heād found Harry through the school registry since they'd listed him as being married to Eddie. If Kingsley couldnāt have him, then no one could. It fit every little thing Harry knew about his ex.Ā
Ā
āI need to check on Eddie,ā he said abruptly, pulling out his cellphone.
Ā
āThat will not work in our realm,ā Darragh said because, of course.
Ā
āCan we apparate out of here?ā he asked next then, looking at Teddy who looked spooked and Chris who just looked very confused at what was happening since they had very purposefully not filled him in on any of this. Chris didn't need this fear in his life, and Buck really wished he could spare him it even now.Ā
Ā
Darragh nodded. āI will come with you. I admit, Iām concerned you are correct in your suppositions. The children can stay here with my people if you like. I assure you they will be safe and returned to you. You have my promise as a Sidhe.ā
Ā
Harry looked at Teddy questioningly. A Sidhe promise was just as binding as a wizardās oath. āTedsā¦can you keep an eye on Chris for me and Eddie, please? Do you want to stay here or go to the loft? I think youāll be safe in either location, but hereā¦well, you arenāt really even on earth anymore. I think here is most secure.ā
Ā
āWeāll stay here,ā Teddy said firmly, reaching out and grabbing onto Chrisās hand to comfort both of them. āYou go check on Eddie and come right back, ok?ā
Ā
Harry was never so grateful that his son had been raised completely different than he was himself. Young Harry would never have allowed himself to be left behind and trust an adult to handle the situation. Teddy thoughā¦Teddy trusted him and knew he was being trusted in turn to take care of Chris. Harry had never felt more reassured heād done something right with his kid before.
Ā
Harry nodded firmly and kissed both of their heads, not even getting an irritated scoff at it from Teddy. āItās going to be fine, Chris. Iām just going to go make sure your dad is ok and bring him back here, then we can all go for ice cream and pizza or something.ā
Ā
Chris nodded but frowned in confusion even more. āYou and Dad are immortal?ā He said as if to reassure himself. Harry and Teddy shared a look though because Eddie wasnāt indestructible, and as a muggle vampire, a killing curse could kill him just as it would a muggle or mage. Immortal wasn't unkillable...not like Harry was anyway.Ā
Ā
āWe will return shortly,ā Darragh stepped from behind his desk and wrapped a hand around Harryās arm to travel with him. āIf you are hungry, all food and drink are safe here. You are under a Sidhe promise of protection. Just ask and anything you need will be provided.ā
Harry gave them both one more look before summoning the Elder Wand to his hand, getting a gasp from Darragh at the sight of it. Ok, so maybe he hadnāt exactly explained the Master of Death part to the Sidhe. āHold on tight,ā he told the man and turned on the spot.
Ā
Ā
āHey Eddie, you the one covering for Parker today?ā Bobby asked when he surprisingly met the member of his team in the parking lot at the fire station.
Ā
āYeah, just getting off with B-Shift,ā Eddie smiled, but something looked a little off about the guy in Bobby's opinion.
Ā
Bobby couldnāt tell what it was, but something wasnāt right. Eddieās eyes looked almost glassy. B-Shift had been on a short shift that day though, so Eddie shouldnāt be overly tiredā¦and well, now Bobby knew he was a vampire too, so that didnāt track. āAre you ok, Eddie?ā He asked, stopping in front of Eddie to block his progress to his truck.
Ā
Eddie gave him a carefree smile that Bobby had literally never seen on the man in the entire time he knew him. Eddie carried the cares of the world on his shoulders the entire time Bobby had known him, and carefree wasnāt a term heād ever once used about the man. āIām perfect. What are you doing here?ā Eddie cocked his head to one side questioningly. āC-Shift is taking over, and we arenāt on for another 48-hours.ā
Ā
Bobby just studied him more closely. Maybe he was hungry? Bobby wasnāt sure what to do with a hungry vampire, and this seemed an odd manifestation of that anyway. āI forgot and left my laptop in my office and wanted to get some paperwork done today while I had timeā¦are you heading home?ā
Ā
āOh yeah, just after lunch,ā Eddie shrugged.
Ā
āLunch, or lunch?ā Bobby asked with a meaningful raise of his eyebrow.
Ā
Eddie frowned. āI donāt know what you mean by that.ā
Ā
Bobby scoffed and moved when it seemed Eddie was about to push by him again. āI mean, Eddie, you seem a little off. Are you really ok? Are you likeā¦vampire hungry or something? Should I call Buck and give him a heads up?ā
Ā
He really didnāt know whatever system those two had worked out to keep the vampire fed, and he really didnāt want to know for his own sanity. However, he also felt something like danger in his gut at letting Eddie leave his sight acting as strangely as he was. Maybe calling Buck was the thing to do since he was still so new to the idea of magic actually existing, let alone knowing enough to know how to handle whatever this situation was.
Ā
Eddie laughed that carefree laugh again. āBobby, I promise Iām well fed and fine. A person from the VA asked if I could get lunch with him and talk about veterans integrating back into civilian life and my experiences with it,ā he said with a shrug. āIām going to grab lunch with him and chat, but allās good, dude. No worries.ā
Ā
Riiiightā¦Eddie had never once called him ādudeā in all his time at the 118. Eddie was still very military and would never call his captain anything besides ācaptain,ā ācap,ā or Bobby when being informal. Eddie started walking forward again.
Ā
āActually, can I come with you?ā Bobby asked suddenly, scrambling for some kind of believable excuse. Really, he was just trying to stay close to Eddie until he could find a moment to call Buck or Athena and see if they had an idea about what could be going on.
Ā
Eddie looked about to protest, so Bobby jumped in again, his mouth saying words as soon as they came to his mind. āUm, I think I could give some valuable insights into an employerās perspective. You rememberā¦I intentionally recruited you because of your military service and background. If this person wants to know about veterans finding work, then an employerās perspective should be invaluable.ā Something like a pleading look flashed through Eddieās eyes before his face was completely serene once more. If nothing else, that look solidified Bobbyās resolve to absolutely not leave Eddie alone right now.
Ā
āI suppose you make a good point,ā Eddie looked off at the station and then at his truck impatiently. āI really canāt wait though. I need to get to this lunch.ā
Ā
āOh, no problem. Iāll just get my laptop later,ā Bobby waved off his concerns and turned towards Eddieās truck himself. If getting to this lunch was so important to Eddie, then Bobby wasnāt going to do anything to make him see danger with allowing Bobby to join. āHow about I ride with you? Itās all our responsibilities to conserve gas and save the environment.ā
Ā
Ok, so he may have been putting it on a little thick there, but Eddie seemed to respond to any reasonable argument as long as it didnāt keep him from this lunch meeting. Bobby could work with that. Eddie nodded and pulled his keys out of his pocket, so Bobby took it as a win.
Ā
He was in the passenger seat before he believed it safe to pull out his cellphone. āIām just letting Athena know Iāll be a little later getting home.ā
Ā
Eddie nodded and started the engine, not seeming to care in the slightest. Bobby quickly texted Athena:
Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ran into Eddie. Something wrong. Heās going to some lunch with a VA worker and seems obsessed with it. His personality seems affected. Any ideas what could do this to a vampire?
Ā
Not even waiting for a reply, he opened his text chain with Buck next:
Ā
Something wrong with Eddie. Iām staying with him. Going to a lunch with a VA worker. He seems too calm and happy. Does that make sense?
Ā
They were out of the parking lot and pulling onto the interstate before Bobby got a text message back. He opened the message from his wife:
Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā What do you mean his personality is affected? Is he angry? Depressed? Overly happy? You have to be more specific baby! I tried texting Buck, but I didnāt get him
Ā
Bobby didnāt like that his wife had been unable to reach Buck. He glanced over, but Eddie was almost single-mindedly driving the car a little too fast to be safe. He texted his wife back:
Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Overly calm and almost obsessed with getting to his lunch
Ā
He waited and frowned when it seemed they were turning away from the city. āUh, Eddie, just where is it that weāre getting lunch with this guy? Burbank?ā
Ā
āHuh?ā Eddie asked as if heād forgotten Bobby was even there. āOh, a park just out of the city. Like a picnicā¦isnāt that nice? And we wonāt have to wear masks then either.ā
Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Sounds like a compulsion spell, possibly the imperius. Where are you?
Ā
Bobby checked the message from his wife but didnāt really know how to answer her. Just where was it they were going anyway? āYeah, bud, that sounds nice,ā he distractedly responded to Eddie. āDid he say which park?ā
Ā
āOh, you knowā¦the park,ā Eddie said vaguely with a small smile his direction as if heād completely answered the question.
Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Bobby! I'm at the station. Where are you? Whereās Eddie?!
Ā
Finally! A text came in from Buck. He prayed to God that Buck had some idea about what was going on.
Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Weāre driving to a park? Athena says Eddie may be under a compulsion? Something called the imperius?
Ā
It didnāt take long before a text message came in to both his and Eddieās phones. Eddie didnāt even glance at the screen on his truck that would read the message to him, completely out of character for the man who would never be out of reach for his son if at all possible. Bobby checked his phone and was unsurprised to see it was a message to the FireFam group chat with the group of 118 firefighters which hung out the most after work as well as their families.
Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā I just learned by ex is in town. Heās a tall black man, probably well dressed and possibly with a British accent. Stay inside, do not engage with strangers. I think heās going after Eddie. I canāt be worried about the rest of you right now.
Ā
And it all made sense to Bobby. Heād already been concerned about Buckās ex, but now it was confirmed. He mentally swore to himself and ignored the messages from Chimney saying he would check in on Ron and Josh, from Maddie saying she was home and would call someone named Cho, from Karen (Henās wife) asking what the hell was going on, and from Hen saying she was heading home and would keep everyone there in for the night.
Ā
āAnything important?ā Eddie asked as if nothing about this was concerning in the slightest.
Ā
Bobby frowned. How should he answer that? Did he try to shock Eddieās system and tell him what was going on or would that cause him to retaliate? Weighed against the manās behavior and what he guessed a ācompulsionā might be, Bobby shrugged and smiled.
Ā
āNothing important, just Chimney burned the pasta he was cooking for Maddie tonight. He's asking for alternative suggestions.ā There was too much danger that Eddie would decide Bobby was trying to keep him from this meeting and make him get out of the car somewhere.
Ā
Eddie chuckled. āOf course he did. Chim is no chef like you and Buck.ā
Ā
After a long enough time to make Bobby extremely anxious, Eddie finally pulled into the parking lot of a small park out in the middle of nowhere. With a look, Bobby suddenly realized that there was eerily not a single person in the park playing or running or just enjoying the day. It was like everyone had just decided to avoid the park randomly that day all at the same time. This did not bode well for them at all.
Ā
āWell, letās go!ā Eddie said cheerily, he moved to open the door but paused. It seemed he was fighting with himself or with the compulsion. There was a low groan before Eddie straightened right back up again and smiled. āSorry, I didnāt mean to hold us up. Come on!ā
Ā
Bobby grimaced and hit the button on his phone heād been poised to press for the last ten miles; it dropped a pin for their location into the group chat that he knew Athena and Buck would both be monitoring. Quickly, he put his phone on silent and slipped it into his pocket, acting as nonchalant as possible while he followed Eddie over to a pavilion and the one lone man waiting for them.
Ā
āItās good to see you again, Eddie,ā the British man smiled broadly with bright, perfect teeth...Bobby already hated the man on sight. āAnd you must be Robert Nashā¦I wasnāt expecting you, but I find Iām pleasantly surprised.ā
Ā
āHello, Mr. Black,ā Eddie greeted happy as if he didn't have a care in the world.
Ā
The man stood and crossed his arms, clearly holding a small stick in one handā¦it must be a wand. āI canāt say itās good to meet youā¦Minister Shacklebolt. I was hoping you'd be reasonable enough to ensure our paths would never cross,ā Bobby said in a low growl.
Ā
The man laughed and Eddie bent over, looking like he was in pain. āOh, donāt even try to fight it leech,ā Shacklebolt sneered at Eddie. āIād prefer to torture you myself. You though...the father figureā¦maybe we just take care of you quickly. That does seem appropriate for your role in my Harry's life.ā
Ā
The man raised his wand toward Bobby before the wizard was shoved ten feet away into a pillar of the pavilion, Eddie gasping as if heād run a marathon. āRun Bobby!ā He ordered, but Bobby wasnāt going to leave him, not when he'd been spelled or cursed and was in danger.
Ā
āCome on!ā Bobby motioned for him, but Shacklebolt sat up, his wand still in his hand.
Ā
āCrucio!ā He cast at Eddie who collapsed in screams to the ground.
Ā
Bobby looked around, but there wasnāt much around them to help. He picked up a small rock, the only thing close by and threw it as hard as he could at the man. āStop it!ā He screamed, hoping to distract the guy from whatever it was he was doing to Eddie, even if Bobby knew he wasnāt actually going to hurt him with a small rock.
Ā
Shacklebolt did have to stop whatever spell he was doing when he was distracted by the rock smacking him in the side of the face. āYou imbecile!ā He sneered. āSectumsempra!ā
Ā
āProtego!ā A voice yelled from behind Bobby, a glowing shield catching the orange light that had been heading his direction. Bobby let out a breath thinking he might have just felt his life flash before his eyes.Ā
Ā
āYou come after me, not my family,ā Harry Potter ordered because this was definitely not Bobbyās Buck who walked up with fire in his eyes. ā I can't believe I thought I loved you for a time, but you are no better than Tom Riddle.ā
Ā
āCrucio!ā Shacklebolt cast at Eddie once more instead of Harry. Eddie screamed in pain but still tried to reach out to grab Shacklebolt.
Ā
With a whip of Harryās wand, a bench flew at the wizard, making him stop the spell to duck. A tall man who looked slightly green for some reason tutted behind Harry. āUnforgiveables, Minister, really? Even you couldnāt pardon something like that...straight to Azkaban they say,ā the man seemed completely at ease though Bobby was surprised to see some kind of sword at the manās side and easily within his reach to grab at a second's notice.
Ā
āDiffindo!ā Harry cast, blasting Shacklebolt further back and into a jungle gym. Bobby ducked and moved out of the way, hurrying behind some bushes while he tried to get closer to Eddie to check on him and maybe get him to safety.Ā
Ā
āImperio!ā Shacklebolt cast, slicing through Harryās shield and hitting him straight in the chest.
Ā
Bobby grimaced but took the distraction to run to Eddieās side who was already sitting up looking exceptionally pale. He prayed Harry didnāt end up under whatever spell Eddie had been under before. āEddie, are you ok?ā Bobby felt the manās pulse. He was cold and a little clammy and his pulse was too slowā¦but also Bobby had absolutely no clue what was normal for a vampire.
Ā
Harry laughed and seemed to give a full-body shrug. āFor someone so obsessed with me, how do you not remember that Iām immune to that spell?ā
Ā
āCrucio!ā he cast again, but this time Eddie rolled and pulled Bobby with him, dodging out of the way of the spell.
Ā
āI know where my spells will do the most damage,ā Shacklebolt said ominously. āAnd as for youā¦ā
Ā
He turned to the greenish man who cocked an eyebrow at him. āIām Sir Harryās lawyer. Please attack meā¦the Sidhe havenāt had good reason for a war with the mages in millennia. We are sorely missing the valor of battle and rush of bloodshed.ā
Ā
Right, so Bobby was now hoping the man cursed the green guy. If a whole other magical race would feel like Shacklebolt had declared war, then didnāt that mean theyād have some backup? Even if Athena was on her way, it would probably take her an hour to drive to this park well out of the city. They needed some backup and fast.
Ā
Shacklebolt swore but turned back to Harry who conjured some kind of flaming whip that the minister barely managed to block before he shot back something like arrows right at Harry. An earthen wall rose, catching the arrows before falling and whipping into a dirt tornado right at the man. Eddie crouched low besides\ Bobby, watching with him while they tried to stay out of the line of fire.
Ā
āThank you, for coming with me,ā Eddie said lowly, concern in his eyes and voice. "I'm sorry you got caught up in this though."
Ā
āAny time, kid,ā Bobby replied putting his hand on Eddieās back. āSeriously, are you ok? That spell didn't look good at all.ā
Ā
āIt wasn't...and now I'm hungry beyond belief, but Iāll be fine,ā Eddie grimaced a flash of fangs making Bobby nervous. āChris is safeā¦right?ā
Ā
āAs far as I know,ā Bobby hoped he was correct with that guess.
Ā
āThe young wizard is safe in my realm,ā the green man was suddenly behind them, crouching low. āLord Black is watching him.ā
Ā
āCan you stop this?ā Eddie asked the guy, looking exceptionally relieved though, and Bobby was too.
Ā
The man shook his head. āNot without starting a war on my part, but the day is young, it is possible a war is still imminent. We can only hope.ā
Ā
Bobby and Eddie had to part as they dove separate directions to avoid a blast of what looked like ice and which unfortunately missed the green guy still. Harry roared a yell just as a loud pop sounded, and Bobby was both relieved and terrified to see his wife appear with Harryās friend Ron who was wearing what looked like red robes oddly enough.
Ā
Ron waved a wand and ropes appeared, shooting towards Shacklebolt who made them disappear with a yell. Athena then threw something. Bobby had no clue what it was, but a fog formed around Shacklebolt, and he began coughing violently.
Ā
With another wave of his wand, Harry cast the same ropes, which were dispelled just as quickly as before. āReducto!ā Harry tried, but Shacklebolt blocked the spell the same time as he turned on his heel to face where Eddie had crept to behind him.
Ā
āAvada Kedavra!ā He cast, and Bobby couldnāt process the roar of indignant screams from Ron, Athena, and the green man over by the overturned benches. Bobby didnāt need to know what that spell was to know what it did from the screams from everyone around him.
Ā
A green light headed directly towards Eddie and hitā¦hit a man with messy black hair wearing a zoo t-shirt and jeans who had appeared right in front of him out of nowhere. āNo!ā Athena collapsed to her knees in a pained cry and Bobby felt himself falling too, his knees hit the hard ground hard, and he knew what had happened all the way to his bones.
Ā
Shacklebolt yelled a scream that sounded like an angry, wounded animal. āLook what you made me do! Iāll tear you limb from limb!ā He strode towards Eddie. Eddie though didn't look like the man Bobby had known all these years anymore. Someone else, something else, jumped up, his fangs bared and slammed right into the wizard with an unhinged growl.
Chapter 24: The Beginning of Something New
Notes:
Thank you all for sticking with me through this crossover. I really enjoyed writing it!
Chapter Text
Harry was so beyond pissed. Kingsley had ruined his life for too long, and he wasnāt allowed to keep ruining it any longer. Getting hit with the killing curse hurt like hell! This time he didnāt even see a flash of Kingās Cross again because there was no way heād even consider not coming back to his family for a second. He had too much to live for, and too many people to protect.
Ā
He sat up to gasps from Athena, Bobby, and surprisingly Darragh who heād been pretty sure heād told he was immortal, but knowing and knowing where apparently two completely different things. Eddie thoughā¦Eddie was going to need a new shirt, ew.
Ā
Harry grimaced at the mess in front of him. āErā¦babeā¦heās definitely dead,ā Harry winced because heād seen when vampires accidentally killed someone before back when he had been an auror, but this was clearly not accidental. Not that Harry was judging or upset in the slightest, but still...a lot of blood and gore there.Ā
Ā
āBuck!ā Eddie spit out a mouthful of blood and dropped the body in his arms, almost collapsing himself in relief. āYouāre alive! Gracias a Dios! Gracias a Dracula!"
Ā
Ā
āHey, love,ā Harry just smiled at the distraught man because even covered in gore and having just killed a very public figure Eddie was still the person he trusted the most in his life. He reached out a hand to beckon Eddie closer. āIām sorryā¦I was meaning to tell you that Iām immortal, but it just hasnāt come up, and it was a little awkward to just spring on you out of nowhere since it's kind of a long storyā¦ā
Ā
He was suddenly being crushed so much he coughed from lack of air and had to push Eddie back some before scourgifying the blood from their clothes. āHey, Iām ok, Iām ok, I promise,ā Harry assured him, putting his hand on the side of Eddieās face and taking in his wild, terrified eyes. āHow are you doing? That spell is really bad, and after just being under the imperiusā¦heyā¦Babe, youāre going to be okā¦ā
Ā
Harry pulled Eddie closer to him since he seemed to be having a panic attack all of a sudden. He looked over at Athena who looked speechless and was just starting at him, Ron who was making absolutely sure Kingsley was dead, and Bobby who was sitting on the ground with his head between his knees now. Darraghā¦well, Darragh looked unconcerned and was chatting with someone on his cellphone. None of them were currently any help.Ā
Ā
āBaby, youāre ok,ā Harry tried again, rubbing Eddieās back. āI know you didnāt want to kill him, but he was going to kill you. He tried to kill you and hit you with two other unforgiveable curses. I knowā¦I know this is bad, but you did what you had to do to protect us, ok? I got you, always.ā
Ā
āMACUSA is going to have a fit though,ā Ron straightened with a sigh and a grimace at the whole situation. āThis is a political nightmare, but he did use all three unforgiveables with all of us as witnesses. Eddieā¦weāre going to get you out of this.ā
Ā
āDios mio! Iām going to be arrested! I can't be arrested!ā Eddie gasped again before pushing away from Harry to grab his wallet from his pocket. āThe Custodian! I have the card in here somewhere. Can I call the vampiresā¦what do I do?! I canāt leave Chris! We have to fix this!ā
Ā
āStop panicking everyone, it is very unbecoming of you all,ā Darragh drawled as he sauntered over towards them while looking almost regretful that his people didnāt end up in a war with the magical world. āThe British Minister of Magic fired three Unforgiveable Curses at an American, muggle vampire, two of which actually hit.ā
Ā
āYes, you summed that up very nicely and unhelpfully,ā Ron rolled his eyes at the man. āAnd who are you anyway?ā
Ā
āDarragh of the Sidhe realm. I'm Sir Harryās legal representativeā¦as well as Mr. Diazās,ā Darragh said with a smile, and Harry was suddenly so very glad heād āadoptedā Eddie into his family. Thank Merlin and whoever the Sidhe worshiped, but if anyone could get them out of all this, Darragh could. Or they could at least go live in the Sidhe realm, which might not be so bad.Ā
Ā
āGive me the card to the Custodian, pleaseā Darragh held out his hand to Eddie and ordered. Eddie pulled a card that seemed slightly stuck and forgotten about from the back of his wallet and handed it over with no protest. In his panic, it seemed Eddie was willing to trust whoever Harry did with no questions.Ā
Ā
āI think weāre in way too far for a coverup. That is literally the leader of a country in pieces over there,ā Athena finally snorted at them all with a look in her eyes that she was barely holding onto her own nerves. āThis may not be my jurisdiction, but it is Ron's, and clearly other people knew the minister was in this country.ā
Ā
āTechnically, itās not Auror Weasleyās jurisdiction either,ā Darragh remarked, somehow knowing who Ron was while dialing the number from the card Eddie had given him with one hand. Before anyone could protest or ask more questions, he held the phone to his ear with a glare at them all to be silentā¦
Ā
āHello, who is this?ā He asked tersely of whoever answered.
Ā
āYes, I do realize I called the Custodian,ā he looked at them and rolled his amber eyes as if saying this whole situation was starting to be boring and he was only here out of the goodness of his heart and financial obligations. Harry suddenly liked Darragh even more than he had before.
Ā
āConnect me to Raina immediately,ā he ordered, getting a small choke of a gasp from Eddie. It seemed the vampire knew that name for some reason. Harry was going to be asking a lot of questions just as soon as they had a moment to think.
Ā
āI donāt care. This is Darragh, the Sidhe representative who is calling to inform her that a sitting mage politician has made a blatant act of aggression against her and her kind," Darragh said in his no-nonsense tone.Ā
Ā
āOhā¦ā Ron trailed off, a smile slowly starting to form as he looked at Harry who was finally catching on himself. Eddie was a vampire, and it was mainly Eddie who Kingsley was attacking and who he had clearly been targeting the entire time. It was Eddie who heād lured out here with the intention to kill. This wasnāt actually MACUSAās jurisdiction eitherā¦it was the vampires!
Ā
āRight, that's...yeah, very true,ā Athena sighed in relief and sat on the ground beside her husband, leaning into his side.
Ā
āDid something good happen?ā Bobby gasped and finally looked up from the ground with red eyes as if he was on his very last thread of sanity.
Ā
āJust that we donāt have to arrest Eddie,ā she patted his hand, making Bobby sigh and put his head on her shoulder at that relief.
Ā
āGood, hiring someone else to partner with Buck at the station is practically impossible,ā Bobby just said, breaking into Eddieās panic spiral enough to get a small huff of laughter from the man still bodily holding onto Harry as if trying to assure himself Harry was actually alive.
Ā
āHey, itās going to ok, I promise, and Iāll keep promising you that until you believe me,ā Harry kissed Eddieās forehead in a spot he was certain heād gotten the blood off of with his spell.
Ā
āRaina,ā Darragh said to someone on the phone abruptly from where he'd been pacing impatiently. āThe British Minister of Magic attacked one of your vampires today unprovoked. He used all three Unforgiveable spells, and it is only by chance your vampire survived. Fortunately, he killed Minister Shacklebolt, so we have a situation on our hands now.ā
Ā
There was a pause when Darraghās eyes cut to Harry and Eddie on the ground. āYou are actually correct, it is Eddie Diazā¦yes, he killed the minister. I am extremely sure Minister Shacklebolt is dead, Raina.ā
Ā
āYes, Harry Potter is here as well,ā Darragh raised a perfect eyebrow at them questioningly. āIām serving as Sir Harry and Mr. Diazās lawyer currently.ā
Ā
Darragh sighed as if regretful to his very core. āUnfortunately, no, Sir Harry doesnāt seem willing to overthrow the magical governmentā¦not even the one in England?ā He raised a questioning eyebrow at Harry who firmly shook his head. Merlin, but he knew the vampires had wanted something from him, and he should probably have guessed this was their thought-process.
Ā
āHeās saying no. Yes, I agree, but what can we do?...well, he seems solidly immortal, so we do have time to change his mind...yes, Sir Harry...yes, he seems happy with Mr. Diaz," the Sidhe shrugged and rolled his eyes as if he didn't see it himself but whatever. Harry just rolled his eyes as well and glanced at Eddie who just looked confused and a little insulted...which he really should be, Harry felt insulted for his partner.Ā
Ā
āI know, right,ā Darragh heaved a long-suffering sigh. āYes, I will keep him from being arrested by MACUSA until you arriveā¦there is an auror here on scene already, but it is Auror Weasleyā¦yes, I knowā¦we should probably call a real auror tooā¦ā
Ā
āHey!ā Ron protested before he rolled his eyes with a huff and took out his cellphone. āThoughā¦fair I supposeā¦Iāll call Cho and have her bring in Auror Barclay to clear all this up.ā
Ā
āYes, please do contact your counterpart in England,ā Darragh nodded and said to Raina. āIāll text you the coordinates of our location, this number?ā
Ā
āWonderful, weāll see you soon,ā Darragh said, hanging up before sending a text off. āI donāt know what youāve done to both impress your Lady and also make her very irritated, Mr. Diaz, but keep it up and never change to another bank. The Sidhe live to serve the House of Death.ā
Ā
āGreat,ā Harry groaned, not wanting anyone to call him that ever! āPlease donāt. Literally, never call me the Master of Death again, and Iāll invest in Teddyās new technomageās inventions and make you a lot of money.ā
Ā
āYou will do that anyway,ā Darragh waved him off with a smirk.
Ā
āWhat does this mean?ā Eddie asked, pulling in a deep breath to steady himself. He seemed to actually start to pull himself out of the panic and onto solid ground emotionally. āI killedā¦basically your presidentā¦but no oneās arresting me? And youāreā¦youāre immortalā¦?ā
Ā
āYeah, babe,ā Harry smiled and held him tighter. āKingsley isnāt a regular person, but a leader of a country. Him attacking someone isnāt just a person attacking another person, but basically a declaration of war when it is against another sovereign group of people. The muggle vampires have their own political system, especially here in America. You are a citizen of a separate country within this country basically. In the end, you only defended yourself when a foreign power declared war on your raceā¦so yeahā¦it would actually be worse politically to arrest you now.ā
Ā
āEngland is so going to try to cover this up,ā Ron looked almost gleeful at that assessment. āIām calling Percy! He knows how to make sure the paperwork gets āleakedā to the right people. This is going to have everyone scrambling, and Harry, mate, this means theyāll actually have to look into Kingsleyās accusations against you. Youāll finally be free!ā
Ā
āIāll be free,ā he breathed out, smiling at Eddie who spared a shaky smile right back at him. āHeyā¦Iām glad youāre aliveā¦ā
Ā
āIām glad youāre alive,ā Eddie replied, finally seeming to be past his panic completely as he licked his teeth with a disgusted grimace. āEwā¦Buck, he tasted grossā¦clearly itās not mage blood thatās so good, itās just yours.ā
Ā
āAw, thatās so sweet!ā Harry cooed while Ron fake gagged at them.
Ā
Ā
Eddie wasnāt doing ok. Orā¦maybe he was doing ok, and thatās what was actually freaking him out. He looked at the group of red-robed aurors behind a silencing ward who seemed to be yelling at Harry while Darragh gave them a glare that would put all Eddieās old commanding officers in the Army to shame. Thankfully, Athena, Bobby, and Ron had all been sent away after giving their statements, but he had no idea what was about to happen to him.
Ā
āWhen I told you long ago that the vampires would stand with Potter,ā Raina sighed in a tone that could be loosely interpreted as fond. āI thought there would at least be a discussion first and maybe a plan of action and future progress.ā
Ā
āWellā¦I was under the impression you were a receptionist,ā he dryly replied, still not being able to wrap his mind around the woman whoād been flirting with him and throwing him for a loop with her innuendos for the past two years actually being the leader of the vampires and like hisā¦president or master or something.
Ā
Raina snorted and pushed her long hair back off a shoulder as if unconcerned at all that was going on currently. āI donāt know where you would have gotten that impression, Edmundo, dear.ā
Ā
After a minute, she stepped forward and blocked his view of the tense argument over Kingsleyās body. āHow are you actually doing? This is your first vampire kill, correct?ā
Ā
āBut not my first kill,ā he said tersely, not actually knowing how to answer her. āItāsā¦I feelā¦it was all instinct at the time and I was so hungry and angry, and now I wish there had been another way, but, even looking back, I donāt see how it could have ended without one of our deaths. An alive world leaderās word is more believable than mine, so even if he was arrestedā¦ā
Ā
āEven if he was arrested, we would have insisted he be handed over to us,ā Raina said firmly with her red lips pursed. āAnd the penalty for his crimes by our laws was death. The end would have been the same. Alsoā¦as I said before, the vampires will always stand with Harry Potter over the mages.ā
Ā
āHe is a mage,ā Eddie raised an eyebrow at her.
Ā
āOh, is he?ā She smirked with a knowing look. āA normal mage doesnāt survive three...or is it four now?...however many, killing curses or any of the other fatal curses my sources say heās been hit with. Noā¦Harry Potter is something different, and we believe we as a species are much more alike than different. Plusā¦he knows what it feels like to be hunted and lied about by those in authority. He has exceptional power, he has understanding of what our lives are like, he has empathy, and he has kindnessā¦not something seen in people who have been through what he hasā¦plus, his hand has been blatantly in every single creature legislation bill that has passed to give our kind more freedom and protection over the past decade, even if he isnāt on the Wizengamot himself.ā
Ā
None of her words surprised him in the slightest. While all this was new information to him, that was just Eddieās Buck. Back when they weren't even together, Buck had told Eddieās son to tell Eddie about his magic just as soon as he witnessed it even though Buck knew it would put himself in danger, and all because he didnāt want to hurt Eddieās relationship with his son. And this was the person who was hunted for years by a man heād trusted and lovedā¦someone who actively tried to destroy his life and everything he loved.
Ā
He let out a breath and admitted the truth he maybe regretted feeling. āI thinkā¦I think Iām actually doing quite ok with all thisā¦well, as long as Iām not arrested.ā
Ā
Rainaās smile had way more fang than it should when she put her well-manicured hand on his arm. āI may have been wrong then, maybe you are cut out for this life.ā
Ā
Eddie rolled his eyes. āSpecial circumstance,ā he said firmly. āIāll never use the card for the Custodian ever again.ā
Ā
Rainaās smile widened even further. āNow, why would you think I wanted you to? Being cut out for a vampiric life doesnāt mean murder and death, actually it shouldnāt since that brings more danger to the rest of us, but it does mean being realistic and having a long-term view of your own existence. You canāt just plan for the next decade, you must plan for the next century. And wallowing in guilt, self-pity, and self-hatredā¦thatās the sign of a vampire who wonāt make it in the long-term. You, Eddieā¦you might just make it.ā
Ā
Harryās friend Cho finally walked out of the silencing ward they were behind, followed by who was supposedly her supervisor. The aurors who stayed behind the ward were doing something complicated over Kingsleyās body for a second before the entire group suddenly disappeared from the park.
Ā
āDiaz!ā She called, crossing her arms with a firm glare. āYouāve caused an international incident.ā
Ā
āThe way I see it, your minister did that, not my vampire,ā Raina glared right back at the auror.
Ā
āOh, I wasnāt complaining in the slightest,ā Choās look fell into a smile at Raina who smiled quite ferally right back at her. āNow we need to talk about how to release this information carefully. Joint press release?ā
Ā
Raina smirked and stepped forward. āOnly if my people write it and Britainās Prophet isnāt allowed to change anything at all in it.ā
Ā
āDone,ā the supervisor man said firmly before motioning Raina to follow them. āWeāll go to your office to handle this since ours would require a portkey.ā
Ā
āIāll drive then,ā Raina put on her expensive sunglasses and motioned for her driver standing by her dark SUV to open the doors for them all.
Ā
āWhat about me?ā Eddie called after the group, wondering if it was all really that simple.
Ā
Cho turned and smiled. āI heard Harry promised your kid pizza, and they were concerned about eating anything in the Sidhe realm, you might need to go feed your kids.ā
Ā
āYoung Mr. Diaz and Lord Black are perfectly safe,ā Darragh sniffed in what looked like indignation.
Ā
āCome on, love,ā Buck held out his hand, and Eddie walked over to take it. āLetās go get our kids.ā
Ā
āAnd donāt forget the all paperwork I need you to sign,ā Darragh said just before Buck tugged on Eddieās arm and it felt like he was being sucked up a straw.
Ā
Ā
The Grant-Nash backyard was full of everyone celebrating the end of the pandemic, the end of the threat of Kingsley, and the six-ish month birthday of baby Buckley-Han, or Granger-Han, or maybe just Grangerā¦they hadnāt quite decided yet, and some only vaguely explained to him American holiday called Memorial Day. Teddy looked on at his family with a smile he just couldnāt wipe off his face. He didnāt think heād ever have this in his life not long ago.
Ā
Only a few years before and heād been an orphan being raised by a grieving grandmother and a father who did his absolute best even when it was obvious he was miserable and hurting. Teddy hadnāt known how to fix it for either of them though. He was just a kid, and it was all heād known. Then his dad had moved to LAā¦
Ā
Teddy smiled again at his dad who finally could use his natural features out in the open and who had baby Jee-Yun in one arm and was leaning against Eddie on his other side at the large table set up for everyone in the backyard. Harry was finally happy. And Teddyā¦well, he now had two dads, a brother, a grandmother who had reconnected with her sister and was currently traveling the world, and so many other people he was just mentally lumping into the category of aunts, uncles, and cousins. Even Aunt Hermione and Uncle Ron finally looked happy again. Heād called it years before theyād divorced, but no one else had seen it at the time, now though, it was like night and day.
Ā
Aunt Hermione was laughing at something his new Uncle Chimney was saying, and Uncle Ronā¦well, did no one else see that the man was clearly with Josh and probably had been for a long time at this point? Teddy smirked at his Uncle Ron who thought he got away with a pinch to Joshās arse, but Teddy sawā¦he was good that way, he always saw things others didnāt.
Ā
Apparently, his look didnāt go unnoticed though because Uncle Ron just looked at him and winked. Teddy rolled his eyes and sent his text to Victoire who was coming for a visit as soon as she graduated from Hogwarts in a couple months and probably bringing an entire invasion of Weasleys with her. Merlin help the 118, theyād never recover.
Ā
āSo, how long has this been going on?ā Aunt Athena gave Uncle Ron and Josh a knowing smirk from where she was pouring wine into glasses and staring at them the same as Teddy had been doing. It seemed he wasnāt the only one in the family who noticed things now.
Ā
āReally?!!ā Teddyās dad exclaimed in excitement and turned to smile broadly at the two before putting on a fake pout. āWait! I should be offended! Josh, you dumped me because I have magic, and now you're with Ron!ā
Ā
Josh just smirked at him and just put an arm around Uncle Ron, clearly giving up being secretive any at all. āI called it!ā Hen crowed and shook her wife bodily in excitement.
Ā
āWe all did, honey,ā Athena snorted at her.
Ā
āWell, it was about halfway into the pandemic,ā Uncle Ron shrugged with a small smile at the man beside him. āSome things just arenāt as important when you find someone who understands you, and you have the time to work out some compromises and communicate.ā
Ā
āWait, halfway into the pandemic?!ā Bobby put down his long spatula at the grill to turn to them. āHow did we miss that? That means youāve been together for almost half a year!ā
Ā
Josh looked a little sheepish at that accusationā¦which he should in Teddyās opinion. That was a long time to not tell anyone! āThere was a lot going on with Maddieās pregnancy, Buckās ex on the loose, you all finding out about magic, and wellā¦the worldwide pandemic.ā
Ā
āPlus, it wasnāt your business, you nosy gossips!ā Uncle Ron playfully glared at them all.
Ā
Josh cleared his throat and blushed, wellā¦this was about to be good. āWe do actually have an announcement to make though in the spirit of transparency.ā
Ā
Uncle Ron groaned. āDo we really have to tell them? You know how meddlesome they all are.ā
Ā
āAre we getting a wedding? The first 118 wedding since you twoā¦ā Hen glared at Athena and Bobby. āDidnāt invite any of us to yours!ā
Ā
āOne of these days youāre going to have to let that go,ā Bobby sighed at her.
Ā
āNever,ā Uncle Chimney nodded as a unified front with Aunt Hen.
Ā
āActuallyā¦yeah, do you want to maybe do that at some point?ā Uncle Ron frowned at Josh questioningly.
Ā
Josh gave him an incredulous look along with literally everyone else in attendance. āSure, but you gotta do that so much better Honey-Buns. Iām not a high-maintenance girl, but I need at least a candlelit dinner and one knee.ā
Ā
āNoted,ā Uncle Ron nodded firmly.
Ā
Chris tugged on Uncle Ronās shirt, making him look down. āI can help. Iām good with planning,ā Chris grinned broadly. āAnd you clearly need it.ā
Ā
Teddy just laughed because he was probably not the best influence on his brother, or maybe Chris just came by that sass naturally, but hey, the kid was right. āIām in too,ā he offered, flicking his hair to the sandy blond of Chrisās since he knew the kid always liked when he did that.
Ā
āWhat was the announcement then?ā Eddie asked, clearly better at herding the nifflers of these chaotic people than most in the family. Teddy supposed his stepdad probably got that skill from dealing with Harry 24/7 now.
Ā
Josh cleared his throat again importantly. āWell, baring future matrimonial announcements, we may be doing this a little out of order, but that seems to be standard practice here,ā he looked pointedly at Jee-Yun, Chris, and Dennyā¦which led Teddy to a suspicion about what he might be about to announce...a suspicion he was now very excited about!Ā
Ā
āUh, well, weāve decided we want to have a kid and start a family together,ā Josh finished with a smile, putting his arm back around Uncle Ron who smiled so broadly and happily that Teddy could see almost all his teeth.
Ā
āOh hell no!ā Aunt Hermione said firmly, making everyone jump in surprise. āIām not carrying a baby for you two no matter how much I love you both. My body still hasnāt recovered from the last! I support you both with all my heart, but you absolutely have to find someone else!ā
Ā
āMioneā¦platonic love of my life,ā Uncle Ron pinned her with a look. āWe werenāt planning to ask you.ā
Ā
āOh, thank Merlin!ā She sighed in relief. "Then congratulations! You'll both make the best of fathers!"Ā
Ā
āErā¦who then? Or are you adopting?ā Teddyās dad asked with a smile. āAnd congratulations by the way! This is brilliant!ā
Ā
āWe know a good adoption lawyer,ā Karen offered next.
Ā
āMates! Fam! We have actually thought this out unlike you all are just assuming!ā Uncle Ron groaned in exasperation. āWeāve even talked to Joshās aunt and my family about it all because they arenāt as meddlesome as the rest of you.ā
Ā
āMolly Weasley isnāt meddlesome?ā Harry raised an eyebrow in disbelief and Teddy agreed with his dad completely. He loved Mrs. Weasley, but he was pretty certain she already had his and Victoireās wedding planned, and they hadnāt even talked about marriage themselves.
Ā
āOk, well, Iāll give you that,ā Uncle Ron chuckled. āBut anywayā¦Josh is going to be the biological father sinceā¦as Hermione, you might have guessed, Iām not the most likely to be able to father a child according to my healer. Andā¦well, surprising literally everyone in the Weasley familyā¦Ginny offered to carry our kid and be the biological mother.ā
Ā
āShe was actually pretty insistent on it as long as we planned it so it didnāt interfere with the quidditch season too much,ā Josh added inā¦and when had Uncle Ron taken Josh to England?! Victoire was holding out on him, and they were going to have a talk about spreading the good gossip next they were able to talk on the phone!
Ā
āItās a little weird, we know, but yeahā¦weāre excited,ā Uncle Ron gave Josh the sappiest smile Teddy thought heād ever seen, and he ate dinner at Harry and Eddieās house at least a couple times a week where his dad was always a complete sap.
Ā
āWell, at least neither of you work for me so I donāt have to plan shift covers,ā Bobby said with a smile and supportive clap of a hand to Joshās back.
Ā
āWell, any other announcements?ā Athena asked the group, glaring the most at Harry and Eddie. āYou all are literally the worst about keeping things from the rest of us that really should be known to the family.ā
Ā
āYes, Ms. Hedge Witch who married our captain without telling any of us,ā Chimney accused, getting a look promising a beatdown from Athenaā¦Teddy really loved her. Aunt Athena and Grandma Andy were going to be the best of friends once he could introduce them!
Ā
āI think everything is finally out there for us,ā Eddie said, wrapping his arms around Chris who squirmed trying to get free. āI have no more secrets, Iām just your boring, neighborhood vampire with a wizard kid.ā
Ā
āArenāt you some kind of diplomatic liaison to us mages now?ā Teddyās dad raised an eyebrow at his partner.
Ā
āEh, whatever,ā Eddie rolled his eyes. āI tried ducking Rainaās calls for weeks, but she finally tracked me down at the grocery store of all places. That woman needs to wear a warning label.ā
Ā
āActually,ā Karen cleared her throat and took Henās hand in hers. āWe have news.ā
Ā
Hen nodded with a small smile. āYou know weāve been fostering for a while now, but after everything thatās happened to us all, well, we started talking to Buckās friend Cho.ā
Ā
āAnd there are apparently a lot of magical kids who need homes and who it's very difficult to place because they canāt go to any home where the foster parents donāt already know about magic. There is a severe lack of safe placements for these kids in particular,ā Karen finished. āWe decided to become foster parents to a magical child. She moves in next week.ā
Ā
Teddy thought his dad might be about to cry, and Teddy understood completely. āYouād do that?!ā Harry asked them, pulling Karen into a hug first and then Hen. āYou have no idea how needed you are. Iām here for you, whatever you need, you don't even have to ask.ā
Ā
āThanks Buck, we know,ā Hen hugged him back tightly.
Ā
āI charge $20 an hour to babysit,ā Teddy drawled because he knew where this was heading, and he didnāt mind at all, but he wanted to make sure he got his price in there because even with living for free at his dadās old loft now, he did still have expenses, and he didnāt make any money while being an apprentice. Plus, he'd like to take Victoire out for some nice dinners when she came to visit.Ā
Ā
āNoted, and youāre definitely being taken up on that,ā Karen laughed at him.
Ā
āAs long as she can still play video games with me,ā Denny smiled in acceptance of this all. Teddy liked really that kid too. He may not have a magical bone in his body, but Denny had some kind of innate understanding about technology that they connected on exceptionally well, so he didn't mind throwing in Denny for babysitting at the same time for free.Ā
Ā
āRight, well, if thatās all, the burgers are ready!ā Bobby whirled around with a platter of burgers now in his hands. āWe have an early shift tomorrow, so everyone eat up so you can get out of my house and sleep at your own places tonight. I'm not cooking you breakfast.ā
Ā
āI only slept over once,ā Harry teased with a smirk.
Ā
Athena patted his arm. āThe guestroom is always yours, baby, no matter what my dumbass says.ā
Ā
āHey! I actually believe in magic now! You need a new nickname for me, please,ā Bobby protested but smiled at them all proudly, and maybe Teddy had a kind of grandfather now tooā¦huh, he found he liked that a lot actually.
Ā
Pages Navigation
The_IMPULSIVE_Writer (The_WEBTOON_Writer) on Chapter 1 Fri 31 Jan 2025 11:30PM UTC
Comment Actions
NinjaPandaScholar on Chapter 1 Fri 31 Jan 2025 11:33PM UTC
Comment Actions
onheretoread on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 12:09AM UTC
Comment Actions
JamesLethe on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 12:26AM UTC
Comment Actions
The_Radiant_Dragon on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 12:27AM UTC
Comment Actions
Theo_Longbottom on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 12:30AM UTC
Comment Actions
NinjaPandaScholar on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 12:41AM UTC
Comment Actions
ArielSakura on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 03:19AM UTC
Comment Actions
ArielSakura on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 03:21AM UTC
Comment Actions
Lilydoe22 on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 05:39AM UTC
Comment Actions
LeoTheDragonMage on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 07:21AM UTC
Comment Actions
Shibushi on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 08:26AM UTC
Comment Actions
StoriesSustainMe on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 09:06AM UTC
Comment Actions
creativecyr on Chapter 1 Sat 01 Feb 2025 11:58PM UTC
Comment Actions
lovelyrosiesv on Chapter 1 Sun 02 Feb 2025 01:03PM UTC
Last Edited Sun 02 Feb 2025 01:06PM UTC
Comment Actions
NinjaPandaScholar on Chapter 1 Sun 02 Feb 2025 02:42PM UTC
Comment Actions
keepmeright on Chapter 1 Sun 02 Feb 2025 04:12PM UTC
Comment Actions
NinjaPandaScholar on Chapter 1 Sun 02 Feb 2025 07:44PM UTC
Comment Actions
ruthreads3394 on Chapter 1 Sun 23 Feb 2025 03:25AM UTC
Comment Actions
NinjaPandaScholar on Chapter 1 Sun 23 Feb 2025 03:44AM UTC
Comment Actions
Hannssoni on Chapter 1 Sun 02 Feb 2025 10:01PM UTC
Comment Actions
NinjaPandaScholar on Chapter 1 Sun 02 Feb 2025 10:43PM UTC
Comment Actions
Katbeth86 (Chocoduckie86) on Chapter 1 Sun 02 Feb 2025 10:31PM UTC
Last Edited Sun 02 Feb 2025 10:31PM UTC
Comment Actions
NinjaPandaScholar on Chapter 1 Sun 02 Feb 2025 10:52PM UTC
Comment Actions
Katbeth86 (Chocoduckie86) on Chapter 1 Mon 03 Feb 2025 02:51AM UTC
Comment Actions
ze_trashcan on Chapter 1 Thu 06 Feb 2025 05:02AM UTC
Comment Actions
SassyDKitten on Chapter 1 Fri 07 Feb 2025 09:05PM UTC
Comment Actions
0lmega on Chapter 1 Fri 14 Feb 2025 01:23AM UTC
Comment Actions
dracosbroom on Chapter 1 Mon 03 Mar 2025 05:00PM UTC
Comment Actions
Pages Navigation